Selected quad for the lemma: work_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
work_n good_a merit_n merit_v 6,691 5 10.7705 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A54576 A compendious history of the Catholick church from the year 600 untill the year 1600 shewing her deformation and reformation : together with the rise, reign, rage, and begin-fall of the Roman AntiChrist : with many other profitable instructions gathered out of divers writers of the several times, and other histories / by Alexander Petrie ... Petrie, Alexander, 1594?-1662.; Church of Scotland. General Assembly. 1657 (1657) Wing P1879; ESTC R4555 1,586,559 1,238

There are 63 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

they_o make_v void_a ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la the_o name_n of_o redemption_n for_o every_o one_o who_o be_v redeem_v certain_o be_v deliver_v from_o bondage_n whence_o then_o be_v the_o man_n redeem_v if_o he_o be_v not_o captive_a under_o guilt_n it_o be_v clear_a therefore_o that_o he_o be_v very_o unwise_a who_o think_v so_o then_o he_o bring_v the_o example_n of_o the_o thief_n on_o the_o cross_n who_o be_v a_o sinner_n be_v change_v by_o inward_a grace_n upon_o the_o cross_n here_o by_o the_o way_n observe_v gregory_n use_v the_o word_n meritum_fw-la but_o in_o another_o sense_n then_o the_o papist_n do_v now_o for_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v divine_a grace_n find_v not_o man_n merit_n that_o he_o may_v or_o shall_v come_v but_o when_o he_o have_v come_v he_o make_v it_o and_o god_n come_v into_o a_o unworthy_a soul_n make_v it_o worthy_a by_o come_v and_o he_o make_v in_o it_o merit_n that_o he_o may_v reward_v who_o do_v find_v only_o what_o he_o may_v have_v punish_v he_o make_v it_o clear_a in_o cap._n 26._o they_o who_o hold_v that_o a_o man_n be_v save_v by_o his_o own_o power_n do_v guess_v that_o the_o confession_n of_o man_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o man_n self_n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o the_o psalmist_n will_v not_o say_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n confessio_fw-la &_o magnificentia_fw-la est_fw-la opus_fw-la ejus_fw-la we_o receive_v therefore_o from_o he_o to_o confess_v from_o who_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o to_o do_v great_a thing_n etc._n etc._n there_o through_o three_o chapter_n gregory_n speak_v against_o man_n merit_n or_o deserve_n and_o he_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v only_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v any_o good_a and_o when_o he_o use_v the_o word_n meritum_fw-la in_o a_o good_a sense_n he_o understand_v simple_o good_a work_n without_o the_o ad-signification_n of_o deserve_v he_o use_v also_o the_o word_n meruit_fw-la improper_o as_o in_o the_o same_o book_n cap._n 33._o abraham_n do_v never_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v but_o dust_n and_o ash_n until_o habere_fw-la dei_fw-la meruit_fw-la collocutionem_fw-la where_o that_o word_n can_v signify_v to_o deserve_v but_o to_o attain_v as_o also_o bernard_n in_o cant._n ser_n 2._o say_v herod_n will_v have_v see_v christ_n but_o because_o not_o of_o a_o good_a mind_n non_fw-la meruit_fw-la that_o be_v he_o obtain_v not_o again_o on_o ps_n 7._o poeniten_v gregory_n say_v at_o the_o word_n auditam_fw-la fac_fw-la although_o god_n bestow_v heaven_n according_a to_o work_n yet_o he_o give_v it_o not_o for_o work_n if_o the_o blessedness_n of_o the_o righteous_a be_v of_o mercy_n what_o be_v that_o he_o will_v render_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o if_o it_o be_v render_v according_a to_o work_n how_o be_v it_o call_v mercy_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n according_a to_o work_n and_o another_o for_o work_n where_o it_o be_v say_v according_a to_o work_n the_o qualification_n of_o work_n be_v mean_v that_o who_o good_a work_n be_v see_v shall_v have_v the_o reward_n of_o glory_n for_o no_o labour_n or_o work_n can_v be_v compare_v unto_o that_o bless_a life_n where_o we_o shall_v live_v with_o god_n and_o in_o god_n it_o be_v sure_a then_o that_o to_o who_o it_o be_v merciful_o give_v to_o do_v well_o in_o this_o life_n unto_o those_o it_o be_v more_o merciful_o give_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v reward_v a_o hundred-fold_n in_o everlasting_a blessedness_n this_o be_v the_o grace_n that_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v shall_v be_v give_v for_o grace_n unto_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n to_o who_o be_v give_v from_o god_n the_o grace_n of_o holiness_n in_o this_o life_n to_o they_o shall_v be_v give_v the_o grace_n of_o eternal_a felicity_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v on_o job_n lib._n 9_o cap._n 1._o a_o godly_a man_n because_o he_o see_v all_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o virtue_n to_o be_v vice_n if_o it_o be_v narrow_o examine_v by_o the_o inward_a judge_n will_v true_o say_v i_o can_v answer_v for_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o by_o a_o thousand_o be_v oft_o mean_v universality_n in_o lib._n 20._o cap._n 4._o he_o say_v fit_o if_o i_o will_v have_v go_v unto_o they_o for_o as_o it_o be_v write_v eph._n 1_o he_o work_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o will_n not_o according_a to_o our_o merit_n but_o because_o he_o so_o will_v the_o lord_n enlighten_v we_o with_o his_o visitation_n and_o so_o when_o he_o will_v he_o come_v and_o when_o he_o come_v he_o sit_v first_o both_o because_o his_o come_n into_o our_o heart_n be_v of_o his_o favour_n and_o the_o appetite_n of_o desire_v he_o in_o our_o thought_n be_v not_o equal_a to_o our_o other_o desire_n it_o follow_v when_o i_o sit_v the_o lord_n sit_v as_o king_n in_o the_o heart_n because_o he_o govern_v the_o buzz_a motion_n of_o the_o heart_n lib._n 23._o cap._n 18._o a_o afflict_a heart_n in_o all_o that_o it_o desire_v and_o yet_o feel_v the_o contrary_a order_n of_o thing_n will_v so_o far_o as_o can_v be_v have_v a_o answer_n from_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n why_o it_o be_v so_o or_o so_o that_o it_o may_v have_v the_o advice_n of_o god_n in_o every_o controversy_n and_o then_o rest_v know_v his_o answer_n but_o in_o foreseeing_a that_o god_n will_v give_v the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o in_o it_o he_o may_v answer_v both_o the_o public_a and_o private_a question_n of_o man_n say_v thou_o contend_v with_o he_o that_o he_o have_v not_o answer_v to_o all_o thy_o word_n god_n speak_v once_o and_o will_v not_o repeat_v it_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v god_n answer_v not_o to_o the_o private_a voice_n of_o every_o heart_n but_o he_o give_v such_o a_o word_n by_o which_o he_o satisfi_v the_o question_n of_o all_o man_n for_o in_o the_o word_n of_o his_o scripture_n every_o one_o of_o we_o find_v our_o cause_n if_o we_o inquire_v nor_o be_v it_o needful_a that_o what_o each_o one_o suffer_v particular_o we_o shall_v ask_v a_o particular_a answer_n by_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n in_o ezek._n lib._n 1._o hom_n 9_o behold_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n bid_v the_o prophet_n when_o he_o lie_v to_o arise_v but_o he_o can_v not_o arise_v at_o all_o unless_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o almighty_a have_v enter_v into_o he_o because_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o almighty_a god_n we_o may_v endeavour_v unto_o good_a work_n but_o we_o can_v do_v they_o if_o he_o who_o command_v do_v not_o help_v so_o when_o paul_n do_v admonish_v his_o disciple_n say_v with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a work_n forth_o your_o salvation_n immediate_o he_o show_v who_o work_v these_o good_a thing_n in_o they_o say_v god_n work_v in_o you_o both_o the_o will_n and_o the_o deed_n hence_o truth_n himself_o say_v without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o but_o here_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v because_o if_o our_o good_a thing_n be_v so_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n that_o something_o in_o they_o be_v not_o we_o why_o seek_v we_o eternal_a reward_n as_o for_o work_n but_o if_o they_o be_v so_o we_o that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n why_o give_v we_o thank_v for_o they_o unto_o god_n but_o we_o must_v know_v that_o our_o evil_n be_v we_o only_o but_o our_o good_a thing_n be_v both_o god_n and_o we_o because_o he_o preveen_v we_o by_o inspire_v that_o we_o do_v will_v and_o he_o follow_v we_o by_o help_v lest_o we_o will_v in_o vain_a that_o we_o may_v fulfil_v what_o he_o will_v therefore_o by_o preven_a grace_n and_o good_a will_n follow_v that_o which_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n become_v our_o work_n which_o paul_n declare_v short_o and_o well_o say_v i_o have_v labour_v more_o than_o they_o all_o and_o lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o ascribe_v unto_o his_o own_o virtue_n what_o he_o have_v do_v he_o add_v yet_o not_o i_o but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n with_o i_o for_o because_o he_o be_v prevent_v by_o heavenly_a gift_n he_o confess_v himself_o as_o a_o stranger_n from_o his_o own_o work_n yet_o not_o i_o but_o because_o preven_a grace_n have_v make_v will_n in_o he_o free_a and_o good_a that_o by_o freewill_n he_o have_v follow_v the_o same_o grace_n unto_o the_o work_n he_o add_v but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n with_o i_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o have_v labour_v in_o the_o good_a work_n yet_o not_o i_o but_o i_o also_o for_o in_o respect_n that_o i_o be_v prevent_v by_o the_o mere_a gift_n of_o god_n not_o i_o but_o in_o respect_n that_o i_o follow_v the_o gift_n with_o my_o will_n i_o also_o these_o thing_n i_o have_v say_v short_o against_o pelagius_n and_o celestine_n truth_n himself_o say_v of_o the_o preacher_n of_o antichrist_n
so_o set_v in_o paradise_n that_o by_o his_o free_a will_v only_o he_o can_v have_v continue_v in_o holiness_n according_a to_o the_o pelagian_a error_n in_o the_o second_o part_n they_o take_v it_o ill_o that_o although_o it_o be_v say_v the_o elect_n be_v save_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o life_n eternal_a be_v prepare_v for_o those_o elect_n yet_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n have_v choose_v those_o elect_n according_a to_o his_o foreknowledge_n without_o mention_n of_o grace_n as_o if_o it_o be_v grace_n that_o the_o elect_v attain_v life_n and_o grace_v that_o life_n be_v prepare_v for_o they_o and_o it_o be_v not_o grace_n but_o foreknowledge_n that_o they_o be_v choose_v which_o be_v manifest_o contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n because_o god_n in_o choose_v they_o who_o he_o have_v predestinate_a foreknow_v not_o their_o merit_n so_o as_o that_o there_o fore_o he_o have_v choose_v they_o or_o because_o he_o foresee_v that_o of_o themselves_o they_o will_v be_v good_a but_o the_o very_a election_n that_o of_o the_o mass_n of_o perdition_n they_o be_v make_v the_o vessel_n of_o mercy_n without_o any_o good_a merit_n it_o be_v only_o grace_v by_o which_o they_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o child_n of_o perdition_n for_o the_o apostle_n diligent_o commend_v unto_o we_o this_o election_n not_o of_o merit_n but_o of_o grace_n whereby_o not_o the_o good_a work_n of_o any_o be_v foreknow_v but_o only_o divine_a mercy_n be_v prepare_v rom._n 9_o for_o the_o child_n be_v yet_o not_o bear_v nor_o have_v do_v any_o good_a or_o evil_n that_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o election_n may_v stand_v not_o of_o work_n but_o of_o he_o who_o call_v and_o 2_o tim._n 1._o according_a to_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o in_o christ_n ..._o in_o the_o three_o part_n they_o do_v note_n that_o the_o truth_n be_v deny_v and_o also_o confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n even_o of_o they_o who_o deny_v it_o while_o they_o say_v that_o god_n in_o his_o just_a judgement_n have_v forsake_v other_o that_o be_v the_o reprobate_n in_o the_o mass_n of_o perdition_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o predestinate_a but_o only_o foreknow_v that_o they_o will_v perish_v for_o how_o foreknow_v he_o only_o and_o do_v not_o predestinate_a that_o which_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n he_o do_v decree_n in_o just_a judgement_n why_o dare_v man_n accept_v in_o part_n and_o deny_v in_o part_n the_o true_a and_o perfect_a predestination_n of_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o in_o his_o eternal_a counsel_n do_v fore-ordain_a the_o righteous_a unto_o life_n and_o the_o unrighteous_a unto_o punishment_n how_o have_v he_o foreknow_v only_o and_o not_o also_o fore-ordained_n what_o by_o their_o confession_n he_o have_v discern_v in_o just_a judgement_n as_o if_o the_o almighty_a god_n have_v both_o fore-known_a and_o fore-ordained_n what_o in_o his_o just_a judgement_n he_o be_v to_o do_v unto_o the_o elect_a but_o do_v foresee_v and_o not_o fore-ordain_a what_o he_o be_v to_o do_v in_o the_o same_o just_a judgement_n concern_v the_o reprobate_a see_v on_o both_o side_n be_v the_o same_o judgement_n and_o the_o same_o righteousness_n whereby_o reward_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o righteous_a and_o punishment_n unto_o the_o unrighteous_a for_o if_o this_o predestination_n be_v violent_a or_o unjust_a or_o prejudicial_a unto_o any_o it_o shall_v no_o way_n be_v believe_v of_o he_o in_o who_o be_v no_o iniquity_n and_o see_v most_o manifest_o it_o be_v not_o violent_a because_o it_o compel_v no_o man_n to_o be_v evil_a nor_o unjust_a because_o it_o punish_v they_o only_o which_o through_o their_o own_o fault_n continue_v in_o evil_a nor_o prejudicial_a because_o it_o prejudgeth_a not_o any_o as_o if_o through_o his_o sentence_n and_o not_o their_o own_o merit_n they_o do_v perish_v what_o be_v blame_v where_o only_a equity_n and_o righteousness_n be_v find_v true_o that_o do_v divine_a predestination_n towards_o man_n which_o divine_a prescience_n also_o do_v he_o foreknow_v that_o they_o will_v be_v evil_a but_o he_o do_v not_o by_o his_o foreknowledge_n compel_v they_o to_o be_v evil_a he_o do_v predestine_v they_o to_o be_v punish_v who_o do_v continue_v in_o evil_a nor_o yet_o do_v he_o compel_v they_o by_o that_o predestination_n that_o they_o be_v or_o do_v continue_v evil_a and_o this_o be_v his_o equity_n that_o who_o willing_o continue_v in_o evil_a shall_v be_v unwilling_o punish_v ........_o these_o thing_n have_v we_o say_v to_o the_o end_n that_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v speak_v unadvised_o upon_o occasion_n of_o obscure_a doctrine_n or_o a_o perplex_a question_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v maintain_v contentious_o or_o by_o synodical_a authority_n but_o rather_o it_o may_v be_v as_o soon_o amend_v by_o acknowledge_v divine_a truth_n of_o can._n ii_o they_o complain_v that_o it_o be_v define_v confuse_o obscure_o and_o too_o brief_o and_o they_o oppose_v six_o aphorism_n out_o of_o a_o epistle_n of_o ii_o can._n ii_o pope_n celestine_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n and_o two_o out_o of_o the_o council_n at_o arausican_n which_o be_v first_o in_o the_o transgression_n of_o adam_n all_o man_n have_v lose_v natural_a power_n and_o innocency_n and_o no_o man_n can_v by_o his_o freewill_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o depth_n of_o that_o ruin_n unless_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o merciful_a god_n lift_v we_o up_o 2._o no_o man_n use_v well_o his_o freewill_n but_o by_o christ_n 3._o all_o the_o endeavour_n all_o the_o work_n and_o merit_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v refer_v unto_o the_o praise_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n because_o no_o man_n can_v please_v he_o otherwise_o but_o in_o so_o far_o as_o he_o have_v give_v 4._o god_n work_v so_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o in_o freewill_n that_o every_o holy_a thought_n godly_a purpose_n and_o each_o motion_n of_o good_a will_n be_v from_o god_n because_o by_o he_o we_o can_v do_v any_o good_a and_o without_o he_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o 5._o we_o profess_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o purpose_n and_o of_o all_o virtue_n whereby_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o faith_n we_o go_v unto_o god_n and_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o all_o the_o merit_n of_o man_n be_v preven_v by_o his_o grace_n by_o who_o it_o be_v that_o we_o begin_v to_o will_n or_o to_o do_v any_o good_a by_o which_o help_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n freewill_n be_v not_o take_v away_o but_o make_v free_a that_o of_o darken_a it_o become_v light_a of_o wicked_a upright_o of_o faint_a heal_v and_o of_o unwise_a provident_a for_o so_o great_a be_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o all_o man_n that_o he_o will_v have_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v our_o merit_n which_o be_v his_o gift_n and_o he_o will_v give_v everlasting_a reward_n according_a to_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v give_v 6._o we_o confess_v that_o the_o grace_n and_o help_v of_o god_n be_v give_v even_o to_o every_o act_n and_o it_o be_v give_v not_o according_a to_o our_o merit_n that_o it_o may_v be_v mere_a grace_n that_o be_v give_v free_o through_o his_o mercy_n who_o say_v i_o will_v show_v mercy_n on_o who_o i_o will_v show_v mercy_n 7._o we_o confess_v freewill_n although_o it_o have_v need_v of_o divine_a help_n 8._o the_o liberty_n of_o will_n be_v weaken_v in_o the_o first_o man_n can_v be_v repair_v but_o by_o grace_n 9_o the_o liberty_n of_o will_n than_o be_v free_a when_o it_o serve_v not_o sin_n for_o it_o be_v give_v such_o from_o god_n unto_o the_o first_o man_n which_o be_v lose_v can_v be_v restore_v but_o by_o he_o who_o can_v give_v it_o and_o therefore_o truth_n say_v if_o the_o son_n make_v you_o free_a you_o shall_v be_v free_a indeed_o the_o censure_n follow_v if_o it_o be_v say_v we_o have_v lose_v the_o freedom_n of_o will_n in_o the_o first_o man_n as_o if_o after_o the_o transgression_n of_o the_o first_o man_n no_o freewill_n remain_v in_o man_n it_o be_v not_o agreeable_a unto_o truth_n because_o if_o there_o be_v no_o freewill_n of_o mankind_n how_o shall_v god_n judge_v the_o world_n but_o if_o it_o be_v therefore_o say_v because_o through_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o transgression_n we_o have_v lose_v the_o virtue_n of_o freewill_n as_o it_o be_v make_v in_o the_o first_o man_n take_v heed_n lest_o that_o which_o follow_v concern_v the_o lose_a liberty_n of_o that_o will_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v by_o christ_n our_o lord_n be_v so_o say_v as_o if_o since_o we_o be_v regenerate_v by_o christ_n we_o have_v receive_v such_o a_o condition_n and_o virtue_n of_o freewill_n that_o henceforth_o we_o may_v be_v such_o in_o this_o present_a life_n as_o that_o man_n be_v before_o sin_n that_o as_o he_o be_v live_v without_o
cause_n precede_v not_o efficient_a but_o deficient_a that_o be_v the_o forsake_v of_o the_o chief_a good_a and_o covet_v inferior_a thing_n when_o the_o soul_n fall_v from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o covet_v inferior_a thing_n ....._o but_o albeit_o god_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o ill_a will_n nor_o any_o subsist_v nature_n but_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o reasonable_a creature_n fall_v from_o the_o love_n of_o the_o creator_n yet_o we_o may_v not_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o just_a revenger_n of_o our_o wicked_a thought_n or_o eternal_a predestinator_n of_o just_a judgement_n and_o vengeance_n which_o this_o fellow_n will_v by_o such_o ambiguity_n make_v void_a again_o this_o man_n say_v there_o be_v no_o predestination_n of_o god_n but_o of_o they_o who_o be_v prepare_v for_o everlasting_a blessedness_n we_o know_v sure_o that_o this_o be_v a_o error_n of_o this_o age_n ....._o it_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o the_o word_n predestination_n be_v not_o express_o mention_v yet_o because_o thing_n concern_v both_o predestination_n appear_v and_o be_v declare_v most_o open_o the_o apostle_n most_o confident_o use_v their_o testimony_n for_o confirm_v this_o doctrine_n and_o have_v give_v they_o to_o be_v so_o understand_v by_o the_o church_n teach_v we_o by_o his_o authority_n and_o example_n and_o inform_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o contentious_o and_o idle_o strive_v for_o the_o word_n predestination_n in_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n but_o by_o godly_a and_o peaceable_a understanding_n wheresoever_o the_o matter_n be_v manifest_o declare_v we_o shall_v without_o doubt_v acknowledge_v and_o maintain_v the_o predestination_n of_o god_n and_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v how_o shall_v the_o world_n be_v judge_v righteous_o who_o the_o necessity_n of_o predestination_n force_v to_o perish_v far_o be_v it_o that_o any_o of_o we_o shall_v say_v it_o because_o it_o be_v most_o open_a blasphemy_n that_o god_n by_o his_o predestination_n force_v any_o man_n to_o sin_n and_o to_o perish_v by_o sin_n but_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o predestination_n who_o continue_v in_o their_o sin_n he_o have_v decree_v to_o punish_v he_o rather_o call_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n and_o stir_v in_o they_o by_o hear_v a_o wholesome_a terror_n that_o they_o fear_v may_v be_v amend_v and_o amend_v shall_v not_o be_v damn_v it_o be_v also_o most_o false_a that_o the_o fellow_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o predestination_n of_o punishment_n for_o if_o punishment_n be_v not_o predestinate_a for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o all_o the_o wicked_a that_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v with_o they_o truth_n will_v not_o say_v go_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o where_o he_o say_v predestination_n be_v always_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n bounty_n it_o be_v also_o false_a for_o it_o be_v find_v and_o true_o understand_v of_o the_o judgement_n of_o just_a damnation_n of_o which_o damn_v through_o their_o own_o deserve_n and_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n when_o this_o man_n say_v cap._n 14._o §_o 4._o that_o they_o be_v just_o forsake_v in_o the_o damn_a mass_n according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o original_a sin_n and_o they_o be_v suffer_v to_o live_v wicked_o and_o be_v at_o last_o to_o be_v condemn_v with_o everlasting_a fire_n even_o unwilling_o and_o contradict_v himself_o he_o say_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o in_o divine_a judgement_n they_o be_v predestinate_a unto_o everlasting_a life_n for_o if_o all_o that_o mass_n be_v condemn_v certain_o it_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o without_o doubt_n unto_o everlasting_a perdition_n and_o punishment_n and_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n how_o he_o say_v cap._n 14._o that_o god_n have_v predestinate_a pain_n unto_o sinner_n and_o have_v not_o predestinate_a sinner_n unto_o pain_n for_o when_o he_o predestinate_v pain_n for_o they_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a who_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v and_o when_o he_o confess_v say_v the_o foreknowed_a if_o god_n foreknow_v certain_o who_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v with_o these_o torment_n what_o else_o do_v he_o when_o he_o prepare_v most_o certain_a pain_n for_o every_o one_o of_o they_o but_o predestinate_v they_o certain_o for_o pain_n for_o sure_o these_o only_a shall_v suffer_v who_o he_o have_v foreknow_v to_o suffer_v and_o what_o be_v it_o that_o by_o unchangeable_a prescience_n he_o have_v foreknow_v they_o for_o pain_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v that_o what_o he_o foreknow_v to_o be_v just_o he_o have_v not_o predestinate_v to_o do_v it_o just_o there_o be_v indeed_o another_o condition_n of_o man_n law_n who_o so_o ordain_v certain_a punishment_n unto_o delinquent_n that_o nevertheless_o they_o know_v not_o those_o which_o do_v sin_n thus_o or_o which_o shall_v be_v torment_v in_o these_o punishment_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v appoint_v and_o prepare_v punishment_n for_o sinner_n and_o know_v not_o that_o the_o punishment_n be_v just_a and_o yet_o not_o appoint_v for_o punishment_n the_o sinner_n who_o they_o know_v not_o at_o all_o but_o if_o they_o know_v certain_o the_o person_n which_o be_v worthy_a of_o those_o punishment_n they_o may_v just_o ordain_v they_o for_o the_o pain_n as_o they_o appoint_v the_o pain_n for_o delinquent_n as_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o judgement_n who_o they_o find_v guilty_a of_o capital_a crime_n they_o both_o rehearse_v unto_o they_o the_o death_n which_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o law_n and_o by_o open_a sentence_n they_o adjudge_v they_o unto_o death_n which_o be_v do_v by_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o judgement_n that_o they_o dare_v appoint_v as_o punishment_n for_o sinner_n so_o sinner_n for_o punishment_n see_v then_o both_o these_o be_v right_o and_o just_o do_v in_o the_o court_n of_o man_n be_v inform_v and_o direct_v according_a to_o certain_a knowledge_n that_o they_o discern_v just_o and_o irreprovable_o pain_n for_o sinner_n and_o sinner_n for_o pain_n and_o yet_o not_o any_o of_o those_o guilty_a person_n be_v compel_v unto_o sin_n by_o the_o law_n nor_o judge_n but_o only_o because_o he_o who_o have_v sin_v be_v just_o punish_v how_o much_o rather_o may_v we_o believe_v certain_o that_o this_o be_v do_v in_o divine_a judgement_n that_o because_o by_o eternal_a knowledge_n he_o know_v the_o pain_n which_o in_o justice_n be_v due_a for_o sinner_n and_o the_o sinner_n to_o who_o it_o be_v due_a see_v he_o cause_v none_o to_o sin_n he_o predestinate_v most_o just_o both_o punishment_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v most_o just_a for_o sinner_n and_o sinner_n who_o be_v never_o unknown_a unto_o he_o but_o most_o certain_o know_v by_o eternal_a verity_n for_o everlasting_a punishment_n so_o and_o more_o write_v florus_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o prudentius_n be_v in_o the_o abovenamed_a history_n vsser_n cap._n 11_o where_o among_o other_o thing_n he_o show_v that_o when_o aeneas_n who_o have_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o carisiac_a synod_n be_v to_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o paris_n prudentius_n be_v call_v unto_o his_o ordination_n do_v excuse_v himself_o by_o letter_n and_o send_v unto_o wenilo_n metropolitan_a of_o senonen_n four_o article_n which_o if_o the_o elect_a bishop_n will_v not_o subscribe_v he_o do_v protest_v that_o he_o will_v no_o way_n consent_n unto_o his_o ordination_n these_o article_n be_v first_o that_o he_o confess_v that_o as_o freewill_n be_v lose_v in_o adam_n by_o merit_n of_o disobedience_n so_o it_o be_v restore_v unto_o we_o by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o free_v now_o in_o hope_n but_o afterward_o real_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v save_v by_o hope_n that_o nevertheless_o we_o have_v always_o need_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o almighty_a god_n for_o every_o good_a work_n whether_o for_o think_v or_o beginning_n or_o work_v or_o perseverant_o perfect_v and_o that_o without_o that_o grace_n we_o can_v no_o way_n either_o think_v or_o will_v or_o do_v any_o good_a 2._o that_o he_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o in_o the_o most_o high_a and_o secret_a purpose_n of_o god_n some_o be_v by_o the_o gracious_a mercy_n of_o god_n before_o all_o age_n predestinate_v for_o life_n and_o some_o by_o his_o unsearchable_a righteousness_n be_v predestinate_v for_o pain_n to_o wit_n that_o whether_o in_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v save_v or_o condemn_v he_o have_v predestinate_v that_o which_o he_o foreknow_v he_o will_v do_v in_o judge_v as_o the_o prophet_n say_v qui_fw-la fecit_fw-la quae_fw-la futura_fw-la sunt_fw-la esa_fw-la 45._o juxta_fw-la lxx_o interp._n 3._o that_o he_o believe_v and_o confess_v with_o all_o the_o catholic_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v shed_v for_o all_o man_n believe_v in_o he_o through_o the_o world_n and_o not_o for_o
another_o reason_n the_o opinion_n of_o haymo_n be_v different_a from_o that_o exegesis_n i_o will_v name_v but_o one_o haymo_n on_o the_o revel_n lib._n 1._o near_o the_o end_n say_v the_o pillar_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v not_o only_o they_o who_o be_v more_o perfect_a as_o paul_n say_v peter_n and_o james_n and_o john_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v pillar_n etc._n etc._n here_o haymo_n not_o only_o call_v these_o three_o more_o perfect_a but_o pillar_n also_o which_o be_v more_o than_o paul_n say_v but_o this_o exegesis_n speak_v not_o so_o much_o of_o they_o for_o on_o gal._n 2._o at_o these_o word_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v something_o or_o as_o we_o have_v who_o be_v of_o reputation_n it_o be_v write_v there_o they_o seem_v unto_o themselves_o to_o be_v something_o for_o they_o do_v seem_v to_o have_v learning_n and_o virtue_n of_o themselves_o but_o they_o neither_o have_v learning_n nor_o virtue_n of_o themselves_o nor_o of_o their_o own_o merit_n and_o therefore_o although_o they_o do_v seem_v unto_o the_o people_n to_o be_v something_o they_o be_v nothing_o he_o who_o write_v so_o liberal_o of_o the_o three_o apostle_n will_v not_o probable_o have_v write_v so_o spare_o of_o they_o in_o the_o other_o place_n and_o so_o the_o author_n of_o the_o exegesis_n follow_v but_o by_o remigius_n bishop_n of_o lion_n and_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n in_o many_o particular_n follow_v will_v not_o have_v call_v peter_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n who_o then_o be_v the_o author_n of_o that_o exegesis_n the_o abovenamed_a remigius_n bishop_n of_o lion_n as_o bishop_n Ê‹sher_n prove_v loc_n cit_fw-la and_o we_o may_v find_v that_o his_o doctrine_n in_o that_o exegesis_n do_v accord_n with_o that_o which_o we_o have_v hear_v he_o do_v maintain_v concern_v election_n freewill_n etc._n etc._n as_o appear_v by_o these_o passage_n on_o rom._n 5._o he_o say_v as_o by_o adam_n sin_n and_o death_n do_v enter_v so_o by_o christ_n come_v justification_n and_o eternal_a life_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n because_o as_o by_o one_o man_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n that_o be_v into_o the_o universality_n of_o mankind_n except_o christ_n which_o be_v from_o above_o and_o by_o sin_n death_n come_v so_o death_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n have_v go_v over_o all_o man_n even_o as_o on_o the_o first_o man_n in_o who_o all_o have_v sin_v so_o by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n justification_n have_v enter_v and_o by_o justification_n life_n eternal_a ..._o for_o in_o he_o all_o man_n have_v sin_v which_o be_v in_o his_o loin_n as_o levi_n be_v in_o the_o loin_n of_o his_o father_n when_o he_o pay_v tithe_n and_o he_o say_v congruous_o that_o sin_n enter_v first_o and_o then_o death_n by_o sin_n because_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o do_v sin_n he_o become_v mortal_a as_o the_o lord_n have_v foretell_v say_v in_o whatsoever_o day_n thou_o shall_v eat_v thereof_o thou_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n he_o do_v sin_n by_o covet_v and_o eat_v and_o he_o be_v make_v mortal_a in_o sin_v among_o other_o thing_n observe_v here_o that_o remigius_n make_v no_o exception_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o universality_n of_o mankind_n but_o only_o of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v not_o except_v and_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n do_v all_o the_o ancient_n speak_v in_o this_o point_n on_o cap._n 9_o what_o man_n can_v declare_v why_o the_o almighty_a god_n do_v choose_v jacob_n before_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o reject_v esau_n when_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o can_v do_v any_o good_a or_o ill_a except_o that_o on_o he_o that_o be_v on_o jacob_n he_o will_v bestow_v his_o grace_n and_o mercy_n and_o on_o esau_n he_o will_v fulfil_v his_o just_a judgement_n ...._o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v not_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n and_o his_o predestination_n according_a to_o election_n of_o the_o good_a merit_n of_o jacob_n so_o the_o election_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o election_n of_o merit_n but_o according_a to_o the_o free_a grace_n and_o predestination_n of_o god_n therefore_o for_o what_o cause_n jacob_n be_v choose_v without_o good_a work_n and_o esau_n be_v hate_v without_o ill_a work_n it_o be_v only_o know_v unto_o god_n who_o know_v all_o thing_n before_o they_o be_v and_o who_o judgement_n be_v always_o just_a ....._o he_o say_v unto_o moses_n i_o will_v have_v mercy_n on_o who_o ..._o this_o be_v the_o order_n on_o who_o i_o will_v have_v mercy_n by_o call_v he_o unto_o my_o faith_n i_o will_v have_v mercy_n by_o give_v he_o my_o faith_n that_o he_o may_v believe_v in_o i_o and_o i_o will_v show_v compassion_n on_o he_o that_o he_o may_v live_v righteous_o and_o be_v merciful_a and_o persevere_v in_o good_a work_n according_a to_o which_o he_o shall_v receive_v the_o reward_n therefore_o not_o of_o he_o who_o will_v understand_v be_v the_o will_v nor_o of_o he_o who_o run_v be_v the_o race_n but_o of_o god_n show_v mercy_n be_v mercy_n that_o he_o give_v unto_o man_n to_o will_v good_a to_o do_v and_o to_o persevere_v the_o only_a good_a will_n be_v not_o sufficient_a unless_o also_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n prevene_v he_o unto_o this_o end_n to_o give_v unto_o he_o to_o will_v what_o be_v good_a and_o to_o perfect_v the_o same_o good_a as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v his_o mercy_n shall_v prevene_v i_o and_o his_o mercy_n shall_v follow_v i_o but_o haply_o one_o will_v say_v why_o be_v the_o elect_a reward_v or_o what_o reward_n have_v they_o deserve_v if_o both_o the_o good_a will_n and_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o good_a work_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o of_o god_n i_o answer_v therefore_o be_v the_o elect_a worthy_a of_o remuneration_n because_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o do_v perceive_v that_o they_o be_v preven_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n they_o do_v labour_n with_o all_o their_o endeavour_n to_o obey_v his_o will_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v to_o pharaoh_n the_o scripture_n speak_v not_o by_o itself_o but_o another_o by_o it_o as_o here_o god_n speak_v these_o last_o word_n i_o have_v mark_v against_o they_o which_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v dumb_a and_o dead_a at_o these_o word_n have_v not_o the_o potter_n power_n ..._o he_o say_v so_o the_o almighty_a god_n the_o potter_n of_o mankind_n have_v power_n out_o of_o the_o mass_n of_o perdition_n and_o sin_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o mass_n of_o mankind_n to_o make_v one_o vessel_n unto_o honour_n that_o be_v to_o create_v one_o for_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v be_v honour_v in_o he_o and_o that_o he_o honour_v he_o by_o call_v he_o unto_o his_o faith_n and_o by_o save_v he_o unto_o life_n and_o another_o unto_o dis-honour_n that_o be_v in_o his_o just_a judgement_n to_o destroy_v the_o reprobate_n because_o of_o their_o wickedness_n for_o of_o a_o corrupt_a mass_n all_o the_o vessel_n be_v corrupt_a but_o if_o the_o potter_n by_o the_o engine_n of_o his_o art_n will_v purify_v some_o of_o they_o from_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o mass_n by_o bake_v it_o in_o the_o fire_n may_v he_o not_o be_v magnify_v in_o those_o and_o that_o he_o suffer_v some_o unpurify_v he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v because_o he_o continue_v in_o his_o power_n for_o the_o mass_n be_v he_o on_o cap._n 11._o at_o these_o word_n i_o have_v leave_v 7000_o ..._o say_v he_o neither_o say_v he_o be_v leave_v unto_o i_o but_o i_o have_v leave_v and_o reserve_v unto_o myself_o 7000_o man_n which_o when_o other_o become_v idolater_n have_v not_o bow_v ......._o and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v because_o according_a to_o the_o election_n of_o god_n grace_n that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o gift_n of_o predestination_n the_o remnant_n be_v save_v not_o according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o work_n wherefore_o he_o say_v in_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o ephes_n as_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n in_o he_o i._n e._n in_o christ_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o unblamable_a and_n if_o of_o grace_n they_o be_v save_v who_o believe_v among_o the_o jew_n not_o now_o be_v it_o of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n by_o which_o they_o think_v to_o be_v justify_v who_o continue_v in_o infidelity_n else_o grace_n be_v not_o grace_v that_o be_v if_o they_o be_v save_v otherwise_o which_o can_v be_v but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n or_o else_o grace_v itself_o be_v not_o grace_n but_o a_o merit_n ....._o but_o the_o election_n have_v obtain_v it_o that_o be_v they_o who_o be_v choose_v out_o of_o that_o multitude_n who_o before_o he_o call_v a_o remnant_n now_o he_o call_v election_n and_o as_o before_o circumcision_n be_v take_v for_o the_o
the_o chair_n of_o peter_n as_o they_o speak_v be_v so_o abominable_a and_o wretched_a what_o be_v become_v of_o the_o line_n of_o succession_n whereof_o they_o boast_v and_o since_o that_o wicked_a generation_n do_v continue_v so_o long_a space_n of_o time_n from_o who_o have_v they_o ordination_n in_o the_o follow_a age_n and_o here_o we_o may_v remember_v what_o pope_n gregory_n the_o i_o write_v on_o job._n lib._n 34._o cap._n 2._o i_o will_v yet_o declare_v a_o sad_a thing_n by_o the_o fearful_a order_n of_o hide_a dispensation_n ere_o that_o lemathan_n shall_v appear_v in_o that_o damn_a man_n which_o he_o shall_v assume_v the_o sign_n of_o virtue_n shall_v be_v withdraw_v from_o the_o holy_a church_n for_o prophecy_n shall_v be_v hide_v the_o virtue_n of_o abstinence_n shall_v be_v diminish_v the_o word_n of_o doctrine_n shall_v cease_v and_o no_o miracle_n shall_v be_v see_v which_o thing_n indeed_o divine_a dispensation_n will_v not_o take_v away_o altogether_o but_o he_o show_v not_o these_o open_o and_o in_o plenty_n as_o in_o former_a time_n and_o this_o be_v do_v by_o admirable_a dispensation_n that_o by_o one_o thing_n both_o the_o piety_n and_o justice_n of_o god_n may_v be_v fulfil_v for_o while_n the_o sign_n of_o virtue_n be_v withdraw_v the_o church_n seem_v more_o contemptible_a both_o the_o reward_n of_o good_a man_n grow_v which_o do_v esteem_v she_o under_o hope_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o not_o for_o present_a sign_n and_o the_o mind_n of_o wicked_a man_n against_o she_o appear_v the_o more_o easy_o who_o neglect_v the_o promise_a invisible_a thing_n while_o they_o be_v not_o engage_v by_o visible_a thing_n therefore_o while_o the_o humility_n of_o believer_n be_v as_o it_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o multitude_n and_o manifestation_n of_o sign_n by_o the_o terrible_a trial_n of_o divine_a dispensation_n mercy_n be_v bestow_v on_o good_a man_n even_o by_o the_o same_o mean_n whereby_o just_a wrath_n be_v heap_v upon_o the_o wicked_a so_o far_o he_o now_o what_o do_v these_o two_o cardinal_n in_o these_o their_o lamentation_n and_o that_o pope_n in_o this_o fearful_a prophecy_n of_o divine_a dispensation_n but_o confirm_v what_o be_v the_o usual_a doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n that_o the_o church_n do_v lurk_v for_o a_o space_n of_o time_n but_o the_o romanist_n in_o these_o day_n will_v not_o hear_v this_o and_o the_o delude_a people_n be_v make_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v continue_v through_o all_o age_n in_o glorious_a majesty_n and_o yet_o even_o in_o these_o dark_a time_n be_v some_o witness_n of_o the_o truth_n although_o not_o without_o some_o dross_n of_o the_o corrupt_a age_n 2._o ambrose_n ausbert_n a_o french_a monk_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o century_n write_v commentary_n on_o the_o psalm_n and_o song_n of_o solomon_n and_o ten_o book_n on_o the_o revelation_n out_o of_o which_o i_o have_v select_v these_o testimony_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 5_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v call_v one_o book_n because_o the_o new_a can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o old_a not_o the_o old_a from_o the_o new_a for_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v the_o new_a veil_a and_o the_o new_a be_v the_o revelation_n of_o the_o old_a ......_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o peter_n bear_v the_o type_n of_o the_o church_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v upon_o i_o will_v i_o build_v thou_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 8._o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o our_o prayer_n and_o tear_n be_v offer_v unto_o god_n not_o in_o our_o name_n but_o by_o the_o great_a highpriest_n see_v paul_n exhort_v we_o say_v through_o he_o let_v we_o offer_v up_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n unto_o god_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 11._o when_o god_n render_v reward_n unto_o his_o servant_n he_o reward_v his_o own_o gift_n in_o they_o for_o he_o will_v not_o say_v he_o render_v a_o reward_n unless_o he_o have_v get_v the_o work_n of_o reward_n but_o we_o can_v not_o have_v the_o work_n of_o reward_n unless_o we_o have_v get_v from_o he_o that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o work_v in_o this_o sense_n we_o ask_v daily_o give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n if_o it_o be_v we_o why_o ask_v we_o it_o daily_o to_o be_v give_v we_o it_o be_v we_o by_o receive_v which_o be_v not_o we_o by_o have_v lib._n 6._o cap._n 13_o the_o book_n of_o predestination_n as_o it_o contain_v the_o elect_n write_v in_o it_o by_o unmovable_a eternity_n so_o by_o no_o mean_n receive_v it_o the_o reprobate_n to_o be_v write_v in_o it_o but_o why_o so_o if_o this_o be_v ask_v of_o i_o i_o answer_v brief_o because_o god_n be_v most_o good_a merciful_a meek_a and_o just_a merciful_a because_o he_o free_o save_v some_o sinner_n just_a because_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o reprobation_n and_o not_o without_o justice_n he_o condemn_v the_o ungodly_a lib._n 8._o cap._n 17_o if_o the_o ●lect_n follow_v preven_a grace_n and_o the_o reprobate_n can_v accuse_v his_o justice_n and_o cap._n 19_o grace_n go_v before_o a_o man_n to_o show_v he_o the_o way_n whither_o he_o shall_v go_v and_o grace_n follow_v he_o to_o move_v he_o unto_o that_o which_o it_o show_v ....._o in_o this_o we_o give_v glory_n unto_o god_n when_o we_o confess_v that_o by_o no_o precedent_a merit_n of_o our_o good_a work_n but_o by_o this_o mercy_n only_o we_o have_v attain_v so_o great_a dignity_n lib._n ●0_n cap._n 22_o how_o do_v he_o which_o will_v take_v that_o bless_a water_n if_o it_o be_v give_v to_o each_o one_o free_o and_o true_o say_v the_o apostle_n it_o be_v not_o of_o he_o that_o will_v or_o run_v but_o of_o god_n who_o show_v mercy_n how_o can_v he_o who_o will_v take_v it_o but_o because_o in_o both_o these_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v commend_v which_o both_o make_v the_o unwilling_a to_o become_v willing_a and_o also_o free_o bring_v the_o willing_a unto_o that_o which_o he_o desire_v as_o if_o the_o giver_n of_o that_o grace_n be_v say_v who_o be_v free_o inspire_v have_v begin_v to_o desire_v heavenly_a thing_n let_v he_o be_v confident_a that_o he_o may_v free_o attain_v those_o thing_n for_o no_o other_o but_o who_o will_v take_v the_o water_n of_o life_n free_o because_o none_o other_o be_v bring_v unto_o eternal_a life_n even_o free_o but_o he_o who_o begin_v first_o to_o will_n be_v preven_v by_o grace_n hence_o be_v it_o say_v god_n work_v in_o we_o both_o the_o will_n and_o the_o deed_n according_a to_o good_a pleasure_n but_o the_o apostle_n seem_v to_o contradict_v this_o when_o he_o say_v to_o will_n be_v present_a with_o i_o but_o how_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a i_o find_v not_o but_o know_v that_o whereas_o he_o say_v to_o will_n be_v present_a he_o know_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n that_o whereby_o he_o will_v which_o he_o himself_o prove_v say_v what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v understand_v nothing_o at_o all_o say_v then_o who_o thirst_v let_v he_o come_v ..._o that_o be_v who_o be_v unwilling_a be_v make_v willing_a by_o no_o precede_a merit_n of_o good_a work_n but_o by_o the_o gracious_a will_n of_o god_n let_v he_o drink_v abundant_o of_o the_o water_n of_o eternal_a joy_n out_o of_o the_o invisible_a fountain_n 3._o theophylact_fw-mi arch_a bishop_n of_o bulgaria_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o century_n write_v on_o the_o four_o evangelist_n and_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n his_o testimony_n be_v the_o more_o to_o be_v account_v because_o christophor_n porsena_n prior_n of_o saint_n balbina_n in_o rome_n which_o do_v first_o translate_v his_o work_n and_o then_o dedicate_v they_o unto_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o iv_o testify_v of_o he_o that_o as_o a_o bee_n he_o have_v gather_v into_o his_o honey-hive_n the_o most_o approve_a sentence_n out_o of_o many_o author_n especial_o out_o of_o chrysostom_n as_o out_o of_o a_o golden_a fountain_n he_o have_v draw_v very_o golden_a interpretation_n and_o berald_n who_o at_o the_o order_n of_o michael_n bodet_n epist_n lingonen_fw-mi do_v review_v that_o translation_n when_o it_o be_v to_o be_v reprint_v an._n 1533._o by_o jod._n bad._n ascens_fw-la say_v in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o the_o reader_n this_o be_v certain_a enough_o that_o all_o these_o commentary_n be_v pious_a and_o orthodox_n and_o differ_v far_o from_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o multitude_n of_o i_o heologian_n in_o these_o day_n do_v with_o much_o pride_n beat_v into_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o unlearned_a people_n for_o he_o not_o only_o expound_v the_o apostle_n mind_n every_o where_o but_o likewise_o refert_fw-la sapit_fw-la ac_fw-la spirat_fw-la he_o resemble_v savour_v and_o breathe_v it_o which_o or_o how_o few_o it_o can_v be_v just_o
who_o and_o another_o in_o or_o to_o who_o it_o be_v do_v god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o salvation_n and_o freewill_n be_v capable_a only_a we_o have_v will_n from_o freewill_n but_o not_o the_o power_n to_o do_v what_o we_o will_v i_o say_v not_o will_v to_o do_v good_a or_o will_v to_o do_v evil_a but_o only_o will_v for_o to_o do_v well_o be_v increase_v to_o do_v ill_o be_v decrease_v to_o will_v simple_o be_v that_o which_o increase_v or_o decrease_v create_v grace_n make_v freewill_n save_v grace_n make_v it_o to_o increase_v but_o it_o prostrate_v itself_o to_o decrease_v so_o freewill_n make_v we_o willing_a and_o grace_n make_v we_o to_o will_v well_o near_o the_o end_n he_o say_v what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v thou_o be_v create_v heal_v save_v man_n which_o of_o these_o have_v thou_o of_o thyself_o which_o of_o these_o be_v not_o impossible_a unto_o freewill_n thou_o which_o be_v not_o can_v not_o create_v nor_o be_v a_o sinner_n can_v thou_o justify_v nor_o be_v dead_a can_v raise_v thyself_o i_o do_v pass_v these_o good_a thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a unto_o they_o which_o must_v be_v heal_v and_o lay_v up_o for_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o what_o i_o say_v be_v clear_a for_o the_o first_o and_o last_o as_o none_o doubt_v of_o the_o middle_a thing_n but_o he_o who_o know_v not_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n and_o will_v set_v up_o his_o own_o not_o be_v subject_n unto_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n and_o he_o conclude_v there_o without_o doubt_n it_o be_v of_o god_n both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v according_a to_o his_o good_a will_n therefore_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o thy_o good_a work_n he_o both_o appli_v the_o will_n unto_o work_n and_o make_v the_o work_n easy_a unto_o will_n or_o if_o we_o will_v speak_v proper_o these_o which_o we_o call_v our_o merit_n be_v some_o seed_n of_o hope_n proof_n of_o love_n token_n of_o hide_a predestination_n presage_v of_o future_a felicity_n the_o way_n of_o the_o kingdom_n not_o the_o cause_n of_o reign_v in_o a_o word_n who_o he_o justifi_v not_o who_o he_o find_v just_a do_v he_o glorify_v in_o fest_n omnium_fw-la sanct._n ser._n 1._o what_o can_v all_o our_o righteousness_n avail_v before_o god_n shall_v it_o not_o be_v repute_v as_o a_o filthy_a rag_n say_v the_o prophet_n and_o if_o it_o be_v narrow_o examine_v all_o our_o righteousness_n shall_v be_v find_v unrighteousness_n and_o naught_o and_o if_o our_o righteousness_n can_v stand_v for_o itself_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o our_o sin_n therefore_o we_o must_v pray_v with_o the_o psalmist_n lord_n enter_v not_o into_o judgement_n with_o thy_o servant_n and_o with_o all_o humility_n let_v we_o flee_v unto_o mercy_n which_o only_o can_v save_v our_o soul_n and_o ser._n 2._o who_o can_v say_v i_o have_v a_o clean_a heart_n who_o can_v say_v the_o snare_n be_v break_v and_o my_o foot_n be_v safe_a from_o fall_v see_v the_o apostle_n say_v let_v he_o who_o stand_v take_v heed_n lest_o he_o fall_v and_o of_o himself_o he_o say_v o_o wretched_a man_n who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o in_o annunt_fw-la b._n mariae_fw-la serm._n 1_o thou_o must_v first_o believe_v that_o thou_o can_v not_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n but_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n next_o that_o thou_o can_v not_o have_v any_o good_a work_n unless_o he_o give_v even_o that_o three_o that_o thou_o can_v by_v no_o work_n merit_v eternal_a life_n but_o that_o it_o be_v give_v free_o for_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o faith_n who_o be_v a_o better_a man_n than_o the_o prophet_n of_o who_o god_n witness_v i_o have_v find_v a_o man_n according_a to_o my_o own_o heart_n and_o nevertheless_o he_o have_v need_n to_o say_v lord_n enter_v not_o into_o judgement_n with_o thy_o servant_n therefore_o let_v no_o man_n deceive_v himself_o in_o feria_n 4._o heb._n dom._n paenos_n worthy_a be_v the_o lamb_n which_o be_v slay_v to_o receive_v power_n for_o do_v that_o he_o come_v for_o to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n i_o mean_v a_o threefold_a sin_n wax_v on_o the_o earth_n think_v you_o that_o i_o will_v say_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o lust_n of_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o life_n indeed_o that_o be_v a_o threefold_a cord_n which_o be_v not_o easy_o break_v but_o i_o intend_v to_o speak_v of_o another_o threefold_a sin_n which_o also_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o cross_n do_v overcome_v &_o possible_o that_o may_v be_v hear_v with_o more_o profit_n the_o first_o be_v original_a another_o be_v personal_a and_o the_o three_o be_v singular_a original_a sin_n be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o sin_n which_o we_o all_o have_v from_o the_o first_o adam_n in_o who_o we_o all_o have_v sin_v and_o for_o which_o we_o all_o do_v die_v certain_o it_o be_v the_o great_a which_o have_v so_o defile_v all_o mankind_n that_o there_o be_v none_o free_a none_o save_o one_o it_o be_v extend_v from_o the_o first_o man_n until_o the_o last_o and_o this_o poison_n in_o each_o one_o run_v from_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n unto_o the_o top_n of_o the_o head_n yea_o also_o it_o be_v spread_v abroad_o through_o every_o age_n from_o the_o day_n when_o each_o man_n be_v conceive_v by_o his_o mother_n until_o that_o day_n when_o the_o common_a mother_n receive_v he_o and_o certain_o that_o original_a sin_n be_v very_o grievous_a and_o infect_v not_o only_o the_o person_n but_o even_o nature_n and_o yet_o personal_a sin_n be_v more_o grievous_a unto_o every_o one_o when_o with_o loose_a reins_o we_o give_v our_o member_n as_o weapon_n of_o unrighteousness_n unto_o sin_n be_v guilty_a now_o not_o so_o through_o the_o fault_n of_o another_o but_o by_o our_o own_o fault_n the_o singular_a fault_n be_v the_o most_o grievous_a which_o be_v do_v against_o the_o lord_n of_o majesty_n when_o wicked_a man_n kill_v a_o just_a man_n unjust_o how_o will_v thou_o lord_n make_v the_o thirsty_a drink_n of_o the_o river_n of_o thy_o pleasure_n who_o so_o do_v pour_v the_o oil_n of_o thy_o mercy_n on_o they_o who_o crucify_v thou_o it_o be_v clear_a then_o that_o this_o passion_n be_v most_o powerful_a to_o take_v away_o all_o sort_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o next_o sermon_n de_fw-fr caena_fw-la dom._n a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o holy_a sign_n or_o a_o holy_a secret_a thing_n for_o many_o thing_n be_v do_v for_o themselves_o only_o but_o other_o thing_n be_v do_v to_o sanctify_v other_o thing_n and_o these_o be_v call_v and_o be_v sign_n for_o to_o take_v example_n from_o usual_a thing_n a_o ring_n be_v give_v simple_o for_o a_o ring_n and_o there_o be_v no_o signification_n and_o it_o be_v give_v for_o invest_v into_o a_o inheritance_n and_o then_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n so_o that_o he_o which_o receive_v it_o may_v say_v this_o ring_n be_v little_a worth_n but_o the_o inheritance_n be_v i_o seek_v after_o this_o manner_n when_o the_o lord_n be_v to_o suffer_v he_o will_v invest_v his_o disciple_n in_o his_o grace_n that_o invisible_a grace_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o by_o a_o visible_a sign_n for_o this_o end_n be_v all_o the_o sacrament_n ordain_v as_o the_o eucharist_n the_o wash_n of_o foot_n and_o baptism_n the_o first_o of_o all_o sacrament_n wherein_o we_o be_v complant_v to_o the_o similitude_n of_o his_o death_n what_o be_v the_o grace_n into_o which_o we_o be_v invest_v by_o baptism_n certain_o cleanse_v away_o of_o sin_n for_o who_o can_v bring_v a_o clean_a thing_n out_o of_o unclean_a but_o he_o only_o who_o be_v clean_a and_o on_o who_o sin_n fall_v not_o even_o god_n and_o indeed_o the_o sacrament_n of_o this_o grace_n before_o be_v circumcision_n i_o have_v often_o say_v it_o unto_o you_o nor_o shall_v you_o ever_o forget_v it_o that_o in_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n we_o all_o do_v fall_v and_o we_o have_v fall_v upon_o a_o heap_n of_o stone_n and_o among_o clay_n so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o only_o defile_v but_o wound_v and_o break_v grievous_o we_o may_v be_v wash_v soon_o but_o we_o have_v need_n of_o much_o dress_n ere_o we_o be_v heal_v we_o be_v wash_v in_o baptism_n and_o thereby_o be_v the_o hand-writing_n of_o damnation_n blot_v away_o and_o this_o grace_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o that_o lust_n shall_v not_o hurt_v we_o if_o we_o do_v not_o consent_v unto_o it_o and_o so_o the_o corrupt_a matter_n of_o that_o old_a ulcer_n be_v remove_v when_o damnation_n be_v take_v off_o and_o the_o answer_n of_o death_n proceed_v from_o it_o but_o who_o can_v endure_v the_o itch_a of_o that_o ulcer_n be_v of_o good_a cheer_n that_o in_o this_o also_o grace_n will_v help_v and_o that_o you_o may_v be_v assure_v you_o
one_o and_o so_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v of_o other_o virtue_n and_o these_o good_a motion_n or_o affection_n be_v merit_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o attain_v meremur_fw-la both_o the_o increase_n of_o they_o and_o other_o thing_n which_o consequent_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o here_o or_o hereafter_o here_o if_o we_o remember_v what_o be_v say_v before_o from_o lib._n 1._o dist_n 41._o a._n there_o be_v no_o merit_n of_o mercy_n and_o then_o consider_v how_o he_o here_o define_v merit_n to_o be_v a_o good_a motion_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o remunerable_a it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o think_v not_o man_n deserve_v a_o reward_n nor_o that_o the_o reward_n be_v give_v for_o the_o work_n but_o that_o god_n of_o his_o mercy_n give_v more_o grace_n and_o other_o thing_n here_o and_o hereafter_o unto_o they_o which_o be_v heal_v by_o grace_n have_v good_a motion_n of_o mind_n and_o this_o be_v the_o large_a and_o improper_a use_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v not_o seldom_o among_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o ancient_n since_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pelagius_n and_o in_o the_o section_n g._n he_o have_v these_o word_n out_o of_o augustine_n when_o god_n do_v crown_v our_o merit_n he_o crow_v nothing_o but_o his_o own_o gift_n wherefore_o eternal_a life_n which_o god_n render_v unto_o precede_a merit_n because_o even_o these_o merit_n whereunto_o it_o be_v render_v be_v not_o of_o we_o but_o wrought_v in_o we_o by_o grace_n even_o that_o life_n be_v right_o call_v grace_n because_o it_o be_v give_v free_o or_o gracious_o neither_o be_v it_o therefore_o gracious_o because_o it_o be_v not_o give_v unto_o merit_n but_o because_o even_o these_o merit_n be_v give_v by_o grace_n unto_o who_o it_o be_v give_v but_o if_o the_o word_n merit_v be_v take_v proper_o it_o be_v a_o work_n not_o owe_v for_o which_o a_o proportionable_a reward_n be_v give_v and_o in_o this_o sense_n neither_o lombard_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o mere_a ancient_n do_v use_v that_o word_n how_o beit_a he_o use_v it_o oft_o in_o that_o large_a sense_n dist_n 32._o b._n behold_v he_o augustin_n show_v clear_o that_o sin_n be_v dimit_v in_o baptism_n not_o that_o it_o abide_v not_o after_o baptism_n but_o because_o its_o guiltiness_n be_v abolish_v in_o baptism_n and_o he_o show_v also_o that_o it_o be_v dimit_v the_o same_o way_n because_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o baptism_n concupiscence_n itself_o be_v tame_v and_o minish_v lib._n 3._o dist_n 25._o a._n that_o be_v sound_a faith_n whereby_o we_o believe_v that_o no_o man_n whether_o of_o ripe_a or_o less_o age_n can_v be_v free_v from_o the_o contagion_n of_o death_n and_o obligation_n of_o sin_n which_o he_o have_v contract_v in_o his_o first_o birth_n but_o by_o the_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o most_o wholesome_a faith_n of_o which_o man_n and_o the_o same_o be_v god_n the_o righteous_a be_v save_v which_o do_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v to_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n for_o their_o faith_n and_o we_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o therefore_o see_v all_o the_o righteous_a before_o the_o incarnation_n or_o after_o it_o do_v not_o live_v nor_o do_v live_v but_o by_o faith_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n certain_o that_o which_o be_v write_v there_o be_v no_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n by_o which_o we_o must_v be_v save_v be_v powerful_a to_o save_v mankind_n from_o that_o time_n in_o which_o it_o be_v defile_v in_o adam_n in_o lib._n 4._o he_o speak_v much_o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o dist_n 11._o he_o say_v but_o if_o you_o ask_v what_o sort_n of_o conversion_n it_o be_v whether_o formal_a or_o substantial_a or_o of_o any_o other_o sort_n i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o define_v it_o and_o i_o acknowledge_v it_o be_v not_o formal_a because_o the_o kind_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v before_o do_v continue_v both_o taste_n and_o weight_n c._n if_o you_o ask_v the_o way_n how_o it_o can_v be_v i_o answer_v short_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v safe_o believe_v but_o not_o safe_o search_v in_o lombard_n time_n transubstantiation_n be_v not_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n dist_n 12._o it_o be_v ask_v whether_o that_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v be_v proper_o a_o sacrifice_n or_o if_o christ_n be_v sacrifice_v daily_o or_o if_o he_o be_v once_o only_o sacrifice_v it_o may_v be_v answer_v short_o that_o which_o be_v offer_v and_o consecrate_v by_o the_o priest_n be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n because_o it_o be_v the_o remembrance_n and_o representation_n of_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n and_o holy_a offering_n that_o be_v make_v upon_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o christ_n die_v once_o on_o the_o cross_n and_o there_o be_v offer_v in_o himself_o but_o he_o be_v daily_o offer_v in_o the_o sacrament_n because_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o remembrace_n of_o that_o which_o be_v once_o do_v wherefore_o augustin_n say_v we_o hold_v it_o sure_o that_o christ_n rise_v from_o death_n die_v not_o now_o and_o nevertheless_o lest_o we_o forget_v what_o be_v do_v it_o be_v keep_v in_o our_o remembrance_n every_o year_n to_o wit_n so_o oft_o as_o the_o pascha_fw-la be_v celebrate_v be_v christ_n kill_v so_o oft_o but_o only_o a_o yearly_a remembrance_n represent_v what_o be_v once_o do_v and_o so_o make_v we_o to_o be_v move_v as_o if_o we_o see_v the_o lord_n on_o the_o cross_n here_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o where_o it_o be_v say_v sed_fw-la tantùm_fw-la anniversaria_fw-la recordatio_fw-la the_o master_n of_o lovane_n have_v turn_v that_o tantùm_fw-la into_o tamen_fw-la the_o one_o be_v exclusive_a but_o that_o they_o love_v not_o in_o lib._n 3._o dist_n 22._o d._n it_o be_v ask_v whether_o it_o may_v be_v say_v convenient_o that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n or_o that_o man_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n or_o be_v every_o where_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o god_n be_v say_v to_o have_v come_v from_o heaven_n and_o to_o be_v every_o where_o to_o this_o we_o say_v if_o the_o meaning_n of_o that_o sentence_n be_v refer_v unto_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o person_n it_o may_v be_v safe_o say_v but_o if_o to_o the_o distinction_n of_o nature_n it_o can_v be_v grant_v no_o way_n dist_n 27._o f._n that_o command_n thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n be_v not_o at_o all_o fulfil_v by_o man_n in_o this_o life_n but_o in_o part_n and_o not_o whole_o because_o we_o love_v in_o part_n as_o we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n therefore_o lombard_n do_v not_o believe_v perfection_n of_o man_n obedience_n not_o work_n of_o supererogation_n in_o many_o other_o particular_n he_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o trent_n it_o be_v true_a he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o have_v sacrament_n the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n name_v seven_o sacrament_n the_o father_n in_o former_a time_n take_v the_o name_n in_o a_o large_a sense_n as_o augustin_n call_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n a_o sacrament_n contra_fw-la faust_n lib._n 19_o cap._n 14._o and_o on_o psal_n 106._o he_o call_v the_o several_a mystical_a or_o allegorical_a sentence_n sacrament_n and_o after_o this_o the_o glossa_fw-la on_o gratian_n dist_n 100_o c._n siquis_fw-la call_v the_o consecration_n of_o the_o altar_n a_o sacrament_n and_o dist_n 26._o c._n acutius_n it_o say_v the_o bishop_n be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o tho._n aquines_n sum._n par_fw-fr 3._o q._n 6._o give_v the_o name_n to_o sundry_a other_o thing_n if_o then_o we_o will_v reckon_v all_o that_o be_v call_v sacrament_n they_o will_v draw_v near_o the_o number_n of_o seventy_o then_o seven_o but_o when_o the_o ancient_n speak_v more_o proper_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n they_o do_v name_n but_o two_o as_o i_o have_v note_v in_o some_o already_o but_o than_o first_o do_v lombard_n make_v this_o reckon_n lib._n 4._o dist_n 2._o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n be_v baptism_n confirmation_n the_o bread_n of_o blessing_n that_o be_v the_o eucharist_n penance_n extreme_a unction_n order_n marriage_n whereof_o some_o give_v remedy_n against_o sin_n and_o bestow_v help_a grace_n other_o be_v only_o for_o remedy_n as_o marriage_n some_o do_v support_v with_o grace_n and_o virtue_n as_o the_o eucharist_n and_o in_o the_o margin_n it_o be_v say_v nec_fw-la hic_fw-la recte_fw-la sentit_fw-la magister_fw-la and_o there_o be_v no_o small_a controversy_n among_o their_o schoolman_n for_o five_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o they_o in_o what_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v they_o any_o ground_n what_o be_v their_o sign_n nevertheless_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v accurse_v all_o man_n who_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v more_o or_o few_o
they_o call_v it_o and_o there_o they_o corrupt_v their_o judgement_n with_o apparent_a argument_n and_o with_o allege_v unto_o they_o text_n of_o logic_n of_o natural_a philautia_n metaphysic_n moral_a philosophy_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o book_n of_o aristotle_n and_o of_o all_o manner_n of_o doctor_n one_o hold_v this_o another_z that_o one_o be_v a_o real_a another_o a_o nominal_a what_o wonderful_a dream_n have_v they_o of_o their_o predicament_n universals_z second_o intention_n quiddity_n hecceity_n and_o relative_n and_o whether_o this_o proposition_n be_v true_a non_fw-la ens_fw-la est_fw-la aliquid_fw-la whether_o ens_fw-la be_v aequivocum_fw-la or_o univocum_fw-la ens_fw-la be_v a_o voice_n only_o say_v some_o ens_fw-la be_v univocum_fw-la say_v another_o and_o descend_v into_o ens_fw-la creatum_fw-la &_o increatum_fw-la per_fw-la modos_fw-la intrinsecos_fw-la when_o they_o have_v this_o way_n brawl_v 8_o 10_o or_o 12._o year_n or_o more_o and_o after_o that_o their_o judgement_n be_v utter_o corrupt_a than_o they_o begin_v their_o divinity_n not_o at_o the_o scripture_n but_o every_o man_n take_v a_o sundry_a doctor_n which_o doctor_n be_v as_o sundry_a and_o divers_a the_o one_o contrary_a unto_o the_o other_o as_o there_o be_v divers_a fashion_n and_o monstrous_a shape_n none_o like_o another_o among_o our_o sect_n of_o religion_n every_o religion_n every_o university_n and_o almost_o every_o man_n have_v a_o sundry_a divinity_n whatsoever_o opinion_n every_o man_n find_v with_o his_o doctor_n that_o be_v his_o gospel_n and_o that_o only_o be_v true_a with_o he_o and_o that_o he_o hold_v all_o his_o life_n long_o and_o every_o man_n to_o maintain_v his_o doctor_n corrupt_v the_o scripture_n and_o fashion_v it_o after_o his_o own_o imagination_n as_o a_o potter_n do_v his_o clay_n and_n in_o the_o margin_n yet_o in_o this_o they_o all_o agree_v that_o no_o man_n be_v save_v by_o christ_n but_o by_o holy_a work_n and_o that_o christ_n have_v give_v up_o his_o godhead_n unto_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o his_o power_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v give_v christ_n merit_n to_o who_o he_o will_v and_o take_v they_o from_o who_o he_o will_n of_o what_o text_n thou_o prove_v hell_n another_o will_v prove_v purgatory_n another_o lymbus_n patrum_fw-la and_o another_o the_o assumption_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o another_o will_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o same_o text_n that_o a_o ape_n have_v a_o tail_n and_o of_o what_o text_n the_o gray-friar_n prove_v that_o our_o lady_n be_v without_o original_a sin_n out_o of_o the_o same_o shall_v the_o black-frier_n prove_v that_o she_o be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n and_o all_o this_o they_o do_v with_o apparent_a reason_n with_o false_a similitude_n and_o with_o argument_n and_o persuasion_n of_o man_n wisdom_n ....._o the_o wisdom_n of_o one_o be_v that_o a_o white_a coat_n be_v best_a to_o serve_v god_n in_o another_o a_o black_a another_z a_o gray_a another_o a_o blue_a and_o while_o one_o say_v god_n will_v hear_v your_o prayer_n in_o this_o place_n another_z say_v in_o that_o place_n and_o while_o one_o say_v this_o place_n be_v holy_a another_o say_v that_o place_n be_v holy_a this_o religion_n be_v holy_a than_o that_o this_o saint_n be_v great_a with_o god_n then_o that_o and_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o such_o thing_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o you_o will_v hear_v a_o papist_n writing_n of_o those_o time_n corn._n agrip._n de_fw-fr triplici_fw-la ratione_fw-la cognoscendi_fw-la deum_fw-la c._n 4._o &_o de_fw-la vanitat_fw-la scien_fw-fr c._n 97._o describe_v they_o thus_o scholastical_a divinity_n by_o little_a and_o little_a be_v turn_v into_o sophistry_n while_o the_o latter_a theosophist_n and_o hukster_n of_o god_n word_n which_o be_v divine_n but_o by_o a_o buy_a title_n of_o so_o sublime_a a_o faculty_n have_v make_v a_o kind_n of_o logomachy_n move_v question_n forge_v opinion_n and_o do_v violence_n unto_o the_o scripture_n by_o intricate_a word_n put_v a_o strange_a sense_n upon_o they_o ready_a to_o winnow_v then_o examine_v presume_v to_o device_n many_o seminary_n of_o contention_n whereby_o they_o furnish_v matter_n of_o strife_n unto_o the_o wrangle_a sophist_n when_o they_o abstract_a form_n call_v the_o word_n genera_fw-la &_o species_n some_o cleave_v to_o the_o thing_n and_o other_o to_o the_o name_n and_o what_o they_o take_v from_o one_o they_o ascribe_v unto_o another_o and_o some_o take_v it_o indifferent_o and_o every_o one_o study_n how_o to_o prove_v his_o own_o heresy_n and_o they_o turn_v the_o sacred_a faith_n into_o sport_n and_o infidelity_n whereof_o tho._n aquin._n do_v complain_v among_o the_o wise_a of_o this_o age_n while_o they_o despise_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o choose_v unto_o themselves_o many_o question_n of_o divine_a thing_n to_o foster_n brawling_n wherein_o exercise_v their_o wit_n and_o waste_v their_o time_n they_o will_v have_v all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o divinity_n to_o consist_v in_o such_o thing_n if_o any_o will_v oppose_v unto_o they_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o shall_v hear_v anon_o the_o letter_n kill_v it_o be_v pernicious_a it_o be_v unprofitable_a but_o say_v they_o we_o must_v search_v what_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o letter_n and_o then_o turn_v to_o their_o interpretation_n gloss_n and_o syllogism_n they_o allow_v any_o sense_n rather_o than_o the_o proper_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n if_o you_o do_v urge_v they_o instant_o you_o shall_v receive_v reproach_n and_o be_v call_v a_o ass_n which_o understand_v not_o what_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o letter_n but_o as_o a_o serpent_n eat_v the_o earth_n only_o so_o that_o among_o they_o none_o be_v think_v to_o be_v divine_n but_o who_o can_v contend_v to_o purpose_n and_o give_v a_o instance_n in_o every_o matter_n and_o quick_o devise_v new_a meaning_n make_v a_o noise_n with_o so_o monstrous_a word_n that_o he_o be_v understand_v by_o none_o and_o then_o be_v they_o call_v subtle_a angelical_a seraphical_a and_o divine_a doctor_n when_o they_o talk_v so_o that_o no_o man_n understand_v they_o these_o wicked_a hypocrite_n and_o presumptuous_a sophist_n which_o as_o paul_n say_v teach_v not_o christ_n of_o good_a will_n but_o for_o strife_n have_v bring_v in_o so_o many_o heresy_n that_o the_o philosopher_n shall_v soon_o accord_v then_o these_o divine_n which_o have_v kill_v all_o that_o glory_n of_o ancient_a divinity_n with_o opinion_n of_o man_n and_o new_a error_n and_o labyrinrh_n of_o infinite_a exposition_n which_o they_o have_v devise_v under_o disguise_a title_n they_o profess_v detestable_a doctrine_n and_o false_o usurp_v the_o name_n of_o sacred_a divinity_n and_o abuse_v the_o name_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a doctor_n they_o introduce_v sect_n as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o church_n i_o be_o apollo_n i_o be_o paul_n i_o be_o cephas_n pretend_v regard_n of_o they_o by_o who_o mean_n they_o begin_v to_o know_v and_o swear_v to_o the_o word_n of_o their_o master_n they_o despise_v all_o other_o not_o regard_v what_o be_v say_v but_o who_o have_v say_v it_o and_o no_o divine_a be_v think_v to_o be_v true_o learned_a which_o have_v not_o addict_v himself_o unto_o some_o sect_n and_o maintain_v it_o stout_o and_o covet_v to_o be_v name_v and_o advance_v by_o the_o title_n thereof_o as_o a_o thomist_n albertist_n scotist_n occamist_n for_o it_o be_v no_o credit_n unto_o such_o master_n to_o be_v call_v christian_n since_o that_o name_n be_v common_a to_o butcher_n cook_n baker_n and_o every_o body_n and_o these_o sectator_n be_v divide_v again_o many_o way_n ...._o moreover_o they_o do_v forge_v so_o many_o strange_a thing_n of_o god_n so_o many_o form_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o so_o many_o idol_n of_o fantasy_n concern_v divine_a thing_n and_o they_o pull_v christ_n our_o saviour_n into_o piece_n with_o the_o wickedness_n of_o their_o opinion_n and_o clothe_v he_o with_o so_o many_o vizard_n of_o sophism_n and_o as_o a_o idol_n of_o wax_n they_o forge_v and_o reforge_v he_o into_o any_o shape_n they_o please_v by_o their_o absurd_a supposition_n that_o their_o doctrine_n may_v be_v call_v mere_a idolatry_n i_o pass_v over_o the_o debate_n and_o heresy_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n purgatory_n primacy_n the_o commandment_n of_o pope_n and_o obligation_n thereunto_o concern_v indulgence_n antichrist_n to_o come_v and_o many_o such_o thing_n wherein_o they_o show_v mad_a wisdom_n with_o the_o presumption_n whereof_o they_o be_v puff_v up_o like_o the_o giant_n in_o the_o fable_n then_o come_v to_o the_o preacher_n he_o say_v they_o make_v story_n of_o the_o saint_n with_o pious_a lie_n they_o counterfeit_v relic_n they_o devise_v miracle_n and_o which_o they_o call_v example_n plausible_a and_o terrible_a fable_n they_o number_v prayer_n weigh_v merit_n measure_v ceremony_n sell_v indulgence_n distribute_v pardon_n make_v merchandise_n of_o good_a work_n and_o by_o beg_v they_o
baptism_n penance_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n little_a or_o nothing_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 3._o he_o declare_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v the_o only_a mercy_n of_o the_o father_n promise_v free_o unto_o we_o for_o his_o son_n christ_n sake_n and_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o passion_n yet_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a with_o inward_a contrition_n charity_n and_o other_o spiritual_a grace_n and_o good_a motion_n that_o be_v when_o we_o have_v receive_v remission_n of_o our_o sin_n or_o be_v justify_v we_o must_v give_v obedience_n unto_o god_n in_o observe_v his_o law_n 4._o he_o command_v pastor_n to_o teach_v their_o people_n that_o image_n shall_v not_o be_v worship_v and_o be_v but_o representer_n of_o virtue_n and_o good_a example_n and_o therefore_o no_o incense_n knieling_n nor_o offering_n shall_v be_v do_v unto_o they_o 5._o saint_n be_v to_o be_v praise_v or_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v praise_v in_o they_o for_o their_o grace_n and_o good_a example_n that_o they_o have_v leave_v unto_o we_o but_o we_o obtain_v all_o grace_n by_o the_o only_a mediation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o none_o other_o 6._o concern_v ceremony_n as_o holy_a vesture_n holy_a water_n bearing_z candle_n on_o candlemes-day_n and_o some_o such_o other_o he_o admit_v they_o to_o be_v good_a so_o far_o as_o they_o put_v man_n in_o remembrance_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n but_o so_o that_o they_o contain_v in_o they_o no_o power_n to_o remit_v or_o take_v a_o way_n sin_n etc._n etc._n there_o he_o add_v other_o injunction_n special_o he_o causethto_o translate_v the_o bible_n and_o command_v all_o priest_n to_o have_v a_o latin_a and_o english_a bible_n lie_v open_a in_o their_o parish-church_n that_o whosoever_o please_v may_v read_v they_o then_o diverse_a image_n be_v demolish_v an._n 1538_o especial_o the_o most_o notable_a stock_n of_o idolatry_n at_o walsingham_n worchester_n ..._o which_o have_v device_n to_o role_n their_o ●ies_n and_o to_o stir_v other_o part_n of_o their_o body_n and_o many_o other_o false_a juggle_n wherewith_o simple_a people_n have_v be_v deceive_v all_o which_o be_v then_o make_v know_v and_o destroy_v jo._n fox_n in_o acts._n in_o the_o same_o year_n follow_v the_o ruin_n of_o all_o religious_a as_o they_o have_v be_v call_v house_n by_o advice_n of_o the_o same_o l-cromwell_n lord_n of_o the_o privy_a seal_n so_o that_o all_o friar_n nun_n and_o sect_n of_o religion_n be_v root_v out_o of_o england_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 645._o abbey_n priory_n and_o nunery_n and_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n their_o land_n do_v return_v to_o the_o heir_n of_o the_o first_o donour_n all_o that_o time_n steeven_fw-mi gardener_z bishop_n of_o winchester_n so_o deal_v with_o the_o king_n by_o represent_v unto_o he_o the_o grudge_n of_o his_o subject_n for_o reject_v the_o pope_n and_o for_o his_o deal_n towards_o his_o wife_n he_o have_v then_o marry_v anna_n sister_n to_o the_o duke_n of_o cleve_n an._n 1539._o and_o for_o these_o his_o late_a do_n that_o he_o persuade_v he_o for_o take_v away_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n to_o consent_v unto_o the_o burn_a of_o john_n lambert_n yea_o gardener_n prevail_v so_o that_o the_o king_n hearken_v no_o more_o unto_o l._n cromwell_n but_o contrariwise_o he_o behead_v he_o and_o walter_n l._n hungerford_n july_n 28_o an._n 1540_o tho._n cooper_n he_o make_v a_o act_n discharge_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n make_v by_o w._n tindall_n and_o restrain_v the_o authorize_v translation_n with_o many_o limitation_n an._n 34._o henr._n viii_o it_o come_v then_o to_o pass_v that_o the_o estate_n of_o religion_n seem_v more_o and_o more_o to_o decay_v and_o popish_a injunction_n be_v authorize_v establish_v transubstantiation_n vow_n of_o chastity_n private_a mass_n and_o auricular_a confession_n and_o forbid_v communion_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n wherefore_o some_o say_v henry_n have_v forsake_v the_o pope_n but_o not_o popery_n and_o he_o annul_v not_o those_o former_a statute_n such_o be_v the_o craft_n of_o the_o venomous_a serpent_n but_o god_n raise_v up_o some_o good_a instrument_n for_o thomas_n cranmer_n archb_n of_o canterburry_n resist_v gardener_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o england_n be_v divide_v some_o be_v for_o the_o old_a religion_n and_o some_o for_o the_o reform_a and_o statute_n of_o both_o sort_n be_v in_o force_n so_o in_o one_o day_n at_o smith_n field_n an._n 1541._o gardener_z with_o his_o faction_n for_o refuse_v his_o article_n cause_v burn_v three_o godly_a man_n do._n robert_n barnes_n tho._n garret_n &_o will._n jerom_n priest_n and_o though_o cranmer_n with_o his_o side_n cause_v hang_v draw_v and_o quarter_v other_o three_o ed._n powell_n ric._n fetherston_n &_o tho._n abel_n for_o deny_v the_o king_n supremacy_n and_o maintain_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n authority_n jo._n fox_n in_o acts._n a_o stranger_n behold_v these_o say_v good_a god_n how_o can_v man_n live_v here_o on_o the_o one_o side_n papist_n be_v hang_v and_o on_o the_o other_o anti-papists_a be_v burn_v the_o people_n be_v bring_v marvellous_o into_o doubt_n of_o religion_n all_o the_o number_n of_o they_o which_o suffer_v in_o england_n for_o maintain_v papacy_n which_o be_v call_v treason_n be_v 24_o person_n but_o of_o the_o other_o sort_n many_o be_v burn_v and_o so_o many_o be_v imprison_v the_o same_o year_n that_o room_n can_v not_o be_v find_v in_o the_o prison_n of_o london_n and_o many_o be_v keep_v in_o other_o house_n by_o intercession_n of_o the_o l._n chanceller_n audley_n many_o of_o they_o be_v give_v to_o the_o custody_n of_o noble_a man_n where_o they_o be_v use_v favourable_o in_o that_o year_n henry_n be_v divorce_v from_o his_o four_o wife_n by_o sentence_n of_o his_o clergy_n which_o do_v hate_v she_o for_o lutheranism_n as_o they_o speak_v yet_o with_o her_o own_o consent_n and_o within_o a_o month_n he_o marry_v catherine_n howard_n a_o brother_n daughter_n of_o the_o house_n of_o norfolk_n the_o next_o year_n she_o be_v accuse_v of_o adultery_n with_o tho._n culpeper_n and_o behead_v in_o the_o tower_n with_o jane_n lady_n rocheford_n as_o accessary_a unto_o her_o deed_n after_o that_o henry_n begin_v to_o miss_v his_o good_a counsellor_n l._n cromwell_n and_o to_o perceive_v the_o scope_n of_o gardener_n he_o write_v unto_o archbisbop_n cranmer_z to_o reform_v pilgrimage_n and_o idolatry_n and_o he_o permit_v to_o eat_v flesh_n in_o lent_n pretend_v a_o civil_a respect_n and_o the_o ben●fite_n of_o the_o people_n but_o bloody_a gardener_n cease_v not_o from_o persecution_n and_o burn_v in_o one_o fire_n ro._n testwood_n ja._n filmer_n jo._n marbeck_n and_o antony_n pierson_n at_o winchester_n an._n 1543_o and_o great_a number_n at_o calais_n among_o who_o be_v the_o abovenamed_a alex._n seton_n the_o commissioner_n of_o this_o bloody_a inquisition_n be_v restrain_v by_o the_o lord_n of_o parliament_n an._n 1545_o that_o no_o inditement_n shall_v be_v receive_v against_o any_o person_n but_o by_o the_o oath_n of_o 12._o man_n at_o least_o of_o honesty_n &_o credit_n and_o free_a of_o malice_n item_n that_o no_o person_n shall_v be_v put_v in_o ward_n before_o his_o enditement_n be_v hear_v &_o judge_v except_o at_o the_o king_n special_a command_n item_n an._n 35._o henr._n viii_o c._n 16._o it_o be_v enact_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v have_v full_a authority_n to_o appoint_v 16._o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o 16_o of_o the_o temporalty_n to_o peruse_v and_o examine_v the_o canon_n constitution_n and_o ordinance_n provincial_a and_o synodal_n and_o according_a to_o their_o discretion_n with_o his_o royal_a consent_n to_o settle_v and_o establish_v a_o order_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o time_n come_v in_o all_o spiritual_a court_n as_o these_o act_n do_v in_o some_o measure_n show_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o king_n so_o gardener_n cease_v not_o yea_o he_o spare_v not_o the_o godly_a lady_n the_o king_n six_o wife_n and_o send_v to_o apprehend_v she_o but_o by_o her_o wisdom_n and_o submission_n unto_o the_o king_n she_o be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o butcher_n hand_n in_o a_o word_n henry_n be_v much_o lead_v by_o his_o counsellor_n he_o die_v in_o january_n 1547._o when_o he_o see_v death_n approach_v he_o name_v his_o son_n edward_n to_o be_v his_o heir_n and_o fail_v he_o he_o appoint_v the_o crown_n unto_o mary_n and_o fail_v she_o unto_o elisabeth_n he_o appoint_v 16._o counselor_n as_o governor_n of_o his_o son_n among_o who_o be_v th._n cranmer_n and_z gardener_z but_o afterward_o he_o cause_v to_o blot_n out_o gardener_n name_n because_o say_v he_o he_o will_v trouble_v all_o the_o rest_n he_o be_v of_o so_o turbulent_a a_o spirit_n the_o chieff_a of_o these_o counsellor_n be_v edward_n seymer_n earl_n of_o herford_n uncle_n to_o king_n
establish_v in_o the_o session_n in_o this_o manner_n they_o debate_v of_o lecture_n and_o sermon_n but_o no_o draught_n of_o article_n can_v be_v devise_v to_o please_v they_o all_o for_o the_o prelate_n will_v curb_v the_o liberty_n of_o friet_n and_o have_v they_o to_o depend_v on_o the_o bishop_n but_o the_o legate_n sermon_n of_o sermon_n stand_v for_o the_o liberty_n grant_v by_o the_o pope_n especial_o unto_o the_o mendicant_n in_o this_o contention_n the_o legate_n send_v complaint_n unto_o rome_n namely_o against_o bracius_fw-la marcellus_n bishop_n of_o fisole_n and_o against_o the_o bishop_n of_o chioza_n crave_v that_o those_o two_o shall_v be_v remove_v from_o trent_n the_o pope_n answer_v he_o will_v send_v order_n in_o convenient_a time_n concern_v these_o two_o as_o for_o matter_n if_o they_o regard_v the_o petition_n of_o prince_n the_o synod_n shall_v be_v confuse_v and_o the_o resolution_n shall_v be_v hard_o therefore_o they_o shall_v proceed_v in_o orginal_a sin_n he_o forbid_v the_o deputy_n to_o proceed_v in_o correct_v the_o vulgar_a translation_n until_o those_o in_o rome_n have_v determine_v of_o their_o course_n the_o legate_n obey_v the_o last_o point_n but_o fear_v that_o the_o imperialist_n will_v leave_v the_o synod_n they_o treat_v in_o two_o congregation_n concern_v the_o reform_n of_o sermon_n and_o the_o philosophical_a part_n of_o they_o decree_n be_v frame_v as_o give_v way_n unto_o the_o bishosp_n yet_o so_o cunning_o that_o the_o friar_n have_v liberty_n still_o then_o they_o come_v sin_n of_o original_a sin_n to_o original_a sin_n the_o imperialist_n say_v the_o synod_n be_v assemble_v principaly_a to_o reduce_v germany_n and_o the_o article_n of_o difference_n can_v not_o be_v know_v but_o only_o unto_o he_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o stern_a of_o germany_n therefore_o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o crave_v by_o letter_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o principal_a prelate_n of_o that_o nation_n or_o the_o pope_n nuntio_n shall_v speak_v of_o this_o with_o the_o emperor_n the_o legate_n commend_v the_o advice_n but_o intend_v to_o follow_v their_o instruction_n say_v they_o will_v inform_v the_o nuntio_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n article_n may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o their_o book_n and_o debate_v for_o gain_v of_o time_n the_o imperialist_n be_v ●atiffied_v hope_v to_o put_v off_o the_o summer_n ere_o any_o thing_n be_v conclude_v so_o new_a article_n be_v propound_v as_o draw_v out_o of_o lutheran_n book_n but_o for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o be_v calumny_n as_o the_o contradictory_n canon_n do_v show_v the_o divine_n will_v not_o speak_v of_o they_o in_o that_o order_n as_o they_o be_v propound_v but_o speak_v first_o of_o adam_n transgression_n what_o sin_n it_o be_v here_o how_o many_o head_n so_o many_o opinion_n then_o they_o inquire_v what_o be_v that_o sin_n derive_v from_o adam_n some_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o augustin_n say_v it_o be_v concupiscence_n other_o follow_v anselm_n say_v it_o be_v the_o want_n of_o orginal_a righteousness_n other_o conjoin_v they_o both_o and_o those_o be_v again_o divide_v some_o follow_a bonaventura_n give_v the_o first_o place_n to_o concupiscence_n because_o it_o be_v positive_a other_o after_o aquinas_n hold_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v but_o the_o material_a part_n and_o because_o john_n scotus_n have_v follow_v anselm_n the_o franciscan_n stand_v for_o his_o opinion_n they_o be_v more_o trouble_v about_o the_o propagation_n of_o it_o but_o all_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o imitation_n only_o in_o the_o four_o place_n they_o all_o hold_v that_o inclination_n to_o ill_o be_v not_o a_o sin_n yet_o here_o the_o franciscan_n fall_v upon_o their_o cardinal_a controversy_n with_o the_o dominican_n the_o franciscan_n will_v have_v the_o bless_a virgin_n except_v express_o and_o the_o dominican_n will_v not_o cardinal_z de_fw-fr monte_fw-fr have_v much_o ado_n to_o divert_v they_o from_o this_o point_n they_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o remission_n of_o original_a sin_n that_o it_o be_v take_v away_o by_o baptism_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n be_v restore_v into_o the_o estate_n of_o innocency_n by_o a_o infuse_a quality_n which_o they_o call_v original_a grace_n albeit_o the_o punishment_n do_v remain_v for_o exercise_v of_o the_o just_a only_o antonius_n marinarus_n do_v oppose_v say_v concupiscence_n remain_v in_o they_o who_o be_v baptize_v be_v very_o a_o sin_n in_o itself_o but_o it_o be_v not_o account_v sin_n in_o they_o because_o it_o be_v cover_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n soto_n join_v with_o he_o therefore_o other_o calling_n to_o mind_n that_o late_o in_o a_o sermon_n he_o have_v condemn_v all_o trust_n in_o work_n and_o have_v call_v the_o best_a work_n of_o the_o famous_a heathen_n splendida_fw-la peccata_fw-la he_o be_v suspect_v to_o be_v a_o protestant_n they_o hold_v the_o punishment_n of_o this_o sin_n to_o be_v only_o the_o want_n of_o blessedness_n excep_v gregorius_n ariminensis_n he_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o augustin_n and_o therefore_o be_v call_v a_o tormenter_n of_o child_n when_o the_o bishop_n hear_v so_o many_o controversy_n among_o the_o divine_n they_o know_v not_o what_o to_o decern_v only_o they_o will_v condemn_v the_o article_n as_o they_o be_v propound_v marcus_n viguerius_n bishop_n of_o sinigaglia_n jerom_n general_n of_o the_o augustinian_n and_o vega_n a_o franciscan_a say_v they_o can_v not_o condemn_v a_o opinion_n as_o heretical_a unless_o they_o first_o declare_v what_o be_v truth_n but_o the_o prelate_n make_v no_o account_n of_o their_o word_n and_o be_v out_o of_o all_o hope_n to_o determine_v those_o school-point_n to_o the_o contentman_n of_o all_o party_n so_o they_o frame_v five_o canon_n and_o so_o many_o anathema_n but_o the_o dominican_n and_o franciscan_n can_v not_o be_v satisfy_v in_o the_o point_n of_o except_v the_o bless_a virgin_n until_o direction_n be_v bring_v from_o rome_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o touch_v doctrine_n which_o may_v foster_v schism_n among_o themselves_o then_o they_o be_v both_o still_v so_o that_o opinion_n be_v not_o prejudge_v therefore_o it_o be_v add_v in_o the_o decree_n they_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o comprehend_v the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o the_o pope_n add_v the_o constitution_n of_o sixtus_n 4._o shall_v be_v observe_v so_o whether_o the_o imperialist_n will_v or_o not_o the_o five_o session_n be_v hold_v juny_a 17_o the_o five_o decree_n of_o doctrine_n and_o one_o have_v two_o part_n concern_v the_o reform_n of_o lecture_n and_o sermon_n be_v read_v and_o the_o six_o session_n be_v appoint_v to_o july_n 29._o v._o in_o the_o congregation_n it_o be_v propound_v to_o speak_v first_o of_o justification_n 6._o session_n 6._o the_o imperialist_n will_v delay_v it_o for_o the_o above_o name_v reason_n but_o three_o bishop_n and_o three_o divine_n be_v name_v to_o frame_v article_n in_o the_o congregation_n for_o reformation_n the_o residence_n of_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n be_v set_v a_o soot_n concern_v justification_n 25._o article_n be_v bring_v some_o of_o work_n do_v before_o justification_n some_o of_o work_n after_o it_o and_o some_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o justification_n of_o justification_n grace_n at_o the_o first_o none_o of_o the_o divine_n know_v what_o to_o say_v because_o the_o schoolman_n have_v not_o handle_v that_o matter_n as_o the_o other_o of_o original_a sin_n until_o they_o have_v guess_v about_o and_o then_o the_o franciscan_n follow_v scotus_n say_v work_v do_v by_o power_n of_o nature_n only_o deserve_v before_o god_n by_o way_n of_o congruity_n and_o god_n be_v unjust_a if_o he_o give_v not_o grace_n to_o the_o man_n who_o do_v what_o he_o can_v the_o dominican_n follow_v thomas_n say_v no_o kind_n of_o merit_n go_v before_o grace_n and_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o good_a work_n shall_v be_v ascribe_v unto_o god_n as_o indeed_o congruous_a merit_n be_v never_o hear_v in_o the_o church_n even_o when_o they_o have_v most_o to_o do_v against_o the_o pelagian_o concern_v the_o work_n of_o grace_n all_o hold_v that_o these_o be_v perfect_a and_o do_v merit_n salvation_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o essence_n of_o grace_n it_o be_v a_o common_a consideration_n that_o the_o word_n grace_n in_o the_o first_o signification_n signify_v benevolence_n which_o in_o he_o who_o have_v power_n bring_v forth_o necessary_o a_o good_a effect_n and_o that_o be_v the_o gift_n which_o be_v also_o call_v grace_n they_o say_v the_o protestant_n think_v so_o mean_o of_o god_n majesty_n that_o they_o restrain_v the_o word_n grace_n unto_o the_o first_o signification_n and_o because_o some_o may_v say_v god_n can_v bestow_v no_o gift_n great_a than_o his_o son_n they_o say_v that_o benefit_n be_v common_a unto_o all_o man_n and_o it_o be_v fit_a he_o shall_v bestow_v a_o particular_a benefit_n on_o several_a person_n and_o this_o be_v habitual_a grace_n or_o a_o spiritual_a quality_n
to_o his_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n so_o now_o sit_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o majesty_n he_o reach_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o minister_n such_o be_v his_o divine_a virtue_n and_o power_n unto_o communicants_a his_o body_n and_o blood_n therefore_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v wont_a to_o pray_v before_o the_o communion_n let_v we_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n unto_o the_o lord_n for_o as_o in_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o the_o supper_n the_o disciple_n have_v their_o eye_n fix_v on_o the_o lord_n who_o sit_v at_o table_n reach_v unto_o they_o the_o holy_a supper_n so_o we_o shall_v lift_v up_o our_o heart_n unto_o the_o heaven_n unto_o he_o who_o sit_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o majesty_n reach_v in_o the_o supper_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o minister_n unto_o communicants_a his_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o meat_n &_o drink_n of_o the_o inward_a man_n who_o thereby_o be_v feed_v nourish_v and_o grow_v unto_o everlasting_a life_n whence_o bernard_n speak_v of_o the_o supper_n say_v this_o be_v the_o food_n not_o of_o the_o belly_n but_o of_o the_o soul_n for_o it_o be_v not_o give_v to_o repair_v the_o ruin_n of_o this_o life_n which_o be_v a_o vapour_n for_o a_o little_a time_n but_o to_o confer_v eternal_a life_n unto_o the_o soul_n and_o as_o the_o water_n be_v sprinkle_v in_o baptism_n have_v do_v its_o part_n so_o the_o bread_n eat_v and_o the_o wine_n be_v drunken_a in_o the_o h._n supper_n have_v do_v their_o part_n but_o the_o spiritual_a virtue_n be_v possess_v by_o faith_n and_o the_o verity_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v also_o maintain_v so_o heming_n about_o the_o year_n 1571._o this_o controversy_n wax_v hot_a for_o in_o witteberg_n case_n cruciger_n the_o late_a chr._n pezelius_n fr._n widebram_n henry_n moller_n and_o other_o be_v against_o the_o vbiquity_n and_o for_o it_o be_v these_o of_o jena_n chief_o and_o with_o they_o be_v sundry_a other_o town_n as_o brunswic_n luneburg_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o same_o year_n augustus_n the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n conveen_v the_o divine_n of_o witteberg_n and_o leipsich_n into_o dresda_n there_o they_o declare_v that_o they_o hold_v no_o other_o doctrine_n but_o what_o be_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o augsburg_n and_o agree_v with_o luther_n and_o melanthon_n writing_n and_o they_o publish_v their_o consent_n against_o this_o consent_n lucas_n osiander_n and_o selneccer_n and_o jacob_n andreiae_n do_v publish_v other_o book_n the_o witteberger_n write_v their_o apology_n this_o contention_n wax_v hot_a and_o hot_a until_o the_o year_n 1577._o when_v george_n count_n of_o henneberg_n in_o a_o private_a conference_n say_v unto_o the_o elector_n the_o divine_n of_o witteberg_n do_v foster_v some_o error_n which_o can_v not_o be_v dissemble_v nor_o approve_v by_o the_o sincere_a minister_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v there_o hope_v of_o true_a peace_n among_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n until_o these_o error_n be_v note_v and_o condemn_v the_o elector_n answer_v i_o wish_v a_o harmony_n and_o that_o the_o corruption_n be_v mark_v and_o that_o there_o be_v some_o beginning_n of_o so_o necessary_a and_o profitable_a a_o work_n i_o for_o my_o part_n will_v further_o it_o according_a to_o my_o power_n george_n undertake_v it_o at_o that_o time_n the_o papist_n do_v upbraid_v they_o with_o their_o division_n and_o say_v there_o be_v so_o many_o party_n among_o they_o of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n that_o if_o any_o will_v leave_v papistry_n they_o know_v not_o unto_o what_o sect_n they_o shall_v cleave_v osiandet_fw-la histo_fw-la lib._n 4._o c._n 2._o show_v another_o ground_n of_o their_o variance_n that_o since_o the_o time_n of_o that_o unhappy_a interim_n the_o corruption_n and_o error_n which_o begin_v at_o that_o time_n can_v not_o be_v amend_v and_o it_o may_v be_v add_v that_o in_o all_o the_o period_n of_o attempt_v reconciliation_n some_o do_v hold_v the_o point_v wherein_a they_o do_v agree_v at_o those_o several_a time_n and_o other_o will_v not_o accept_v they_o and_o melanthon_n who_o authority_n be_v much_o respect_v do_v for_o peace_n smooth_v his_o common_a place_n in_o the_o year_n 1546._o and_o again_o in_o the_o year_n 1558._o for_o which_o cause_n the_o rigide_a sort_n call_v he_o a_o temporizer_n as_o also_o in_o the_o year_n 1552._o he_o write_v a_o confession_n of_o faith_n to_o have_v be_v present_v unto_o the_o the_o council_n at_o trent_n this_o be_v and_o yet_o be_v call_v the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n and_o be_v subscribe_v also_o by_o the_o minister_n of_o misnia_n in_o the_o year_n 1578._o the_o elector_n and_o the_o count_n of_o henneberg_n meet_v again_o at_o the_o marriage_n of_o lewes_n duke_n of_o wurtembergh_n after_o the_o solemnity_n these_o three_o be_v together_o the_o count_n show_v the_o duke_n what_o conference_n have_v be_v before_o for_o remove_v the_o scandal_n of_o division_n then_o by_o common_a advice_n lucas_n osiander_n and_o balthasar_n bidembachius_n two_o divine_n of_o wurtembergh_n be_v appoint_v to_o pen_v some_o overture_n for_o remove_v those_o controversy_n concordiae_fw-la libre_fw-la concordiae_fw-la this_o be_v do_v so_o privy_o that_o no_o other_o know_v it_o but_o those_o prince_n yea_o their_o secretary_n hear_v not_o of_o it_o when_o those_o two_o have_v write_v their_o judgement_n be_v assemble_v at_o maulbron_n two_o divine_n of_o wurtembergh_n two_o of_o hennebergh_n and_o one_o of_o bada_fw-es they_o examine_v and_o change_v as_o they_o think_v expedient_a osiand_n lib._n cit._n cap._n 3._o then_o their_o work_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n and_o he_o cail_v for_o jacob_n andreae_n chemnitius_n and_o selneccer_n and_o give_v they_o the_o book_n they_o judge_v it_o too_o brief_a and_o enlarge_v it_o with_o other_o argument_n and_o other_o question_n this_o book_n be_v send_v then_o unto_o sundry_a university_n and_o town_n to_o be_v free_o censure_v that_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v amend_v add_v or_o impair_v they_o shall_v admonish_v ingenvous_o ibid._n cap._n 4._o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n and_o brandeburgh_n cause_v it_o to_o be_v subscribe_v by_o 8000._o to_o wit_n by_o sundry_a prince_n imperial_a town_n and_o their_o minister_n and_o it_o be_v print_v in_o the_o year_n 1580._o with_o the_o title_n libre_fw-la concordiae_fw-la it_o be_v not_o examine_v in_o a_o public_a synod_n and_o be_v still_o conceiled_a from_o those_o church_n which_o do_v oppose_v vbiquity_n and_o some_o within_o these_o prince_n dominion_n be_v displace_v for_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v it_o and_o without_o any_o reason_n so_o it_o turn_v into_o the_o book_n of_o discord_n and_o make_v the_o great_a rent_n of_o all_o the_o book_n contain_v elleven_a head_n have_v first_o lay_v this_o ground_n that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n whereby_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v and_o all_o other_o writing_n may_v be_v use_v as_o witness_n only_o the_o first_o head_n be_v of_o original_a sin_n where_o they_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o the_o nature_n nor_o any_o part_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n but_o a_o corruption_n of_o nature_n leave_v in_o man_n nothing_o sound_a or_o uncorrupt_a and_o can_v be_v know_v by_o the_o reveal_v word_n of_o god_n only_o ii_o of_o the_o freewill_n in_o the_o first_o act_n of_o regeneration_n that_o god_n work_v the_o conversion_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o word_n preach_v and_o by_o open_v the_o heart_n to_o hearken_v so_o that_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n only_o make_v man_n who_o be_v ignorant_a and_o unwilling_a to_o see_v and_z will_n iii_o of_o righteousness_n before_o god_n they_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n god-man_n for_o which_o god_n absolve_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n without_o any_o respect_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o good_a work_n either_o by_o past_a present_a or_o to_o come_v and_o faith_n trust_v in_o christ_n and_o work_v by_o love_n be_v the_o only_a instrument_n whereby_o we_o apprehend_v the_o same_o neither_o shall_v a_o true_a believer_n doubt_v of_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n notwithstanding_o his_o sin_n of_o infirmity_n iv_o concern_v good_a work_n they_o hold_v that_o these_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o justification_n nor_o of_o eternal_a life_n but_o all_o man_n especial_o the_o regenerate_a be_v debtor_n of_o good_a work_n yet_o so_o that_o they_o condemn_v those_o position_n good_a work_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n no_o man_n be_v ever_o save_v without_o good_a work_n and_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v save_v without_o good_a work_n and_o faith_n in_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v lose_v and_o the_o elect_n do_v retain_v the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o though_o they_o fall_v into_o
and_o he_o do_v so_o burn_v with_o wrath_n and_o envy_n that_o caranza_n say_v he_o do_v hate_v all_o the_o good_a work_n of_o gregory_n and_o he_o have_v burn_v all_o his_o book_n say_v platina_n if_o some_o copy_n have_v not_o be_v save_v by_o peter_n a_o deacon_n the_o burn_a of_o torch_n continual_o in_o church_n and_o the_o distinction_n torch_n torch_n of_o hour_n by_o bell_n be_v his_o device_n platin._n he_o do_v propound_v unto_o phocas_n that_o the_o title_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o gregory_n have_v so_o oft_o condemn_v but_o because_o of_o mighty_a opposition_n it_o can_v not_o so_o soon_o be_v carry_v he_o sit_v 1._o year_n and_o 5._o month_n after_o he_o the_o see_v be_v vacant_a 11._o month_n and_o 26._o day_n 3._o boniface_n iii_o being_n at_o constantinople_n be_v name_v by_o the_o emperor_n rome_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n first_o give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o now_o for_o envy_v of_o cyriacus_n be_v make_v universal_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n because_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n will_v have_v usurp_v this_o honour_n beda_n the_o sex_n aetat_fw-la &_o platin._n bar●nius_n in_o annal._n ad_fw-la a_o 606._o say_v because_o there_o be_v enmity_n betwixt_o phocas_n and_o cyriacus_n for_o envy_n of_o he_o the_o emperor_n seem_v to_o have_v favour_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n beyond_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o ancestor_n and_o do_v ordain_v by_o imperial_a edict_n that_o this_o name_n become_v the_o roman_a church_n only_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v call_v universal_a and_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n this_o title_n than_o be_v a_o novation_n but_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o it_o be_v controvert_v pope_n innocent_a the_o iii_o writing_n unto_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n lib._n 2._o ep._n 206._o give_v two_o notion_n of_o it_o say_v it_o be_v call_v the_o universal_a church_n which_o consist_v of_o all_o the_o church_n which_o in_o the_o greek_a language_n be_v call_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o according_a to_o this_o exception_n of_o the_o name_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o a_o part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n to_o wit_n the_o first_o and_o chief_a as_o the_o head_n in_o the_o body_n because_o in_o she_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o power_n and_o a_o part_n of_o that_o fullness_n be_v derive_v unto_o other_o again_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v call_v that_o one_o that_o have_v under_o she_o all_o other_o church_n and_o according_a to_o this_o reason_n of_o the_o name_n the_o roman_a church_n only_o be_v call_v universal_a because_o she_o alone_o be_v prefer_v above_o all_o other_o by_o the_o privilege_n of_o singular_a dignity_n as_o god_n be_v call_v the_o universal_a lord_n catalogue_n test_n verit_fw-la lib._n 6._o i_o will_v not_o stay_v to_o dispute_v these_o exception_n but_o observe_v the_o novation_n and_o who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o title_n and_o how_o contrary_a it_o be_v unto_o the_o epistle_n of_o gregory_n the_o i._o bellarmin_n de_fw-fr ro._n pontif._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 32._o will_v prove_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o this_o title_n because_o in_o former_a age_n some_o be_v call_v bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n it_o be_v true_a some_o be_v so_o entitle_v not_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o other_o also_o as_o may_v be_v see_v among_o the_o epistle_n of_o augustine_n and_o other_o and_o clemens_n the_o i._o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n unto_o james_n the_o lord_n brother_n call_v he_o the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n who_o govern_v the_o holy_a church_n of_o the_o hebrew_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o all_o the_o church_n which_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n be_v found_v every_o where_n here_o a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n give_v such_o great_a title_n unto_o other_o and_o athanasius_n be_v call_v bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o it_o seem_v not_o without_o disparagement_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o basilius_n magnus_n in_o his_o 49._o epistle_n write_v unto_o he_o thus_o so_o much_o the_o more_o as_o the_o disease_n of_o the_o church_n wax_v worse_o and_o worse_o so_o much_o the_o more_o do_v we_o all_o turn_n unto_o your_o dignity_n trust_v that_o your_o government_n be_v the_o only_a comfort_n which_o be_v leave_v unto_o we_o now_o will_v any_o say_v that_o either_o james_n or_o athanasius_n have_v the_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o church_n where_o then_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o basilius_n declare_v his_o mind_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v thus_o thou_o be_v think_v by_o all_o alike_o who_o either_o in_o part_n by_o hear_v or_o by_o experience_n know_v thy_o dignity_n able_a to_o help_v we_o from_o this_o horrible_a tempest_n by_o the_o power_n of_o thy_o prayer_n and_o by_o thy_o knowledge_n to_o inform_v in_o the_o affair_n that_o be_v most_o excellent_a and_o more_o clear_o in_o the_o 52._o epistle_n he_o say_v it_o seem_v enough_o to_o other_o that_o each_o one_o consider_v and_o have_v a_o care_n of_o what_o belong_v unto_o himself_o but_o unto_o thou_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o thy_o solicitude_n be_v such_o for_o all_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o for_o that_o which_o particular_o be_v by_o our_o common_a lord_n commit_v unto_o thou_o who_o indeed_o intermitte_v no_o time_n from_o conference_n admonish_v write_a and_o always_o send_v some_o who_o do_v inform_v in_o the_o best_a thing_n behold_v here_o a_o solicitude_n universal_a and_o not_o a_o jurisdiction_n universal_a but_o to_o return_v to_o boniface_n platina_n testify_v that_o this_o title_n be_v not_o give_v unto_o he_o without_o great_a contention_n for_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v allege_v that_o it_o appartain_v unto_o his_o see_n see_v there_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v that_o rome_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o a_o colony_n be_v send_v from_o thence_o unto_o constantinople_n and_o the_o emperor_n be_v call_v emperor_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o people_n of_o constantinople_n even_o at_o that_o time_n be_v call_v roman_n and_o not_o constantinopolitans_n or_o greek_n platina_n add_v i_o omit_v say_v he_o that_o peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n give_v unto_o his_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o power_n that_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o he_o he_o leave_v in_o legacy_n unto_o rome_n and_o not_o to_o constantinople_n platina_n may_v well_o have_v omit_v this_o because_o he_o can_v show_v out_o of_o any_o author_n about_o that_o time_n that_o boniface_n do_v pretend_v this_o reason_n it_o be_v true_a some_o bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o that_o time_n have_v speak_v of_o peter_n primacy_n but_o not_o in_o such_o sense_n as_o they_o do_v now_o as_o be_v clear_a from_o the_o word_n of_o gregory_n the_o i._o that_o be_v before_o and_o here_o it_o may_v be_v remember_v what_o he_o write_v to_o eulogius_n bishop_n see_v pope_n gregory_n say_v the_o power_n of_o peter_n belong_v in_o three_o see_v of_o alexandria_n lib._n 5._o ep._n 60._o saying_n one_o thing_n ti_v we_o unto_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n by_o a_o certain_a peculiarity_n and_o some_o way_n force_v we_o by_o a_o special_a law_n to_o incline_v the_o more_o unto_o her_o love_n for_o as_o all_o man_n know_v that_o the_o bless_a evangelist_n mark_n be_v send_v into_o alexandria_n by_o his_o master_n the_o apostle_n peter_n by_o the_o unity_n of_o this_o master_n and_o of_o the_o disciple_n be_v we_o tie_v that_o as_o i_o seem_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o disciple_n because_o of_o the_o master_n so_o do_v you_o sit_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o master_n because_o of_o the_o disciple_n we_o find_v not_o the_o responsory_a of_o eulogius_n but_o it_o be_v clear_a he_o do_v not_o approve_v this_o pretence_n for_o gregory_n write_v again_o unto_o he_o lib._n 6._o ep._n 37._o thus_o your_o most_o sweet_a holiness_n have_v in_o your_o epistle_n write_v many_o thing_n concern_v the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o he_o sit_v as_o yet_o in_o it_o by_o his_o successor_n and_o indeed_o i_o confess_v myself_o unworthy_a not_o only_o of_o the_o honour_n of_o ruler_n but_o to_o be_v in_o the_o rank_n of_o stander_n also_o but_o all_o that_o you_o say_v i_o accept_v glad_o because_o you_o speak_v to_o i_o of_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n who_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o albeit_o i_o have_v no_o delight_n in_o special_a honour_n nevertheless_o i_o do_v great_o rejoice_v that_o you_o
spiritual_a alliance_n do_v accurse_v the_o man_n who_o shall_v marry_v his_o godmother_n grego_n decreta_fw-la 6._o boniface_n v._o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v a_o man_n of_o singular_a virtue_n and_o bountifulness_n especial_o towards_o those_o of_o the_o clergy_n who_o be_v most_o vigilant_a in_o their_o call_n he_o ordain_v that_o so_o great_a reverence_n shall_v be_v have_v unto_o the_o impiety_n church_n a_o refuge_n of_o impiety_n place_n of_o god_n worship_n that_o whosoever_o shall_v take_v his_o refuge_n into_o a_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v take_v by_o force_n make_v the_o law_n of_o god_n against_o murderer_n and_o such_o ungodly_a man_n to_o be_v of_o no_o effect_n by_o his_o tradition_n because_o he_o love_v they_o who_o bring_v say_v i._n beda_n in_o catal._n scriptor_n illust_n and_o that_o sacrilegious_a sacrilege_n except_o sacrilege_n person_n shall_v be_v accurse_v for_o he_o hate_v they_o who_o take_v away_o in_o his_o time_n testament_n be_v of_o strength_n when_o they_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o magistrate_n but_o his_o successor_n will_v have_v this_o power_n to_o themselves_o his_o epistle_n direct_v to_o england_n as_o in_o beda_n history_n wherein_o be_v sundry_a passage_n fight_v against_o the_o perfection_n of_o christ_n satisfaction_n he_o sit_v 5._o year_n and_o die_v a_o 622._o 7._o honorius_n i._o be_v a_o monothelite_n onuphrius_n in_o annot._n in_o platin._n heresy_n a_o pope_n condemn_v of_o heresy_n and_o bellarmin_n de_fw-fr ro._n pont._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 11._o will_v purge_v he_o of_o this_o blot_n by_o the_o epistle_n of_o a_o monk_n maximus_n and_o of_o emanuel_n caleca_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 1274._o they_o can_v deny_v that_o they_o see_v in_o the_o most_o common_a book_n of_o counsel_n this_o heresy_n impute_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n as_o also_o the_o epistle_n of_o sergius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n unto_o honorius_n and_o of_o honorius_n to_o sergius_n be_v read_v in_o the_o twelve_o action_n or_o session_n and_o in_o the_o sixteenth_o action_n they_o both_o be_v accurse_v for_o that_o heresy_n and_o in_o the_o seventeen_o a_o confession_n be_v publish_v contrary_a to_o the_o error_n of_o the_o monothelite_n and_o after_o the_o confession_n honorius_n pope_n of_o old_a rome_n be_v reckon_v among_o the_o heretic_n see_v hereafter_o in_o leo_n ii_o and_o some_o among_o the_o romanist_n stick_v not_o to_o call_v he_o a_o heretic_n as_o melc_n canus_n in_o loc_n theol._n li._n 6._o c._n 8._o platina_n make_v mention_n of_o his_o great_a care_n in_o building_n of_o church_n and_o transport_v ornament_n from_o the_o temple_n of_o jupiter_n capitolinus_n into_o the_o church_n of_o st._n peter_n but_o nothing_o of_o his_o spiritual_a building_n he_o appoint_v procession_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n whence_o be_v the_o compass_v of_o church_n catal._n test_n verit_fw-la lib._n 9_o he_o sit_v 12._o year_n and_o then_o the_o seat_n be_v vacant_a 1._o year_n and_o 7._o month_n 8._o severinus_n be_v confirm_v by_o isaacius_n eparch_v of_o ravenna_n pope_n election_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o at_o that_o time_n the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v naught_o till_o he_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o emperor_n or_o his_o eparch_n platin._n isaacius_n come_v to_o rome_n for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o see_v great_a treasure_n in_o the_o lateran_n church_n he_o take_v it_o all_o away_o because_o the_o soldier_n be_v in_o great_a necessity_n in_o time_n of_o the_o war_n against_o the_o sara●ens_n yet_o he_o give_v only_o a_o part_n of_o it_o to_o the_o soldier_n and_o send_v the_o rest_n to_o ravenna_n whence_o he_o send_v a_o part_n unto_o the_o emperor_n like_v unto_o all_o other_o pope_n severinus_n be_v more_o careful_a of_o house_n then_o of_o soul_n platin._n he_o by_o epistle_n reprove_v the_o scot_n for_o observe_v penticost_n or_o easter_n on_o another_o day_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o his_o reproof_n have_v no_o place_n there_o because_o they_o be_v not_o accustom_v with_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o romish_a bishop_n say_v catal._n test_n ver_fw-la he_o sit_v 1._o year_n 2._o month_n beda_n hist_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 19_o have_v write_v saviour_n none_o free_a of_o original_a sin_n except_o our_o saviour_n a_o epistle_n at_o this_o time_n thus_o unto_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o most_o holy_a the_o scotch_a bishop_n and_o presbyter_n and_o other_o doctor_n and_o abbot_n hilarius_n arch_a priest_n and_o keep_v the_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a apostolical_a see_v john_n a_o deacon_n and_o choose_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o john_n primicerius_fw-la and_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v and_o john_n a_o servant_n and_o counsellor_n of_o the_o same_o apostolical_a see_n the_o writing_n which_o the_o bearer_n bring_v unto_o pope_n gregory_n of_o good_a memory_n he_o depart_v this_o life_n have_v not_o be_v answer_v till_o now_o which_o be_v open_v lest_o the_o mist_n of_o so_o great_a a_o question_n shall_v continue_v ......_o hereby_o we_o know_v that_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n begin_v to_o revive_v among_o you_o wherefore_o we_o exhort_v you_o earnest_o that_o so_o venomous_a a_o work_n of_o superstition_n be_v put_v from_o your_o mind_n for_o it_o can_v be_v unknown_a unto_o you_o how_o that_o execrable_a heresy_n be_v damn_v see_v it_o have_v not_o only_o be_v abolish_v out_o this_o 240._o year_n but_o it_o be_v also_o daily_o condemn_v by_o we_o by_o a_o perpetual_a anathema_n and_o be_v bury_v and_o we_o exhort_v that_o among_o you_o their_o ash_n be_v not_o stir_v up_o who_o weapon_n be_v burn_v for_o who_o will_v not_o abhor_v the_o proud_a and_o wicked_a attempt_n of_o they_o who_o say_v a_o man_n may_v be_v without_o sin_n by_o his_o proper_a will_n and_o not_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o indeed_o the_o first_o foolish_a say_n of_o blasphemy_n be_v to_o say_v a_o man_n be_v without_o sin_n which_o can_v be_v except_o the_o only_a mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v conceive_v and_o bear_v without_o sin_n for_o other_o man_n be_v bear_v with_o original_a sin_n be_v know_v to_o bear_v the_o testimony_n of_o adam_n transgression_n even_o they_o who_o be_v without_o actual_a sin_n according_a to_o the_o prophet_n say_v behold_v i_o be_v conceive_v in_o iniquity_n and_o in_o sin_n have_v my_o mother_n bear_v i_o what_o may_v be_v collect_v out_o of_o this_o epistle_n i_o leave_v unto_o all_o judicious_a reader_n only_o i_o will_v that_o this_o be_v remark_v that_o in_o the_o inscription_n they_o observe_v the_o stile_n and_o phrase_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n direct_v their_o letter_n unto_o the_o scotch_a bishop_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o neither_o at_o that_o time_n nor_o many_o age_n thereafter_o be_v any_o bishop_n in_o scotland_n but_o only_a abbot_n who_o be_v doctor_n and_o presbyter_n in_o several_a congregation_n 9_o john_n iv_o bestow_v all_o the_o treasure_n that_o isaacius_n and_o severine_n have_v leave_v on_o the_o redeem_n of_o some_o captive_n of_o his_o nation_n dalmatia_n and_o istria_n from_o the_o lombard_n he_o transport_v the_o body_n of_o vincentius_n and_o anastasius_n relic_n relic_n martyr_n from_o dalmatia_n to_o rome_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o enemy_n to_o the_o superstition_n of_o a_o more_o eminent_a place_n in_o his_o time_n lotharis_n king_n of_o the_o lombard_n a_o good_a justiciary_a and_o arrian_n do_v permit_v in_o every_o city_n of_o his_o kingdom_n two_o bishop_n one_o catholic_n as_o they_o speak_v then_o or_o orthodox_n and_o another_o arrian_n john_n sit_v 1._o year_n 9_o month_n 10._o theodorus_n i._n the_o son_n of_o theodorus_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n not_o pretend_a authority_n avail_v not_o strive_v against_o paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n because_o he_o be_v a_o monothelite_n and_o seek_v his_o deprivation_n but_o in_o vain_a for_o he_o deal_v by_o authority_n and_o not_o by_o scripture_n or_o reason_n and_o paul_n despise_v his_o authority_n lotharis_n say_v he_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o ambition_n and_o not_o inspire_v by_o a_o good_a spirit_n and_o therefore_o he_o contemn_v he_o also_o say_v he_o foster_v many_o error_n and_o reprove_v one_o only_o he_o dissuade_v the_o emperor_n constans_n from_o the_o error_n of_o the_o monothelite_n therefore_o the_o emperor_n seek_v his_o life_n thereafter_o all_o his_o care_n be_v to_o adorn_v and_o adore_v the_o body_n of_o the_o depart_a saint_n and_o their_o relic_n he_o die_v a_o 647._o 11._o martin_n i._o augment_v the_o number_n of_o holy_a day_n he_o command_v rite_n new_a rite_n the_o priest_n to_o shave_v their_o hair_n continual_o and_o that_o each_o bishop_n shall_v consecrate_v the_o chrism_n or_o holy_a ode_n yearly_a and_o send_v it_o through_o all_o the_o parish_n of_o his_o diocy_n and_o that_o all_o the_o clergy_n shall_v at_o their_o
they_o shall_v give_v sign_n and_o wonder_n that_o the_o very_o elect_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a shall_v be_v deceive_v why_o speak_v he_o as_o doubt_v see_v he_o fore-knows_a what_o shall_v be_v it_o be_v one_o of_o two_o because_o if_o they_o be_v elect_v they_o can_v be_v deceive_v and_o if_o they_o be_v deceive_v they_o be_v not_o the_o elect_v therefore_o that_o doubt_v of_o our_o lord_n word_n design_v tentation_n because_o they_o who_o be_v elect_v to_o persist_v shall_v be_v tempt_v to_o fall_v by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o preacher_n of_o antichrist_n for_o they_o shake_v but_o fall_v not_o it_o be_v say_v therefore_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a because_o they_o shall_v tremble_v and_o nevertheless_o they_o be_v call_v the_o elect_a because_o they_o fall_v not_o again_o on_o job_n lib._n 25._o cap._n 20._o in_o that_o he_o say_v he_o cause_v a_o hypocrite_n to_o reign_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n antichrist_n may_v be_v understand_v the_o head_n of_o hypocrite_n for_o that_o deceiver_n feign_v holiness_n that_o he_o may_v draw_v into_o wickedness_n but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n he_o be_v suffer_v to_o reign_v albeit_o many_o have_v not_o see_v his_o principality_n yet_o they_o serve_v his_o principality_n by_o their_o sin_n be_v they_o not_o his_o member_n who_o by_o a_o show_n of_o affect_a sancty_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v not_o certain_o they_o come_v out_o of_o his_o body_n who_o hide_v their_o iniquity_n under_o the_o cover_n of_o sacred_a honour_n and_o in_o a_o epistle_n to_o wimund_n bishop_n of_o aversa_n which_o be_v in_o gratian._n do_v c._n 8._o s●_n consuetudin_fw-fr he_o say_v if_o thou_o oppose_v custom_n observe_v what_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o be_o truth_n and_o life_n he_o say_v not_o i_o be_o custom_n but_o i_o be_o truth_n and_o true_o to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o bless_a cyprian_a whatsoever_o custom_n how_o old_a soever_o be_v altogether_o to_o be_v postpone_v unto_o truth_n and_o custom_n contrary_a unto_o truth_n shall_v be_v abolish_v in_o lib._n 7._o ep._n 1._o unto_o sabinian_n than_o his_o resident_n at_o constantinople_n among_o many_o particular_n he_o say_v show_v my_o most_o gracious_a lord_n that_o if_o i_o their_o servant_n will_v have_v meddle_v with_o the_o death_n of_o the_o lombard_n this_o day_n that_o nation_n shall_v not_o have_v have_v either_o king_n dukes_z or_o count_n and_o it_o may_v have_v be_v in_o utter_a confusion_n but_o because_o i_o fear_v god_n i_o be_o afraid_a to_o meddle_v with_o any_o man_n death_n certain_o his_o successor_n neither_o have_v carry_v themselves_o as_o loyal_a servant_n of_o the_o emperor_n nor_o have_v they_o fear_v god_n in_o this_o manner_n nor_o have_v they_o be_v so_o spare_v of_o blood_n in_o humility_n he_o first_o call_v himself_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o his_o successor_n retain_v the_o same_o title_n but_o they_o will_v not_o willing_o hear_v the_o name_n give_v they_o by_o another_o pol._n verg._n de_fw-fr invent_v rer_n lib._n 8._o cap._n 2._o for_o they_o will_v be_v lord_n of_o lord_n concern_v the_o lord_n supper_n his_o word_n be_v remarkable_a in_o dialog_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 58._o his_o body_n be_v take_v and_o his_o flesh_n be_v divide_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o people_n his_o blood_n be_v now_o pour_v forth_o not_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o unbeliever_n but_o into_o the_o mouth_n of_o believer_n therefore_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o a_o sacrifice_n this_o be_v for_o we_o which_o for_o our_o absolution_n represent_v or_o follow_v continual_o the_o passion_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n here_o though_o he_o call_v the_o brea●_n christ_n body_n and_o flesh_n and_o the_o wine_n the_o blood_n and_o the_o sacrament_n a_o sacrifice_n yet_o he_o show_v 1._o that_o the_o bread_n be_v then_o divide_v 2._o the_o wine_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o people_n 3._o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o continual_a representation_n or_o imitation_n of_o christ_n passion_n all_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n now_o nor_o can_v they_o consist_v with_o the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n upon_o other_o occasion_n we_o shall_v yet_o see_v more_o of_o gregory_n 3._o it_o be_v receive_v by_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_n in_o the_o three_o centurie_n and_o other_o degree_n purgatory_n enter_v by_o degree_n follow_v that_o the_o soul_n depart_v must_v be_v purge_v from_o corruption_n lest_o any_o unclean_a thing_n enter_v into_o heaven_n origenes_n write_v this_o purgation_n must_v be_v by_o fire_n and_o thereupon_o many_o have_v write_v of_o a_o purge_n or_o purgation_n fire_n as_o bellarmin_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr purgator_n cap._n 6._o have_v a_o role_n of_o such_o testimony_n the_o father_n do_v think_v that_o all_o man_n must_v pass_v that_o fire_n but_o they_o who_o have_v commit_v the_o most_o sin_n or_o have_v be_v most_o superficial_a in_o their_o repentance_n on_o earth_n must_v suffer_v the_o more_o pain_n so_o gregor_n nissen_n in_o orat._n pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la say_v he_o who_o go_v out_o of_o the_o body_n can_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divinity_n unless_o the_o purge_a fire_n cleanse_v away_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o origen_n in_o psal_n 36._o all_o man_n must_v come_v to_o that_o fire_n even_o paul_n or_o bellarm._n de_fw-la purg._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 1._o theodoret._n on_o cor._n 3._o say_v the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v reveal_v i._n e._n the_o day_n of_o judgement_n if_o any_o man_n work_n abide_v doctor_n teach_v heavenly_a thing_n but_o the_o hearer_n do_v choose_v according_a to_o their_o own_o mind_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v but_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o sharp_a and_o great_a examination_n and_o they_o that_o have_v live_v right_o that_o fire_n shall_v make_v they_o more_o glorious_a than_o gold_n or_o silver_n but_o they_o who_o have_v commit_v iniquity_n it_o shall_v burn_v up_o like_o wood_n and_o hay_n but_o the_o teacher_n of_o good_a thing_n shall_v not_o suffer_v punishment_n but_o shall_v be_v judge_v worthy_a of_o salvation_n for_o this_o he_o say_v he_o shall_v be_v save_v to_o wit_n the_o teacher_n and_o the_o work_n shall_v be_v burn_v that_o be_v they_o who_o have_v make_v themselves_o evil_a work_n for_o if_o we_o read_v the_o word_n so_o we_o shall_v perfect_o find_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v write_v etc._n etc._n you_o see_v he_o differ_v from_o the_o former_a concern_v the_o faithful_a teacher_n they_o who_o think_v that_o all_o shall_v suffer_v do_v pray_v for_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o who_o die_v in_o hope_n of_o resurrection_n so_o exclude_v the_o reprobate_n only_a as_o be_v manifest_a in_o some_o greek_a liturgy_n who_o say_v we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o o_o lord_n sacrifice_n for_o the_o patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n martyr_n and_o especial_o for_o the_o bless_a mother_n of_o god_n and_o we_o remember_v all_o the_o faithful_a who_o be_v dead_a bellarm._n loc_fw-la among_o other_o he_o quote_v lactantius_n firmian_n as_o a_o teacher_n of_o purgatory_n his_o unsolid_a and_o different_a opinion_n be_v institut_fw-la lib._n 7._o cap._n 21._o thus_o all_o soul_n abide_v in_o one_o place_n until_o the_o great_a day_n and_o then_o they_o must_v all_o be_v examine_v by_o fire_n they_o who_o have_v be_v perfect_o righteous_a and_o who_o be_v they_o if_o the_o word_n be_v take_v strict_o shall_v not_o feel_v the_o fire_n they_o who_o have_v not_o be_v so_o godly_a shall_v quick_o pass_v through_o the_o fire_n and_o be_v cinge_v about_o and_o the_o wicked_a shall_v burn_v for_o ever_o but_o basilius_n surname_v the_o great_a when_o he_o be_v a_o die_a do_v expect_v to_o be_v receive_v quick_o among_o the_o angel_n and_o gregor_n nazianzen_n who_o write_v his_o life_n do_v believe_v that_o his_o soul_n depart_v shall_v be_v receive_v in_o the_o eternal_a tabernacle_n and_o with_o basil_n behold_v the_o bless_a trinity_n neither_o do_v any_o of_o the_o father_n before_o augustine_n dream_n of_o such_o a_o place_n in_o hell_n where_o they_o say_v this_o purge_n be_v before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n nor_o speak_v they_o of_o any_o place_n thereof_o and_o so_o they_o know_v not_o of_o such_o a_o inn_n in_o hell_n which_o the_o romanist_n now_o call_v the_o place_n of_o purgatory_n yea_o the_o jesuit_n duraeus_n count_v whitek_n fol._n 338._o and_o bellar._n de_fw-fr purgat_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o say_v expresselie_o that_o the_o father_n expound_v that_o text_n 1_o cor._n 3._o of_o a_o metaphorical_a fire_n and_o in_o cap._n 6._o of_o that_o book_n bellarm._n say_v neither_o the_o father_n nor_o gregory_n himself_o know_v where_o purgatory_n be_v nor_o petrus_n damianus_n who_o live_v 400._o year_n after_o
figure_n of_o a_o coal_n in_o the_o tongue_n of_o the_o two_o testament_n which_o be_v lift_v from_o the_o altar_n do_v purge_v the_o lip_n of_o the_o prophet_n esay_n who_o by_o the_o only_a union_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v free_a and_o live_v mix_v with_o the_o dead_a and_o he_o the_o lord_n by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n cause_v that_o all_o soul_n who_o like_o dead_a coal_n have_v their_o understanding_n darken_v with_o ungodliness_n be_v not_o kindle_v but_o now_o be_v inflame_v with_o vicinity_n thereof_o now_o that_o they_o be_v kindle_v with_o the_o flame_n of_o the_o love_n of_o their_o spouse_n it_o be_v the_o proper_a gift_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n word_n lib._n 3._o christ_n be_v make_v the_o meat_n and_o drink_n of_o his_o church_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n lib._n 6._o whatsoever_o a_o teacher_n or_o pastor_n of_o soul_n teach_v unless_o he_o show_v it_o proceed_v from_o the_o almighty_a god_n in_o the_o old_a and_o new-testament_n he_o be_v a_o murderer_n of_o soul_n and_o again_o the_o word_n and_o example_n of_o they_o from_o who_o the_o milk_n of_o doctrine_n be_v pour_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o hearer_n shall_v always_o feed_v on_o the_o flower_n not_o of_o the_o low_a writing_n of_o worldly_a man_n but_o of_o the_o high_a apostolical_a mountain_n ib._n lib._n 1._o because_o the_o power_n of_o our_o will_n be_v not_o able_a to_o climb_v so_o high_a as_o we_o must_v ascend_v run_v after_o god_n therefore_o the_o church_n cry_v draw_v i_o after_o thou_o lib._n 4._o whosoever_o will_v escape_v from_o the_o enemy_n who_o power_n be_v in_o the_o air_n let_v he_o keep_v the_o right_a faith_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o hole_n of_o the_o rock_n which_o bless_v paul_n demonstrate_v 8._o about_o the_o year_n 780._o the_o old_a controversy_n concern_v god_n predestination_n adrian_n the_o pelagian_a controversy_n be_v renew_v in_o spain_n and_o confute_v by_o pope_n adrian_n and_o man_n freewill_n be_v renew_v in_o spain_n some_o say_n that_o predestination_n unto_o life_n or_o death_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o not_o in_o man_n power_n other_o ask_v why_o shall_v we_o endeavour_v to_o live_v holy_o if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o other_o ask_v why_o shall_v we_o pray_v unto_o god_n that_o we_o be_v not_o overcome_v in_o tentation_n if_o it_o be_v in_o our_o power_n or_o liberty_n of_o will_n at_o that_o time_n pope_n adrian_n do_v write_v unto_o the_o spanish_a bishop_n and_o propound_v unto_o their_o consideration_n what_o upon_o the_o like_a occasion_n fulgentius_n epist_n ruspen_n about_o the_o year_n 455._o have_v write_v unto_o eugyppius_n against_o a_o sermon_n of_o a_o pelagian_a the_o word_n of_o the_o pelagian_a be_v they_o who_o affirm_v that_o some_o be_v destinate_a unto_o life_n and_o other_o unto_o death_n do_v trample_v grace_n in_o themselves_o damnable_o while_o they_o admit_v it_o for_o they_o reprehensive_o only_a behold_v with_o what_o knot_n of_o impiety_n they_o do_v tie_v themselves_o if_o i_o be_v predestinate_v unto_o good_a it_o be_v needless_a that_o i_o resist_v evil_a but_o if_o i_o be_v bear_v unto_o evil_n it_o avail_v i_o not_o to_o do_v good_a and_o so_o on_o both_o side_n the_o desire_n of_o praise_n and_o godliness_n be_v stop_v one_o become_v secure_a and_o another_o desperate_a and_o thereby_o all_o exercise_n of_o righteousness_n be_v make_v void_a prayer_n cease_v and_o work_v faint_v but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o and_o therefore_o let_v we_o pray_v incessant_o because_o the_o lord_n say_v pray_v without_o intermission_n lest_o you_o enter_v into_o tentation_n and_o let_v we_o strive_v against_o all_o sin_n not_o only_o by_o prayer_n but_o with_o diligence_n also_o because_o the_o lord_n witness_v that_o each_o one_o shall_v receive_v according_a to_o their_o own_o work_n the_o answer_n of_o fulgentius_n which_o pope_n adrian_n do_v approve_v and_o send_v be_v thus_o god_n have_v prepare_v his_o work_n of_o mercy_n and_o righteousness_n in_o his_o unchangeable_a eternity_n and_o as_o he_o be_v never_o ignorant_a of_o his_o future_a work_n so_o he_o be_v never_o improvident_a in_o the_o preparation_n of_o those_o work_n therefore_o he_o have_v prepare_v good_a work_n for_o they_o who_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v and_o to_o the_o same_o who_o be_v to_o be_v glorify_v he_o have_v prepare_v reward_n but_o unto_o the_o wicked_a he_o have_v not_o prepare_v evil_a will_n or_o evil_a work_n but_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o they_o just_a and_o everlasting_a punishment_n this_o be_v the_o eternal_a predestination_n of_o the_o future_a work_n of_o god_n which_o as_o we_o know_v to_o be_v continual_o insinuate_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o we_o preach_v confident_o for_o bless_a paul_n both_o evident_o and_o often_o teach_v we_o the_o predestination_n of_o they_o who_o god_n save_v free_o for_o he_o say_v of_o god_n who_o he_o foreknow_v they_o he_o predestinate_v and_o who_o he_o predestinate_v they_o also_o he_o call_v cerrtain_o not_o other_o but_o who_o he_o have_v predestinate_v they_o do_v he_o call_v and_o justify_v nothing_o in_o the_o work_n be_v uncertain_a because_o nothing_o in_o his_o predestination_n fail_v therefore_o god_n begin_v the_o work_n of_o his_o predestination_n by_o vocation_n and_o consummate_v they_o by_o glorification_n and_o yet_o not_o in_o they_o all_o who_o he_o call_v but_o unto_o they_o who_o love_n god_n all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o good_a unto_o they_o who_o be_v call_v according_a to_o his_o purpose_n therefore_o let_v all_o believer_n keep_v the_o truth_n of_o predestination_n because_o whosoever_o believe_v not_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n in_o this_o predestination_n shall_v not_o attain_v unto_o the_o glorious_a effect_n of_o the_o same_o predestination_n but_o whosoever_o be_v not_o predestinate_v unto_o glory_n be_v without_o doubt_n find_v to_o be_v appoint_v unto_o punishment_n which_o be_v know_v to_o be_v predestinate_v in_o god_n preparation_n that_o thereby_o infidelity_n and_o impiety_n may_v be_v punish_v wherefore_o the_o bless_a apostle_n judas_n say_v certain_a man_n be_v creep_v in_o unaware_o who_o of_o old_a be_v fore-ordained_n to_o this_o judgement_n of_o our_o god_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v wary_o that_o the_o wicked_a be_v ordain_v not_o unto_o sin_n but_o unto_o judgement_n that_o be_v not_o unto_o impiety_n but_o unto_o punishment_n for_o they_o be_v not_o predestinate_a unto_o this_o wicked_a impiety_n which_o they_o commit_v but_o unto_o the_o punishment_n which_o they_o receive_v in_o divine_a equity_n wherefore_o whereas_o th●_n author_n of_o that_o sermon_n say_v let_v we_o pray_v incessant_o because_o the_o lord_n say_v pray_v without_o cease_v and_o then_o let_v we_o wrestle_v against_o all_o sin_n not_o only_o by_o prayer_n but_o with_o diligence_n let_v we_o humble_o seek_v grace_n from_o god_n that_o we_o may_v have_v it_o continual_o work_v with_o we_o by_o which_o god_n will_v both_o keep_v we_o in_o diligence_n and_o when_o the_o work_n be_v do_v bring_v we_o unto_o the_o reward_n etc._n etc._n this_o epistle_n of_o pope_n adrian_n be_v among_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o charles_n the_o great_a do_v cause_n to_o be_v collect_v into_o one_o volumn_n an._n 791._o 9_o at_o that_o time_n be_v great_a contention_n for_o receive_v the_o mass_n of_o pope_n gregory_n oppose_v gregory_n mass_n be_v exalt_v and_o oppose_v into_o the_o church_n first_o by_o authority_n of_o pope_n adrian_n and_o then_o of_o king_n charles_n some_o church_n have_v one_o directory_n and_o some_o another_o who_o will_v not_o change_v when_o the_o pope_n see_v so_o great_a opposition_n and_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v that_o it_o be_v not_o small_a when_o the_o pope_n be_v put_v to_o such_o a_o shift_n he_o say_v he_o will_v refer_v it_o unto_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whether_o he_o will_v by_o any_o visible_a sign_n approve_v the_o mass_n of_o gregory_n or_o of_o ambrose_n so_o these_o two_o book_n be_v lay_v together_o upon_o the_o altar_n in_o saint_n peter_n church_n and_o he_o call_v upon_o god_n to_o show_v which_o of_o the_o two_o he_o approve_v the_o door_n be_v shut_v all_o night_n and_o the_o next_o morning_n when_o they_o return_v into_o the_o church_n the_o book_n of_o ambrose_n be_v find_v lie_v as_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o and_o the_o other_o be_v all_o tear_v and_o disperse_v through_o the_o church_n the_o pope_n make_v the_o comment_n if_o we_o will_v believe_v jacob_n de_fw-fr voragine_fw-la in_o vita_fw-la gregor_n that_o the_o mass_n of_o ambrose_n shall_v lie_v untouched_a and_o the_o mass_n of_o gregory_n shall_v be_v use_v through_o the_o world_n and_o so_o he_o do_v authorise_v and_o command_v that_o it_o
from_o she_o and_o apollinaris_n who_o say_v christ_n be_v god_n and_o flesh_n only_o and_o never_o assume_v a_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o pelagius_n who_o say_v christ_n be_v not_o the_o redeemer_n of_o infant_n because_o they_o be_v conceive_v without_o iniquity_n and_o bear_v of_o their_o mother_n without_o sin_n and_o have_v no_o sin_n to_o be_v forgive_v they_o and_o so_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o saviour_n of_o all_o the_o elect_n and_o also_o other_o heretic_n who_o deny_v the_o lord_n who_o buy_v they_o with_o the_o price_n of_o his_o blood_n because_o they_o preach_v he_o not_o as_o truth_n show_v he_o but_o as_o they_o have_v feign_v and_o therefore_o be_v become_v stranger_n from_o the_o redeemer_n they_o do_v expect_v nothing_o certain_o but_o the_o pit_n of_o perdition_n he_o write_v three_o book_n on_o the_o song_n of_o song_n whereof_o the_o first_o be_v only_o in_o refutation_n of_o another_o book_n write_v by_o julian_n his_o epistle_n to_o celanen_n in_o campania_n a_o pelagian_a for_o a_o taste_n behold_v what_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 1._o page_n julian_n teach_v that_o we_o by_o arbitrement_n of_o freewill_n may_v do_v good_a thing_n what_o we_o will_v albeit_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n we_o may_v perfect_v they_o the_o more_o easy_o as_o traveller_n may_v walk_v on_o foot_n but_o with_o less_o turmoil_n without_o doubt_n if_o they_o ride_v on_o a_o horse_n he_o have_v no_o mind_n of_o the_o apostle_n admonition_n say_v work_v out_o your_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a for_o it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o you_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v and_o which_o be_v more_o weighty_a he_o be_v a_o adversary_n to_o he_o who_o say_v not_o without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v some_o little_a thing_n but_o say_v he_o without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o and_o he_o teach_v that_o those_o only_o can_v behold_v the_o hide_a mystery_n of_o the_o law_n who_o instruction_n and_o piety_n have_v make_v wise_a forget_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o reveal_v the_o hide_a thing_n of_o scripture_n even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a and_o idiot_n as_o the_o evangelist_n say_v then_o he_o open_v unto_o they_o their_o understanding_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o evangelist_n witness_v that_o they_o be_v unlearned_a when_o he_o say_v they_o see_v the_o constancy_n of_o peter_n and_o john_n and_o know_v that_o they_o be_v without_o letter_n and_o idiot_n do_v admire_v and_o he_o say_v that_o holy_a and_o generous_a love_n ingraft_v in_o we_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o light_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o nature_n and_o unto_o our_o last_o old_a age_n lean_v to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o mind_n may_v continue_v without_o any_o loss_n of_o its_o vigour_n certain_o he_o believe_v not_o the_o lord_n word_n without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o nor_o what_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o many_o thing_n we_o all_o offend_v in_o these_o word_n beda_n confute_v both_o the_o pelagian_o and_o semipelagian_o of_o justification_n he_o say_v on_o luke_n 1_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a be_v not_o to_o presume_v of_o righteousness_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o to_o seek_v salvation_n by_o faith_n that_o although_o they_o be_v under_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o they_o shall_v understand_v that_o they_o be_v save_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n for_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n and_o peter_n say_v of_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n that_o neither_o we_o nor_o our_o father_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o but_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v saby_n the_o grace_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o they_o and_o on_o 1_o pet._n 4._o god_n be_v honour_v by_o our_o work_n when_o all_o that_o we_o do_v well_o or_o according_a to_o his_o will_n we_o give_v it_o not_o all_o unto_o our_o merit_n but_o to_o his_o grace_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n what_o evil_a we_o do_v we_o depute_v it_o only_o unto_o our_o ignorance_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v on_o cant._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 6._o the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_n because_o it_o be_v build_v through_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o one_o peace_n and_o one_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o be_v fill_v with_o one_o and_o the_o same_o consort_n of_o the_o spirit_n from_o which_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n she_o be_v call_v a_o dove_n and_o she_o be_v call_v perfect_a not_o because_o she_o only_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o people_n of_o the_o righteous_a but_o also_o be_v perfect_v by_o receive_v all_o divine_a grace_n and_o virtue_n here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o restrain_v or_o subject_v the_o church_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o de_fw-fr tabernac_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o it_o be_v say_v unto_o peter_n metaphorical_o upon_o this_o rock_n that_o be_v on_o our_o saviour_n who_o he_o have_v confess_v will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o on_o revel_n 21_o when_o it_o be_v say_v foundation_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n the_o teacher_n or_o grace_n be_v mean_v when_o foundation_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n he_o be_v mean_v who_o be_v foundation_n of_o foundation_n here_o be_v no_o prerogative_n of_o peter_n above_o the_o other_o apostle_n of_o prayer_n on_o prov._n chap._n 2._o he_o say_v we_o shall_v invocate_v or_o pray_v unto_o none_o but_o god_n of_o christ_n redemption_n on_o 1_o john_n chap._n 2._o at_o these_o word_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o he_o say_v the_o lord_n be_v a_o propitiation_n not_o for_o they_o only_o unto_o who_o live_v then_o in_o the_o flesh_n john_n do_v write_v but_o also_o for_o all_o the_o church_n which_o be_v disperse_v in_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o world_n even_o from_o the_o first_o elect_v unto_o the_o last_o who_o shall_v be_v bear_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n this_o he_o write_v express_o against_o the_o donatist_n but_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n he_o condemn_v the_o restriction_n thereof_o unto_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o particular_a place_n and_o when_o he_o limit_v the_o propitation_n unto_o the_o elect_n he_o condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o christ_n death_n for_o the_o reprobate_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v behold_v how_o john_n observe_v that_o humility_n which_o he_o teach_v certain_o he_o be_v a_o just_a and_o great_a man_n who_o have_v drink_v the_o secret_n of_o mystery_n from_o the_o lord_n breast_n and_o nevertheless_o he_o say_v not_o you_o have_v i_o your_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n but_o we_o have_v a_o advocate_n and_o he_o say_v we_o have_v and_o not_o you_o have_v he_o will_v rather_o put_v himself_o in_o the_o number_n of_o sinner_n that_o he_o may_v have_v christ_n to_o be_v his_o advocate_n than_o put_v himself_o a_o advocate_n for_o christ_n and_o be_v find_v among_o the_o proud_a which_o shall_v be_v damn_v for_o all_o do_v the_o head_n make_v request_n of_o who_o it_o be_v write_v who_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n and_o intercede_v for_o we_o the_o lord_n intercede_v for_o we_o not_o by_o word_n but_o by_o miseration_n and_o he_o add_v the_o just_a because_o the_o just_a advocate_n will_v not_o plead_v unjust_a cause_n how_o shall_v not_o the_o just_a one_o defend_v we_o in_o judgement_n if_o now_o we_o acknowledge_v and_o accuse_v ourselves_o unjust_a why_o shall_v he_o not_o be_v just_a who_o now_o by_o tear_n be_v earnest_n saevit_fw-la against_o his_o own_o unrighteousness_n here_o he_o speak_v express_o of_o intercession_n and_o he_o acknowledge_v no_o intercessor_n in_o heaven_n but_o the_o head_n for_o all_o who_o mourn_v for_o their_o sin_n of_o perseverance_n he_o say_v on_o col._n 4._o at_o the_o end_n where_o the_o apostle_n say_v i_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n be_v confident_a that_o he_o who_o have_v begin_v the_o good_a work_n in_o you_o he_o will_v perfect_v it_o until_o what_o else_o do_v he_o promise_v but_o perseverance_n till_o the_o end_n through_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o when_o the_o apostle_n judas_n say_v unto_o he_o who_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v you_o without_o offence_n do_v he_o very_o clear_o show_v that_o perseverance_n in_o good_a until_o the_o end_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n in_o the_o first_o place_n beda_n show_v the_o certainty_n of_o perseverance_n as_o a_o thing_n promise_v and_o in_o the_o other_o he_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o work_n of_o man_n by_o himself_o alone_o even_o though_o the_o man_n be_v renew_v but_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o on_o rom._n 8._o he_o say_v we_o shall_v stand_v the_o call_v whereby_o they_o be_v elect_v not_o who_o be_v elect_v because_o they_o shall_v believe_v but_o who_o be_v
bold_a reprover_n of_o king_n he_o become_v a_o shameless_a flatterer_n of_o pope_n for_o he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v first_o move_v the_o decree_n in_o gratian._n do_v 40._o cap._n si_fw-mi quis_fw-la if_o a_o pope_n carry_v with_o he_o innumerable_a soul_n into_o hell_n no_o man_n ought_v to_o say_v unto_o he_o what_o do_v thou_o he_o speak_v so_o and_o afterward_o the_o pope_n do_v aim_v at_o exemption_n from_o censure_n until_o they_o do_v attain_v it_o he_o have_v from_o rome_n a_o power_n legantine_n in_o germany_n neither_o preach_v he_o only_o unto_o the_o heathen_n but_o do_v corrupt_v several_a province_n where_o christ_n have_v be_v preach_v as_o thuringia_n argentina_n etc._n etc._n with_o roman_a manicheism_n condemn_v some_o meat_n forbid_v marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o permit_v to_o have_v nun_n or_o whore_n urge_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n in_o a_o word_n his_o care_n be_v not_o so_o much_o for_o christianism_n as_o for_o papism_n for_o he_o write_v unto_o pope_n zachary_n say_v how_o few_o soever_o disciple_n god_n give_v i_o in_o this_o my_o charge_n i_o cease_v not_o to_o incline_v they_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_n he_o cause_v the_o monastery_n of_o eulda_n to_o be_v build_v in_o favour_n of_o english_a man_n and_o be_v kill_v at_o borna_n be_v suspect_v of_o a_o conspiracy_n 5._o many_o do_v preach_v and_o write_v against_o he_o and_o his_o superstition_n as_o adelbert_n rite_n the_o opposer_n of_o his_o rite_n a_o french_a bishop_n and_o sidonius_n a_o archbishop_n of_o bavaria_n samson_n a_o scot_n bishop_n of_o auxerre_n and_o virgilius_n a_o irish_a man_n bishop_n of_o juvavia_n as_o nauclerus_fw-la and_o aventine_n do_v record_n boniface_n dilate_v they_o unto_o pope_n zachary_n and_o as_o bern._n lutzenburg_n in_o catol_n write_v the_o pope_n in_o a_o synod_n at_o rome_n condemn_v they_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o priesthood_n and_o excommunicate_v they_o before_o they_o be_v hear_v and_o when_o they_o seek_v to_o be_v hear_v and_o plead_v their_o cause_n in_o a_o synod_n boniface_n deny_v access_n unto_o they_o and_o say_v excommunicate_v man_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o a_o synod_n nor_o have_v the_o benefit_n of_o the_o law_n so_o partly_o by_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o partly_o by_o authority_n of_o pippin_n boniface_n do_v oppress_v all_o his_o adversary_n catal._n test_n ver_fw-la ex_fw-la vita_fw-la bonifac._n particular_o one_o clemens_n do_v reprove_v boniface_n 1._o that_o he_o do_v so_o advance_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n see_v all_o teacher_n be_v equal_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o that_o he_o condemn_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n 3._o that_o he_o do_v speak_v too_o much_o for_o the_o monkish_a life_n 4._o that_o he_o have_v anoint_v the_o king_n of_o france_n contrary_a to_o the_o undoubted_a right_n of_o the_o merovei_n 5._o that_o he_o appoint_v mass_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o other_o new_a rite_n unknown_a in_o the_o church_n heretofore_o aventin_n annal._n lib._n 3._o &_o epist_n zachar._n ad_fw-la bonif._n in_o tom_n 2._o council_n 6._o albine_n or_o alcwin_n have_v good_a knowledge_n of_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a language_n doctrine_n alcwin_n and_o his_o doctrine_n charles_n the_o great_a call_v he_o his_o master_n in_o a_o epistle_n write_v unto_o he_o deseptuage_n &_o sexage_n biblioth_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr bigne_fw-fr tom_fw-mi 3._o where_o be_v some_o of_o his_o work_n on_o ps_n 51._o he_o write_v thus_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o the_o father_n then_o will_v thou_o accept_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o righteousness_n that_o be_v the_o most_o glorious_a passion_n of_o the_o son_n who_o offer_v himself_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o all_o man_n that_o they_o may_v attain_v salvation_n which_o the_o world_n do_v not_o deserve_v by_o their_o work_n ibid._n when_o i_o look_v on_o myself_o i_o find_v nothing_o in_o i_o but_o sin_n thy_o righteousness_n must_v deliver_v i_o it_o be_v thy_o mercy_n and_o not_o my_o merit_n that_o save_v i_o we_o be_v quicken_v by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o not_o by_o our_o merit_n in_o his_o work_n he_o often_o use_v the_o word_n merit_n but_o here_o we_o may_v see_v in_o what_o sense_n he_o and_o other_o do_v understand_v it_o on_o the_o four_o poenit_fw-la ps_n i_o can_v defile_v myself_o but_o i_o can_v cleanse_v myself_o unless_o thou_o lord_n jesus_n do_v cleanse_v i_o by_o sprinkle_v thy_o holy_a blood_n no_o good_a can_v be_v in_o we_o unless_o it_o be_v thy_o work_a grace_n who_o have_v make_v we_o on_o ps_n 118._o thou_o have_v make_v i_o to_o be_v desirous_a of_o thy_o commandment_n make_v i_o also_o able_a to_o do_v help_v that_o i_o may_v do_v what_o thou_o commend_v and_o give_v what_o thou_o command_v and_o in_o another_o place_n freewill_n abide_v as_o yet_o in_o man_n by_o nature_n that_o in_o who_o god_n will_v he_o may_v be_v please_v to_o make_v free_a by_o grace_n that_o they_o have_v not_o a_o evil_a will_n for_o since_o the_o first_o man_n by_o freewill_n be_v sell_v under_o sin_n the_o freedom_n of_o man_n be_v evil_a because_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o will_n be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o freewill_n which_o goodness_n none_o can_v have_v of_o himself_o unless_o he_o have_v it_o be_v help_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n mercy_n without_o who_o help_n freewill_n can_v neither_o turn_v unto_o god_n nor_o make_v any_o progress_n unto_o god_n he_o have_v the_o like_a word_n in_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-la trinit_fw-la cap._n 8._o on_o eccles_n cap._n 1._o the_o sun_n christ_n inlightn_v all_o thing_n with_o the_o splendour_n and_o virtue_n of_o his_o spiritual_a grace_n in_o who_o punishment_n be_v our_o salvation_n he_o arise_v to_o they_o who_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o he_o go_v down_o to_o every_o unbeliever_n ibid._n cap._n 3._o we_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o this_o spiritual_a pleasure_n of_o meat_n and_o drink_n not_o only_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o in_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n also_o where_o we_o may_v eat_v and_o drink_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n ibid._n cap._n 7._o let_v we_o consider_v the_o work_n of_o god_n how_o great_a and_o wondrous_o they_o be_v and_o how_o in_o his_o free_a mercy_n he_o have_v choose_v one_o and_o in_o his_o just_a judgement_n he_o despise_v another_o as_o it_o be_v write_v of_o the_o twin_n i_o have_v love_v jacob_n and_o hate_v esau_n in_o praefa_fw-la lib._n 1._o de_fw-la trinit_fw-la we_o shall_v all_o pray_v that_o the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o only_o quicken_v mankind_n and_o only_o do_v sanctify_v may_v be_v true_o fix_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n by_o one_o confession_n ca._n 1._o although_o we_o be_v throw_v down_o from_o the_o joy_n of_o bless_a felicity_n into_o the_o miserable_a blindness_n of_o this_o exile_n for_o the_o just_a punishment_n of_o original_a sin_n yet_o we_o be_v not_o so_o cut_v off_o that_o even_o in_o this_o changeable_a and_o temporary_a estate_n we_o know_v not_o to_o seek_v and_o desire_v eternity_n truth_n and_o blessedness_n which_o be_v clear_a in_o that_o we_o have_v not_o a_o will_v to_o die_v nor_o be_v deceive_v nor_o be_v miserable_a whence_o be_v this_o natural_a instinct_n that_o all_o man_n will_v be_v bless_v although_o this_o appetite_n be_v diverse_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o particular_a person_n some_o think_v to_o be_v bless_v in_o riches_n the_o whole_a divine_a scripture_n exhort_v we_o to_o be_v lift_v up_o from_o earthly_a unto_o heavenly_a thing_n where_o be_v true_a and_o eternal_a blessedness_n unto_o which_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o none_o can_v attain_v but_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n peace_n in_o praefa_fw-la lib._n 2._o all_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a book_n serve_v unto_o we_o to_o make_v we_o believe_v right_o of_o god_n and_o to_o love_v he_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n but_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n mind_n be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v the_o most_o excellent_a light_n of_o god_n majesty_n unless_o it_o be_v enlighten_v by_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n through_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n grace_n therefore_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o the_o i_fw-mi of_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v cleanse_v to_o see_v how_o proper_o the_o trinity_n be_v the_o one_o and_o only_o and_o true_a god_n and_o how_o right_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v say_v understand_v and_o believe_v to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 1._o what_o do_v the_o human_a nature_n in_o the_o man_n christ_n deserve_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v assume_v into_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n what_o good_a will_n what_o desire_v of_o
good_a purpose_n what_o good_a work_n do_v precede_v whereby_o that_o man_n do_v deserve_v to_o be_v one_o person_n with_o god_n yea_o to_o be_v very_a god_n to_o wit_n god_n himself_o even_o he_o by_o who_o man_n begin_v begin_v not_o to_o be_v another_o then_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o only_a the_o only_o beget_v and_o proper_o and_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o be_v make_v flesh_n very_o god_n that_o as_o every_o man_n be_v one_o person_n even_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o flesh_n so_o christ_n be_v one_o person_n the_o word_n and_o flesh_n whence_o be_v so_o great_a glory_n unto_o human_a nature_n by_o no_o precede_a merit_n without_o doubt_n by_o the_o free_a and_o gracious_a gift_n but_o only_o here_o the_o great_a and_o only_a grace_n of_o god_n be_v evident_o show_v unto_o they_o who_o consider_v faithful_o and_o sober_o to_o the_o end_n man_n may_v understand_v that_o they_o be_v justify_v from_o their_o sin_n by_o the_o same_o free_a grace_n by_o which_o it_o be_v that_o the_o man_n christ_n can_v have_v no_o sin_n ibid._n cap._n 12._o certain_o no_o man_n can_v have_v peace_n with_o god_n but_o by_o the_o mediator_n christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v in_o two_o nature_n very_a god_n and_o very_a man_n one_o christ_n both_o priest_n and_o sacrifice_n he_o come_v unto_o we_o to_o offer_v for_o we_o what_o he_o have_v assume_v of_o we_o that_o he_o may_v take_v away_o from_o we_o that_o which_o he_o find_v in_o we_o that_o be_v our_o sin_n ibid._n cap._n 21._o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n what_o each_o man_n work_n be_v the_o fire_n shall_v declare_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o purgatory_n fire_n which_o fire_n the_o ungodly_a shall_v feel_v one_o way_n and_o the_o godly_a another_o way_n and_o the_o righteous_a another_o way_n see_v the_o ungodly_a shall_v from_o the_o torment_n of_o the_o fire_n be_v throw_v into_o everlasting_a flame_n but_o the_o godly_a who_o shall_v rise_v in_o their_o body_n without_o all_o blot_n of_o sin_n and_o who_o have_v build_v gold_n silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n upon_o the_o foundation_n which_o be_v christ_n they_o shall_v escape_v that_o fire_n with_o so_o great_a facility_n as_o with_o integrity_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n of_o christ_n they_o have_v keep_v the_o command_n in_o this_o life_n and_o that_o fire_n of_o doomsday_n shall_v be_v unto_o they_o as_o the_o furnace_n of_o babylon_n be_v unto_o the_o three_o child_n who_o without_o all_o harm_n of_o that_o fire_n shall_v call_v upon_o the_o beauty_n of_o all_o the_o creature_n unto_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n but_o some_o just_a man_n be_v subject_a to_o some_o small_a sin_n because_o upon_o the_o foundation_n which_o be_v christ_n they_o have_v build_v stone_n hay_n and_o straw_n which_o be_v cleanse_v by_o the_o heat_n of_o that_o fire_n from_o which_o they_o be_v cleanse_v shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o everlasting_a glory_n and_o so_o by_o that_o transitory_a fire_n and_o the_o whole_a judgement_n of_o that_o day_n be_v complete_v two_o congregation_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o ungodly_a shall_v be_v sever_v the_o one_o of_o christ_n and_o the_o other_o of_o the_o devil_n so_o he_o expound_v not_o that_o text_n of_o a_o purgatory_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n on_o the_o psalm_n of_o degree_n at_o the_o word_n of_o psal_n 130._o if_o thou_o lord_n will_v mark_v iniquity_n he_o say_v he_o expound_v out_o of_o what_o depth_n he_o do_v cry_v that_o be_v from_o the_o gulf_n of_o his_o sin_n which_o as_o a_o deluge_n have_v go_v over_o his_o head_n understand_v that_o all_o his_o life_n be_v full_a of_o tentation_n therefore_o he_o say_v who_o can_v stand_v if_o thou_o judge_v only_a righteousness_n unto_o we_o and_o show_v not_o mercy_n none_o can_v stand_v for_o we_o be_v all_o the_o child_n of_o wrath_n but_o we_o have_v more_o hope_n of_o thy_o mercy_n but_o not_o of_o our_o merit_n on_o john_n chap._n 6._o this_o be_v to_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o to_o drink_v his_o blood_n even_o to_o abide_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v he_o abide_v in_o we_o and_o therefore_o who_o abide_v not_o in_o christ_n certain_o he_o eat_v not_o his_o flesh_n spiritual_o although_o carnal_o and_o visible_o he_o do_v press_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o rather_o he_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n of_o so_o great_a a_o thing_n for_o damnation_n to_o himself_o because_o he_o be_v unclean_a presume_v to_o come_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n which_o none_o take_v worthy_o but_o who_o be_v clean_a as_o it_o be_v write_v bless_a be_v the_o pure_a in_o heart_n for_o contra_fw-la felic_n vrgelit_fw-la lib._n 2._o show_v we_o any_o nation_n or_o el●pant_n alcwin_n write_v against_o the_o error_n of_o felix_n and_o el●pant_n town_n or_o church_n either_o roman_a which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o church_n or_o constantinopolitan_a or_o of_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v dedicate_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n himself_o or_o of_o antiochia_n where_o first_o the_o name_n of_o christianity_n be_v read_v to_o have_v be_v or_o of_o alexandria_n or_o of_o any_o other_o church_n either_o in_o italy_n or_o germany_n or_o in_o france_n or_o in_o aquitania_n or_o in_o britan_n which_o agrree_v with_o you_o in_o your_o assertion_n here_o he_o acknowledge_v all_o these_o to_o be_v true_a church_n at_o that_o time_n and_o distinguis_fw-la h_v they_o one_o from_o another_o and_o where_o he_o call_v the_o roman_a the_o head_n of_o church_n certain_o he_o understand_v not_o that_o other_o church_n have_v their_o original_n from_o rome_n see_v he_o say_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v dedicate_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n himself_o and_o christian_n have_v their_o first_o name_n at_o antioch_n both_o which_o be_v before_o there_o be_v any_o mention_n of_o a_o church_n at_o rome_n when_o felix_n come_v to_o a_o synod_n at_o regensburg_n where_o be_v priest_n from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a empire_n as_o alcwin_n speak_v contra_fw-la elipant_fw-la lib._n 1._o his_o error_n be_v accurse_v and_o nevertheless_o he_o continue_v in_o his_o error_n till_o at_o the_o command_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a alcwin_n write_v these_o book_n and_o then_o he_o become_v zealous_a for_o the_o truth_n and_o do_v write_v a_o recantation_n unto_o the_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n of_o his_o church_n that_o as_o he_o have_v be_v a_o scandal_n unto_o they_o so_o by_o his_o mean_n they_o may_v be_v bring_v again_o from_o error_n unto_o the_o truth_n as_o he_o himself_o write_v and_o this_o recantation_n be_v print_v among_o the_o work_n of_o alcwin_n but_o elipant_n archbishop_n of_o toledo_n have_v read_v these_o seven_o book_n of_o alcwin_n write_v very_o bitter_o for_o maintain_v the_o same_o error_n he_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v but_o one_o person_n in_o two_o nature_n in_o one_o eternal_a and_o equal_a with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o same_o unity_n of_o his_o person_n remain_v inseparable_o be_v also_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n the_o father_n and_o he_o be_v one_o unum_fw-la and_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n he_o come_v not_o to_o do_v his_o own_o will_n but_o the_o will_n of_o he_o who_o send_v he_o but_o as_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n he_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o the_o father_n so_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o flesh_n he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n adoptive_a and_o nuncupative_a it_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v by_o the_o way_n that_o felix_n have_v say_v christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o flesh_n be_v the_o old_a man_n and_o have_v need_n of_o regeneration_n but_o elipant_n do_v not_o write_v so_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o his_o last_o point_n he_o allege_v several_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n of_o augustine_n and_o other_o father_n and_o of_o the_o spanish_a missal_n against_o this_o epistle_n of_o elipant_n alcwin_n write_v four_o book_n wherein_o he_o show_v that_o elipant_n hold_v the_o same_o heresy_n with_o nestorius_n who_o have_v speak_v the_o same_o way_n and_o yet_o be_v judge_v to_o have_v speak_v inconsistible_o with_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n person_n he_o retort_v all_o the_o restimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o from_o they_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v never_o call_v a_o nuncupative_a god_n nor_o adoptive_a son_n but_o even_o while_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o his_o manhood_n or_o of_o he_o as_o man_n call_v he_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n three_o he_o show_v that_o elipant_n do_v corrupt_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n and_o do_v add_v the_o word_n nuncupative_a
and_o you_o all_o shall_v further_o and_o help_v we_o ca._n 4._o he_o admonish_v bishop_n especial_o to_o teach_v their_o people_n both_o by_o life_n and_o doctrine_n both_o by_o themselves_o and_o they_o who_o be_v under_o they_o as_o they_o will_v answer_v in_o their_o account_n at_o the_o great_a day_n can._n 17._o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o priest_n or_o the_o high_a priest_n or_o any_o such_o title_n but_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_n can._n 4●_n none_o can_v lay_v another_o foundation_n save_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n whosoever_o therefore_o in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o neighbour_n keep_v the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n he_o have_v lay_v the_o same_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o man_n to_o be_v his_o foundation_n it_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v therefore_o that_o where_o christ_n be_v the_o foundation_n the_o edifice_n of_o good_a work_n will_v follow_v in_o a_o word_n if_o his_o meddle_v with_o italy_n and_o his_o advance_v conversation_n his_o conversation_n the_o pope_n for_o confirm_v that_o which_o he_o have_v take_v can_v be_v excuse_v he_o be_v unto_o all_o prince_n a_o pattern_n of_o magnificence_n zeal_n in_o religion_n learning_n eloquence_n temperance_n prudence_n moderation_n etc._n etc._n alcwin_n contra_fw-la elipant_n lib._n 1._o say_v charles_n be_v a_o catholic_n in_o faith_n a_o king_n in_o power_n a_o highpriest_n in_o preach_v a_o judge_n in_o equity_n a_o philosopher_n in_o liberal_a study_n famous_a in_o manner_n and_o excellent_a in_o all_o honesty_n he_o be_v never_o serve_v at_o table_n with_o more_o than_o four_o dish_n at_o once_o his_o exercise_n be_v hunt_v and_o read_v of_o history_n pet._n mexia_n in_o the_o year_n 813._o crunus_fw-la duke_n of_o bulgaria_n pursue_v his_o victory_n and_o fight_v once_o with_o michael_n rangabis_n a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n and_o at_o the_o second_o alarm_n he_o do_v renounce_v his_o crown_n and_o leo_n armenius_n general_n of_o the_o army_n be_v declare_v emperor_n he_o slay_v crunus_fw-la in_o battle_n and_o return_v home_o with_o triumph_n thereafter_o he_o have_v peace_n he_o throw_v down_o image_n and_o banish_v the_o patriarch_n nicephorus_n a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n and_o many_o more_o zonar_n 3._o lewes_n the_o godly_a confirm_v the_o peace_n with_o leo_n armenius_n and_o trouble_n lewes_n his_o trouble_n have_v war_n in_o datia_n whence_o he_o be_v necessitate_v to_o return_v to_o redress_v some_o accident_n at_o home_n and_o he_o easy_o calm_v they_o by_o mean_n of_o his_o nephew_n bernard_n in_o the_o year_n 818._o the_o same_o bernard_n rebel_v against_o his_o uncle_n and_o claim_v the_o crown_n of_o france_n because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o elder_a brother_n but_o he_o be_v soon_o take_v captive_a his_o eye_n be_v pick_v out_o he_o be_v send_v prisoner_n into_o france_n and_o his_o kingdom_n be_v give_v to_o lotharius_n the_o emperor_n son_n at_o that_o time_n lewes_n confirm_v the_o donation_n of_o king_n pipin_n and_o of_o charles_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n without_o make_v mention_n of_o any_o former_a right_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o donation_n in_o volaterran_n and_o gratian._n yet_o he_o give_v not_o over_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n for_o platina_n in_o serg._n 2._o show_v that_o rome_n be_v allot_v unto_o lotharius_n when_o the_o empire_n be_v divide_v again_o and_o thegan_n chorepi_fw-la trevir_fw-fr write_v of_o the_o same_o lewes_n say_v it_o be_v appoint_v that_o according_a to_o former_a custom_n some_o shall_v be_v send_v from_o the_o emperor_n to_o rome_n who_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o judge_n shall_v do_v justice_n to_o all_o the_o people_n and_o according_o legate_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n to_o judge_v pope_n paschalis_n who_o be_v challenge_v of_o murder_n io._n lampad_a in_o mellif_n lewes_n cause_v the_o bible_n to_o be_v translate_v into_o the_o saxon_a language_n though_o he_o be_v religious_a and_o studious_a of_o peace_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o free_a from_o conspiracy_n he_o have_v advance_v many_o person_n unto_o high_a honour_n and_o as_o crantz_n in_o saxon._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 25._o for_o their_o wickedness_n which_o he_o have_v certain_o try_v he_o cast_v they_o down_o again_o they_o therefore_o do_v devise_v many_o thing_n against_o he_o and_o draw_v his_o own_o son_n lotharius_n pipin_n and_o lewes_n on_o their_o side_n under_o pretext_n that_o the_o emperor_n do_v affect_v his_o young_a son_n by_o his_o present_a wife_n more_o than_o they_o they_o do_v so_o prevail_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v depose_v and_o lotharius_n be_v declare_v emperor_n who_o shut_v his_o father_n into_o a_o monastery_n and_o his_o young_a son_n charles_n many_o who_o be_v loyal_a will_v have_v take_v arm_n for_o his_o relief_n but_o he_o do_v forbid_v they_o hugobert_n bishop_n of_o lion_n and_o bernard_n bishop_n of_o vienna_n and_o many_o other_o bishop_n take_v part_n with_o the_o son_n because_o he_o will_v have_v restrain_v their_o pomp_n and_o pride_n but_o they_o make_v pretence_n that_o he_o have_v marry_v judith_n within_o degree_n forbid_v by_o the_o pope_n also_o pope_n gregory_n the_o iv_o hate_v he_o because_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n of_o image_n nevertheless_o he_o come_v into_o france_n under_o pretence_n to_o appease_v the_o trouble_n but_o as_o morn_n in_o myster_n ex_fw-la chronic._n dtony_n and_o other_o testify_v to_o kindle_v the_o coal_n he_o seek_v that_o both_o party_n will_v submit_v unto_o his_o arbitrement_n they_o who_o be_v on_o the_o emperor_n side_n be_v suspicious_a of_o deceit_n and_o will_v not_o submit_v but_o say_v to_o the_o pope_n if_o thou_o come_v to_o excommunicate_v we_o thou_o shall_v return_v excommunicate_v vsser_n de_fw-fr eccles_n stat_fw-la cap._n 1._o crantz_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la say_v when_o the_o son_n have_v examine_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o stir_n they_o find_v the_o innocency_n restoration_n his_o restoration_n of_o their_o father_n and_o restore_v he_o unto_o his_o empire_n and_o he_o be_v the_o meek_a of_o all_o mortal_n do_v ready_o forgive_v they_o and_o make_v lotharius_n partner_n of_o the_o empire_n with_o he_o but_o he_o deal_v more_o severe_o with_o the_o bishop_n they_o flee_v into_o italy_n nor_o can_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n help_v they_o only_o who_o do_v most_o humble_o confess_v their_o offence_n be_v pardon_v about_o that_o time_n a_o huge_a multitude_n of_o saracen_n enter_v into_o italy_n take_v rome_n and_o make_v saint_n peter_n church_n a_o stable_n for_o their_o horse_n and_o waste_v all_o thuscia_n burn_v house_n and_o church_n when_o they_o hear_v of_o the_o lombard_n come_v against_o they_o they_o make_v haste_n away_o with_o much_o spoil_n with_o infinite_a number_n of_o captive_n as_o also_o they_o spoil_v sicily_n michael_n the_o stutterer_n conspire_v against_o leo_n armenius_n in_o his_o 7_o year_n and_o kill_v he_o he_o slay_v some_o bishop_n and_o banish_v other_o who_o worship_v image_n his_o son_n theophylus_fw-la be_v answerable_a to_o his_o name_n he_o punish_v not_o only_o the_o worshipper_n but_o the_o maker_n of_o image_n in_o the_o year_n 824._o he_o send_v unto_o lewes_n desire_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o french_a church_n concern_v image_n and_o entreat_v that_o he_o will_v interpone_v his_o authority_n with_o the_o pope_n in_o that_o matter_n the_o emperor_n call_v a_o synod_n at_o paris_n of_o which_o be_v mention_n in_o the_o end_n of_o century_n 8._o and_o he_o send_v jeremia_n bishop_n of_o senone_n and_o ionas_n bishop_n of_o orleans_n unto_o pope_n eugenius_n who_o do_v ask_v by_o what_o place_n of_o scripture_n he_o can_v prove_v it_o lawful_a to_o worship_v image_n he_o answer_v they_o be_v arrogant_a who_o dare_v ask_v such_o question_n ph._n morn_n in_o myster_n ex_fw-la synod_n paris_n sub_fw-la ludo._n &_o lothar_n pe._n mexia_n write_v that_o these_o three_o most_o famous_a head_n of_o europe_n die_v within_o the_o space_n of_o four_o day_n theophylus_fw-la lewes_n and_o pope_n gregoryth_n iu._n an._n 840._o lewes_n before_o his_o death_n divide_v his_o kingdom_n and_o seek_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n 4._o lotharius_n the_o elder_a son_n of_o lewes_n succeed_v unto_o his_o father_n weaken_a the_o empire_n be_v divide_v and_o weaken_a with_o common_a consent_n except_o of_o his_o brethren_n charles_n and_o lewes_n for_o they_o take_v it_o ill_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v both_o france_n and_o italy_n and_o they_o be_v enclose_v in_o bojaria_n and_o aquitania_n so_o they_o force_v their_o brother_n unto_o a_o new_a division_n lewes_n become_v king_n of_o germany_n and_o have_v hungary_n bohemia_n saxony_n moravia_n frisia_n bojaria_n etc._n etc._n charles_n be_v king_n of_o france_n except_z
all_o sin_n so_o the_o regenerate_a in_o christ_n may_v live_v in_o this_o world_n without_o sin_n which_o sure_o belong_v not_o unto_o the_o estate_n of_o this_o present_a life_n but_o unto_o the_o blessedness_n of_o eternal_a life_n but_o if_o it_o be_v say_v only_o that_o for_o the_o begin_n of_o grace_n which_o we_o attain_v by_o regeneration_n we_o may_v seem_v to_o receive_v the_o liberty_n of_o will_n which_o we_o lose_v in_o adam_n although_o nevertheless_o the_o fullness_n and_o perfection_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v expect_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v why_o be_v the_o most_o clear_a truth_n darken_v with_o so_o great_a ambiguity_n and_o confusion_n of_o word_n now_o how_o great_a absurdity_n be_v in_o that_o which_o follow_v and_o we_o have_v free-well_a unto_o good_a be_v prevent_v and_o help_v ........_o as_o if_o after_o we_o be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n than_o we_o begin_v to_o have_v as_o freewill_n unto_o good_a so_o freewill_n unto_o evil_n as_o if_o by_o that_o regeneration_n when_o we_o be_v preven_v and_o help_v by_o grace_n we_o have_v freewill_n unto_o good_a and_o when_o we_o be_v desert_v of_o the_o same_o grace_n we_o have_v freewill_n unto_o evil_n what_o reason_n or_o consequence_n of_o meaning_n can_v be_v here_o do_v the_o grace_n of_o that_o regeneration_n work_v this_o in_o we_o that_o from_o thence_o we_o get_v freewill_n as_o unto_o good_a so_o unto_o evil_a further_o if_o when_o we_o be_v renew_v in_o baptism_n we_o receive_v in_o christ_n the_o liberty_n of_o will_n that_o be_v so_o lose_v in_o adam_n do_v then_o only_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n prevence_n and_o help_v we_o or_o do_v the_o same_o grace_n as_o once_o it_o help_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v free_a unto_o good_a so_o leave_v we_o once_o that_o we_o be_v make_v free_a unto_o evil_n what_o be_v this_o so_o obscure_a and_o almost_o not_o preach_v of_o grace_n have_v it_o not_o be_v better_a to_o have_v make_v use_n of_o those_o sentence_n of_o the_o forenamed_a father_n which_o define_v this_o matter_n full_o and_o clear_o or_o that_o this_o definition_n have_v be_v frame_v in_o their_o word_n and_o plain_o be_v declare_v how_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n preven_v and_o help_v we_o that_o be_v whether_o once_o so_o great_a grace_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o in_o baptism_n which_o may_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o our_o life_n or_o whether_o it_o shall_v be_v implore_v and_o get_v daily_o and_o whether_o we_o have_v need_n of_o it_o for_o some_o good_a thing_n or_o for_o all_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n appear_v here_o and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v better_a to_o have_v be_v silent_a then_o to_o speak_v so_o fond_o of_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n for_o we_o have_v need_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n not_o only_o for_o a_o good_a work_n as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o this_o chapter_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o faith_n without_o which_o grace_n we_o can_v come_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n of_o regeneration_n we_o have_v need_n of_o grace_n for_o all_o and_o every_o good_a thing_n through_o every_o day_n we_o have_v need_n of_o it_o to_o stir_v up_o in_o we_o a_o good_a will_n we_o have_v need_n of_o grace_n to_o speak_v good_a and_o wholesome_a thing_n we_o have_v need_n of_o grace_n for_o all_o good_a way_n of_o good_a work_n concern_v can._n iii_o first_n they_o exhort_v iii_o can._n iii_o to_o keep_v peace_n and_o unity_n and_o to_o shun_v contention_n then_o they_o say_v behold_v one_o may_v think_v and_o say_v as_o former_o it_o have_v be_v think_v and_o say_v the_o apostle_n say_v not_o general_o and_o as_o they_o have_v add_v without_o exception_n who_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v but_o especial_o concern_v they_o of_o who_o he_o have_v say_v before_o for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n and_o for_o they_o which_o be_v in_o authority_n that_o when_o he_o say_v all_o he_o understand_v all_o sort_n of_o man_n even_o of_o all_o condition_n sex_n order_n what_o unconsequent_a or_o contrariety_n unto_o the_o truth_n be_v in_o this_o exposition_n likewise_o one_o may_v say_v as_o it_o be_v find_v to_o be_v say_v by_o some_o ancient_n that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o whole_a mankind_n what_o ill_a or_o danger_n have_v this_o exposition_n for_o he_o who_o think_v so_o do_v not_o think_v that_o any_o man_n do_v resist_v and_o go_v against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o will_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v that_o god_n can_v do_v what_o he_o will_v and_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o speak_v diverse_o yet_o do_v agree_v faithful_o and_o unanimous_o that_o whether_o the_o apostle_n speak_v so_o or_o so_o yet_o no_o man_n be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o gracious_a mercy_n of_o god_n and_o none_o be_v suffer_v to_o perish_v but_o in_o his_o just_a judgement_n certain_o this_o be_v manifest_a in_o that_o question_n that_o although_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n general_o and_o indefinite_o to_o be_v save_v yet_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o some_o through_o the_o bountifulness_n of_o mercy_n he_o work_v the_o same_o in_o his_o will_n that_o both_o they_o have_v a_o will_n to_o be_v save_v and_o they_o be_v save_v to_o who_o the_o apostle_n say_v with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a work_n forth_o your_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o you_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n but_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o other_o through_o the_o severity_n of_o his_o hide_a and_o just_a judgement_n he_o work_v not_o this_o save_a will_n but_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o own_o will_n that_o because_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o shall_v be_v damn_v in_o just_a punishment_n and_o this_o may_v be_v say_v indeed_o of_o they_o which_o have_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o through_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o own_o unbelief_n will_v not_o receive_v it_o but_o what_o shall_v be_v say_v of_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n of_o the_o wicked_a who_o have_v be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o they_o who_o can_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v as_o yet_o in_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n unto_o who_o never_o a_o preacher_n be_v come_v who_o can_v no_o way_n believe_v in_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v nor_o receive_v a_o preacher_n see_v none_o have_v be_v send_v unto_o they_o shall_v such_o therefore_o be_v damn_v because_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v who_o never_o can_v hear_v and_o nevertheless_o they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v for_o their_o other_o sin_n and_o especial_o for_o original_a sin_n wherein_o all_o have_v sin_v for_o it_o be_v not_o write_v in_o vain_a pour_v out_o thy_o wrath_n upon_o the_o nation_n which_o know_v thou_o not_o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v render_v vengeance_n in_o flame_a fire_n on_o they_o who_o know_v not_o god_n if_o one_o shall_v ask_v of_o those_o what_o have_v the_o will_n of_o god_n do_v in_o they_o who_o will_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n what_o shall_v we_o answer_v will_v not_o a_o godly_a and_o prudent_a man_n choose_v rather_o to_o be_v silent_a or_o certain_o say_v with_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n thy_o judgement_n be_v a_o great_a deep_a and_o o_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n how_o incomprehensible_a be_v his_o way_n concern_v can._n iu._n can._n iu._n iu._n they_o say_v in_o this_o new_a question_n three_o question_n be_v propound_v first_o that_o it_o be_v say_v no_o man_n be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v who_o nature_n be_v not_o assume_v in_o christ_n of_o this_o question_n we_o hold_v thus_o that_o the_o assume_v of_o man_n nature_n by_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o necessity_n of_o beginning_n ex_fw-la necessitate_v incipiendi_fw-la but_o be_v only_o of_o his_o power_n and_o grace_n so_o his_o flesh_n descend_v through_o all_o generation_n so_o he_o be_v true_o bear_v very_a man_n of_o they_o that_o what_o he_o please_v by_o show_v mercy_n and_o heal_v and_o redeem_v he_o may_v thereof_o assume_v and_o reject_v what_o he_o please_v or_o not_o so_o in_o that_o unspeakable_a mystery_n of_o his_o incarnation_n he_o merciful_o do_v assume_v his_o elect_a who_o he_o come_v to_o redeem_v justify_v and_o save_v and_o who_o he_o do_v judge_v unworthy_a of_o that_o mercy_n and_o redemption_n he_o leave_v they_o out_o of_o that_o marvellou_fw-mi susception_n let_v we_o therefore_o acknowledge_v true_o that_o the_o susception_n of_o human_a nature_n in_o christ_n have_v leave_v unbeliever_n void_a of_o this_o mercy_n and_o that_o he_o have_v bestow_v it_o only_o on_o they_o that_o they_o have_v common_a
nature_n with_o christ_n who_o receive_v he_o and_o be_v renew_v by_o his_o spirit_n by_o who_o he_o be_v conceive_v away_o therefore_o with_o that_o superfluity_n whereby_o it_o be_v say_v and_o define_v that_o there_o be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v no_o man_n who_o nature_n he_o have_v not_o assume_v 2._o it_o be_v affirm_v no_o man_n be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v for_o who_o christ_n have_v not_o suffer_v of_o which_o question_n what_o other_o can_v we_o answer_v but_o that_o first_o we_o demand_v they_o who_o have_v define_v this_o and_o admonish_v they_o to_o weigh_v vigilant_o and_o faithful_o lest_o perhaps_o by_o little_a consider_v what_o they_o shall_v say_v they_o say_v and_o write_v such_o thing_n against_o the_o faith_n and_o their_o own_o conscience_n for_o to_o omit_v those_o who_o be_v now_o or_o shall_v be_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n among_o who_o shall_v be_v the_o antichrist_n certain_o of_o that_o innumerable_a multitude_n of_o the_o wicked_a which_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v dead_a in_o their_o wickedness_n be_v condemn_v in_o everlasting_a pain_n we_o think_v not_o that_o they_o who_o have_v write_v this_o do_v believe_v that_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o they_o which_o be_v dead_a in_o their_o wickedness_n and_o now_o condemn_v in_o everlasting_a judgement_n for_o if_o it_o be_v believe_v that_o he_o have_v suffer_v for_o they_o why_o may_v it_o not_o also_o be_v believe_v that_o he_o have_v suffer_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n therefore_o as_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o christ_n jesus_n have_v suffer_v for_o those_o wicked_a and_o damn_a angel_n so_o far_o be_v it_o that_o we_o shall_v believe_v that_o he_o have_v suffer_v for_o those_o wicked_a and_o damn_a man_n ......_o but_o of_o those_o who_o as_o yet_o continue_v in_o their_o unbelief_n and_o wickedness_n shall_v perish_v if_o good_a man_n who_o have_v define_v these_o thing_n can_v demonstrate_v unto_o we_o by_o sure_a and_o clear_a testimony_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n what_o the_o lord_n have_v suffer_v for_o those_o we_o shall_v also_o believe_v the_o same_o and_o if_o that_o they_o can_v let_v they_o not_o contend_v now_o for_o that_o which_o they_o read_v not_o let_v they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o determine_v what_o they_o can_v find_v to_o be_v decree_v by_o any_o council_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n or_o determination_n of_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n or_o if_o they_o find_v any_o thing_n write_v by_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n whereby_o occasion_n of_o such_o interpretation_n may_v be_v give_v yet_o save_v the_o reverence_n due_a unto_o they_o let_v they_o rather_o contain_v themselves_o and_o submit_v unto_o divine_a authority_n 3._o they_o say_v all_z the_o unbeliever_n be_v not_o redeem_v by_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n blood_n so_o neither_o be_v the_o believer_n redeem_v who_o have_v not_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n why_o shall_v we_o speak_v of_o this_o question_n see_v it_o be_v manifest_a from_o what_o be_v say_v that_o no_o redemption_n in_o christ_n be_v unto_o any_o unbeliever_n and_o all_o believer_n who_o come_v true_o unto_o faith_n and_o grace_n of_o regeneration_n receive_v their_o true_a redemption_n and_o true_a regeneration_n because_o they_o can_v be_v true_o regenerate_v unless_o it_o be_v true_o certain_a that_o they_o be_v redeem_v from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o bondage_n of_o sin_n neither_o can_v they_o be_v true_o redeem_v unless_o they_o be_v cleanse_v in_o the_o laver_n of_o mercy_n and_o make_v free_a from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n unless_o which_o be_v most_o absurd_a in_o this_o definition_n it_o be_v say_v that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v suffer_v even_o for_o the_o wicked_a who_o perish_v in_o their_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o every_o believer_n be_v not_o true_o redeem_v by_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o renew_v in_o his_o baptism_n hincmar_n bishop_n of_o rheims_n can_v not_o take_v this_o censure_n patient_o but_o write_v epistle_n unto_o several_a bishop_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o opinion_n some_o that_o censure_n be_v oppugn_v by_o some_o and_o remigius_n send_v abroad_o his_o censure_n of_o they_o as_o vsser_n in_o histor_n gottescal_n cap._n 8._o have_v at_o length_n john_n scot_n do_v follow_v hincmar_n and_o although_o in_o other_o thing_n he_o have_v purchase_v a_o name_n yet_o because_o here_o he_o undertake_v a_o wrong_a other_o and_o maintain_v by_o other_o cause_n florus_n a_o deacon_n of_o lion_n and_o prudentius_n bishop_n of_o tricassin_n do_v not_o spare_v he_o as_o be_v at_o large_a loc_n cit_fw-la cap._n 9_o &_o 10._o &_o 11._o i_o will_v short_o show_v their_o testimony_n whereby_o summary_o their_o doctrine_n may_v be_v know_v florus_n say_v whereas_o he_o john_n say_v that_o man_n sin_v have_v lose_v liberty_n but_o not_o the_o power_n and_o vigour_n of_o the_o liberty_n he_o say_v not_o right_o for_o he_o have_v not_o keep_v in_o part_n and_o lose_v in_o part_n the_o gift_n of_o liberty_n but_o as_o he_o have_v lose_v the_o power_n and_o vigour_n of_o liberty_n so_o he_o have_v lose_v liberty_n itself_o so_o that_o now_o he_o be_v not_o free_a unto_o good_a from_o which_o he_o have_v fall_v he_o continue_v free_a unto_o evil_n because_o as_o of_o his_o freewill_n he_o forsake_v good_a so_o by_o freewill_n he_o cleave_v unto_o evil_n man_n therefore_o after_o that_o damnation_n have_v freewill_n whereby_o he_o may_v incline_v and_o do_v incline_v unto_o evil_n through_o his_o will_n he_o have_v freewill_n whereby_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o he_o may_v arise_v unto_o good_a but_o that_o he_o arise_v unto_o good_a it_o be_v not_o of_o his_o own_o virtue_n but_o of_o the_o compassionate_v grace_n of_o god_n for_o he_o who_o be_v heavy_o disease_v may_v possible_o receive_v health_n but_o that_o he_o may_v receive_v health_n he_o have_v need_n of_o a_o medicament_n and_o he_o who_o be_v dead_a it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o possible_o he_o may_v rise_v and_o live_v yet_o not_o by_o his_o own_o virtue_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n so_o the_o freewill_n of_o man_n be_v wound_v and_o dead_a may_v be_v heal_v but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n show_v mercy_n again_o john_n say_v if_o any_o cause_n precede_v will_n that_o be_v nature_n to_o think_v good_a or_o evil_n it_o be_v not_o nature_n where_o he_o speak_v manifest_o against_o truth_n for_o if_o no_o cause_n precede_v the_o will_n of_o man_n to_o think_v or_o do_v good_a whence_o be_v in_o man_n a_o good_a will_n that_o be_v a_o good_a affection_n to_o think_v or_o do_v any_o good_a for_o man_n have_v not_o of_o himself_o a_o good_a will_n nor_o do_v he_o any_o good_a but_o he_o have_v it_o from_o he_o of_o who_o the_o apostle_n speak_v unto_o believer_n it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v according_a to_o his_o good_a will_n he_o by_o his_o mercy_n preven_v the_o will_n of_o man_n as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v my_o god_n his_o mercy_n shall_v prevene_v i_o he_o inspire_v into_o man_n the_o grace_n of_o think_v well_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v not_o that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o think_v a_o good_a think_v as_o of_o ourselves_o but_o our_o sufficiency_n be_v from_o god_n therefore_o he_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o good_a will_n in_o we_o he_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o good_a desire_n and_o of_o perfect_v he_o be_v unto_o we_o the_o cause_n of_o mercy_n and_o grace_n by_o which_o we_o be_v able_a not_o only_o to_o do_v well_o and_o to_o perfect_v but_o also_o to_o think_v well_o and_o not_o only_o do_v he_o these_o thing_n in_o his_o elect_a in_o this_o life_n but_o also_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n he_o have_v predestinate_v they_o by_o his_o grace_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o blameless_a before_o he_o as_o the_o apostle_n witness_v see_v therefore_o so_o great_a and_o such_o a_o cause_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n both_o in_o make_v and_o reward_v his_o creature_n be_v unto_o we_o the_o best_a and_o eternal_a cause_n of_o good_a will_n prevening_n we_o by_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v will_v well_o and_o do_v well_o how_o say_v this_o man_n that_o no_o cause_n precede_v our_o will_n and_o work_n or_o if_o any_o cause_n precede_v they_o that_o cause_n be_v not_o nature_n see_v the_o almighty_a god_n who_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o good_a will_n be_v the_o high_a and_o best_a nature_n ...._o but_o far_o be_v it_o to_o say_v that_o this_o high_a and_o best_a cause_n precede_v our_o will_n to_o think_v or_o do_v evil_a and_o nevertheless_o a_o
they_o which_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o he_o nor_o will_v ever_o believe_v as_o the_o lord_n himself_o say_v matth._n 20_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v ..._o to_o give_v his_o soul_n in_o redemption_n for_o many_o 4._o that_o he_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o the_o almighty_a god_n save_v who_o he_o will_v and_o that_o none_o at_o all_o can_v be_v save_v but_o who_o he_o will_v save_v and_o that_o all_o be_v save_v who_o he_o will_v save_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o his_o will_n those_o be_v save_v whosoever_o be_v not_o save_v as_o the_o prophet_n say_v whatsoever_o the_o lord_n will_v he_o do_v that_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n and_o say_v prudent_a although_o there_o be_v some_o other_o thing_n wherein_o he_o have_v satisfy_v and_o subscribe_v in_o which_o be_v condemn_v in_o pelagius_n the_o church_n have_v universal_o consent_v yet_o these_o be_v against_o he_o and_o his_o follower_n clear_v from_o his_o froward_a exposition_n by_o the_o apostolical_a see_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o bless_a aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o of_o augustine_n with_o other_o 214_o bishop_n and_o be_v publish_v unto_o all_o the_o world_n by_o many_o both_o epistle_n and_o book_n all_o the_o church_n to_o day_n rejoice_v in_o confess_v preach_v hold_v and_o shall_v hold_v this_o epistle_n of_o prudentius_n be_v in_o the_o 2_o tome_fw-mi of_o the_o french_a counsel_n and_o by_o it_o we_o may_v see_v not_o only_o his_o mind_n but_o the_o universal_a doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o all_o the_o world_n as_o he_o affirm_v although_o history_n do_v not_o express_v whether_o aeneas_n do_v subscribe_v these_o article_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o 99_o epistle_n of_o lupus_n ferarien_n where_o he_o commend_v this_o aeneas_n and_o say_v that_o prudentius_n with_o the_o other_o bishop_n do_v confirm_v his_o ordination_n by_o authority_n of_o lotharius_n a_o synod_n be_v hold_v an._n 855._o at_o valentia_n the_o canon_n thereof_o follow_v hereafter_o for_o the_o present_a i_o add_v the_o word_n of_o baronius_n concern_v it_o general_o say_v the_o bishop_n think_v good_a to_o bring_v no_o other_o thing_n into_o the_o church_n than_o what_o the_o most_o holy_a father_n and_o faithful_a teacher_n of_o the_o church_n have_v in_o all_o sincerity_n teach_v former_o in_o africa_n in_o the_o council_n at_o carthage_n and_o in_o france_n in_o the_o council_n at_o arausicane_n whereunto_o we_o shall_v cleave_v in_o all_o point_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o godly_a be_v save_v no_o other_o way_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o wicked_a be_v condemn_v for_o their_o own_o iniquity_n and_o that_o the_o wicked_a do_v not_o perish_v because_o as_o some_o say_v they_o can_v not_o be_v good_a but_o because_o they_o will_v not_o then_o he_o show_v that_o the_o act_n of_o this_o synod_n be_v send_v unto_o hincmar_n and_o that_o he_o do_v by_o writing_n condemn_v these_o error_n but_o vsser_n tax_v baronius_n that_o he_o have_v write_v of_o this_o matter_n slender_o and_o from_o the_o writing_n of_o hincmar_n and_o from_o act_n of_o synod_n convince_v he_o especial_o he_o declare_v from_o a_o book_n of_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n that_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o they_o of_o lion_n concern_v the_o five_o canon_n of_o this_o synod_n which_o in_o the_o end_n of_o that_o book_n think_v the_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o elect_a and_o the_o reprobate_n to_o be_v that_o in_o the_o reprobate_n remain_v the_o guiltiness_n of_o the_o first_o transgression_n which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o elect_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n also_o he_o show_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 856_o in_o the_o month_n of_o august_n charles_n the_o bald_n do_v call_v a_o synod_n at_o bonoile_n by_o paris_n and_o another_o in_o september_n at_o nielph_n where_o he_o give_v unto_o hincmar_n the_o article_n of_o the_o synod_n at_o valentia_n and_o what_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o other_o in_o favour_n of_o gotteschalk_n that_o hincmar_n shall_v answer_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o after_o three_o year_n hincmar_n do_v return_v a_o great_a book_n of_o god_n predestination_n and_o of_o man_n freewill_n as_o flodoard_v show_v hist_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 13_o and_o that_o the_o adverse_a party_n be_v not_o satisfy_v by_o that_o great_a volumn_n neither_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o valentian_n synod_n lessen_v and_o therefore_o an._n 859_o charles_n call_v another_o synod_n in_o audemantunno_n lingonum_fw-la where_o for_o the_o instruction_n of_o god_n people_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o valentian_n synod_n be_v voice_v and_o confirm_v again_o and_o proclaim_v only_o in_o the_o five_o canon_n they_o express_v not_o the_o four_o article_n because_o they_o perceive_v hincmar_n be_v offend_v by_o so_o express_v condemn_v they_o as_o if_o they_o thereby_o have_v neglect_v the_o limit_n and_o law_n of_o charity_n and_o they_o do_v add_v the_o name_n of_o john_n scot_n unto_o the_o nineteen_o article_n this_o synod_n be_v call_v lingonensis_n in_o council_n gall._n tom_n 3._o after_o 14_o day_n be_v a_o more_o frequent_a synod_n of_o twelve_o province_n at_o saponaria_n a_o village_n of_o the_o city_n of_o tullen_a where_o be_v king_n charles_n and_o his_o nephew_n lotharius_n and_o charles_n son_n of_o the_o emperor_n lotharius_n there_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o former_a synod_n and_o the_o carisiac_a article_n be_v read_v again_o and_o again_o great_a contention_n be_v between_o remigius_n and_o hincmar_n with_o their_o follower_n the_o one_o plead_v for_o and_o the_o other_o against_o the_o article_n of_o gotteschalk_n but_o as_o hincmar_n write_v in_o a_o epistle_n dedicatory_a unto_o charles_n the_o bald_a the_o stir_n be_v calm_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o archbishop_n remigius_n exhort_v they_o all_o to_o bring_v unto_o the_o next_o synod_n the_o book_n of_o the_o catholic_n doctor_n and_o as_o they_o shall_v find_v they_o agree_v unto_o the_o apostolical_a and_o catholic_n doctrine_n all_o shall_v hold_v together_o unanimous_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o act_n of_o this_o synod_n that_o it_o be_v so_o soon_o close_v because_o of_o the_o murmur_n in_o the_o country_n all_o this_o time_n gotteschalk_n be_v still_o in_o prison_n in_o the_o monastery_n of_o haultvillier_n whence_o he_o send_v forth_o first_o a_o short_a confession_n and_o then_o a_o large_a one_o confirm_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o latter_a he_o crave_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o free_a synod_n wherein_o truth_n may_v be_v make_v know_v unto_o all_o and_o error_n altogether_o take_v away_o and_o he_o lament_v that_o for_o baseness_n of_o his_o person_n truth_n be_v despise_v and_o his_o adversary_n follow_v not_o charity_n and_o refuse_v verity_n only_o that_o they_o may_v seem_v victorious_a now_o of_o all_o that_o i_o have_v read_v concern_v his_o confession_n and_o the_o writing_n of_o both_o party_n i_o gather_v that_o at_o that_o time_n the_o great_a controversy_n be_v concern_v the_o predestination_n of_o the_o wicked_a unto_o punishment_n howbeit_o there_o be_v also_o some_o difference_n concern_v freewill_n and_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o conversion_n or_o of_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n and_o because_o hincmar_n in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o pr●destinatians_n whence_o be_v the_o word_n pr●destinatians_n pope_n nicolaus_n and_o semipelagian_o make_v mention_n of_o heretic_n who_o they_o call_v praedestinati_fw-la or_o praedestinatiani_n here_o i_o add_v concern_v that_o name_n that_o the_o first_o who_o mention_v it_o be_v he_o who_o write_v the_o continuation_n of_o ierom_n chronicle_n for_o he_o about_o the_o 24_o year_n of_o arcadius_n and_o honorius_n write_v say_v at_o this_o time_n begin_v the_o heresy_n of_o praedestinati_fw-la which_o have_v the_o beginning_n from_o augustine_n so_o it_o be_v express_o say_v vsser_n in_o histor_n gotte_n cap._n 2._o in_o two_o old_a manuscript_n one_o in_o the_o king_n bibliotheke_n and_o another_o in_o the_o benedictines_n at_o cambridge_n although_o in_o the_o print_a book_n it_o be_v not_o say_v from_o augustine_n but_o from_o the_o book_n of_o augustine_n be_v ill_o understand_v and_o certain_o these_o word_n of_o hincmar_n be_v frivolous_a since_o pope_n celestine_n do_v not_o write_v against_o such_o a_o heresy_n but_o against_o the_o pelagian_o as_o be_v clear_a in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o augustine_n and_o he_o do_v approve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o augustine_n and_o prosper_v in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o augustine_n which_o and_o the_o epistle_n of_o celestine_n be_v among_o the_o epistle_n of_o augustine_n write_v say_v many_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o the_o city_n massily_n think_v that_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o your_o holiness_n against_o the_o pelagian_a heretic_n whatsoever_o you_o
jew_n so_o here_o election_n be_v for_o the_o elect_n who_o obtain_v justification_n by_o faith_n on_o cap._n 15_o at_o these_o word_n whatsoever_o be_v write_v be_v write_v for_o our_o instruction_n ..._o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n join_v himself_o unto_o all_o believer_n and_o will_v show_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o divine_a book_n be_v not_o write_v for_o they_o who_o deed_n and_o work_n be_v there_o report_v for_o they_o be_v in_o rest_n long_o ago_o but_o for_o our_o salvation_n and_o of_o they_o which_o be_v to_o come_v that_o we_o may_v have_v whence_o we_o may_v take_v example_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n and_o whence_o we_o may_v know_v with_o what_o work_v god_n be_v please_v and_o with_o what_o he_o be_v provoke_v to_o punish_v ...._o for_o what_o do_v it_o avail_v to_o abraham_n that_o moses_n have_v write_v he_o be_v obedient_a and_o that_o he_o commend_v he_o to_o have_v please_v god_n but_o he_o say_v whatsoever_o thing_n be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n prophet_n psalm_n and_o other_o scripture_n be_v write_v for_o our_o instruction_n that_o we_o which_o be_v come_v unto_o the_o faith_n may_v thence_o learn_v see_v remigius_n write_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v for_o the_o instruction_n of_o all_o believer_n will_v he_o then_o have_v consent_v unto_o the_o act_n of_o trent_n which_o forbid_v the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n unto_o believer_n on_o 1_o cor._n 1._o at_o these_o word_n that_o no_o flesh_n shall_v glory_v before_o he_o he_o say_v no_o flesh_n that_o be_v no_o man_n the_o wise_a and_o mighty_a can_v glory_v because_o they_o be_v not_o call_v by_o he_o for_o their_o wisdom_n and_o riches_n neither_o have_v they_o divine_a wisdom_n or_o spiritual_a riches_n of_o themselves_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o glory_n because_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v of_o favour_n they_o receive_v it_o from_o god_n without_o their_o merit_n and_o they_o can_v glory_v that_o they_o be_v choose_v for_o their_o wisdom_n and_o riches_n ....._o he_o that_o glori_v let_v he_o glory_n in_o the_o lord_n he_o glori_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o not_o in_o himself_o who_o confess_v that_o all_o the_o good_a he_o have_v he_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o god_n without_o his_o own_o merit_n and_o therefore_o seek_v not_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o praise_n but_o his_o glory_n from_o who_o he_o have_v receive_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v on_o gal._n 6._o on_o these_o word_n god_n forbid_v that_o i_o rejoice_v but_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n he_o say_v that_o be_v i_o will_v not_o rejoice_v in_o the_o riches_n and_o dignity_n of_o this_o world_n but_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n i._n e._n in_o his_o suffering_n which_o be_v do_v on_o the_o cross_n will_v i_o rejoice_v from_o whence_o be_v my_o redemption_n and_o salvation_n or_o i_o will_v rejoice_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v in_o this_o will_v i_o rejoice_v if_o i_o can_v follow_v the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n what_o he_o have_v sustain_v for_o i_o i_o may_v sustain_v the_o like_a for_o his_o name_n hence_o we_o may_v see_v that_o remigius_n do_v not_o rejoice_v in_o the_o paint_a or_o mould_v cross_n but_o in_o christ_n suffering_n for_o our_o redemption_n on_o eph._n 2._o at_o these_o word_n build_v on_o the_o foundation_n he_o say_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o of_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v christ_n because_o they_o be_v ground_v and_o establish_v in_o faith_n of_o he_o as_o he_o himself_o say_v upon_o this_o rock_n that_o be_v upon_o i_o will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n here_o remigius_n expound_v the_o rock_n to_o signify_v peter_n on_o cap._n 5._o at_o these_o word_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n he_o say_v in_o this_o world_n the_o church_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v glorious_a one_o way_n because_o it_o have_v king_n and_o prince_n subject_a and_o it_o have_v many_o order_n and_o degree_n but_o it_o can_v be_v without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n of_o sin_n because_o it_o have_v many_o penitent_n in_o it_o and_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o we_o and_o there_o be_v not_o a_o man_n upon_o earth_n which_o do_v good_a and_o sin_v not_o wherefore_o it_o be_v better_a that_o we_o refer_v these_o word_n unto_o the_o general_a resurrection_n on_o cap._n 6._o the_o sword_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o divine_a scripture_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o it_o be_v call_v a_o sword_n because_o as_o enemy_n be_v put_v to_o flight_n by_o a_o sword_n so_o by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a scripture_n we_o may_v put_v to_o flight_v all_o the_o craft_n and_o device_n of_o the_o devil_n by_o follow_v what_o the_o scripture_n teach_v and_o eschew_v what_o it_o forbid_v and_o not_o only_o may_v we_o overcome_v the_o devil_n by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n but_o by_o authority_n thereof_o we_o may_v convince_v all_o heretic_n and_o destroy_v all_o their_o error_n reader_n observe_v in_o this_o testimony_n the_o manifold_a use_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o especial_o that_o they_o be_v a_o rule_n wherewith_o all_o error_n may_v be_v destroy_v on_o phil._n 2._o at_o these_o word_n it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o you_o he_o say_v lest_o he_o seem_v to_o exclude_v god_n from_o our_o salvation_n or_o as_o if_o without_o the_o help_n of_o god_n we_o can_v be_v save_v ●e_n subjoin_v for_o it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o you_o therefore_o every_o good_a which_o we_o have_v as_o well_o the_o good_a will_n as_o the_o good_a operation_n be_v not_o of_o we_o but_o of_o god_n ....._o both_o to_o will_v that_o be_v to_o have_v a_o good_a will_n be_v to_o do_v according_a to_o good_a will_n that_o be_v that_o we_o may_v always_o will_n what_o be_v good_a on_o cap._n 3._o at_o these_o word_n if_o i_o may_v comprehend_v in_o who_o i_o be_o comprehend_v he_o say_v all_o the_o elect_a which_o be_v predestinate_v for_o eternal_a life_n be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n because_o thereby_o be_v redeem_v not_o only_o those_o who_o be_v save_v after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o who_o be_v purge_v in_o baptism_n but_o all_o the_o godly_a which_o be_v before_o his_o come_n ....._o whosoever_o be_v perfect_a in_o comparison_n of_o other_o let_v we_o think_v so_o understand_v that_o we_o be_v not_o perfect_a for_o whosoever_o be_v perfect_a that_o be_v who_o be_v think_v to_o be_v perfect_a let_v we_o understand_v that_o this_o be_v in_o comparison_n of_o believer_n and_o who_o have_v less_o understanding_n because_o we_o be_v not_o perfect_a in_o respect_n of_o what_o we_o shall_v have_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n on_o 1_o tim._n 2._o he_o say_v see_v the_o psalmist_n say_v the_o lord_n do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_v and_o the_o apostle_n say_v which_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v why_o be_v not_o all_o man_n save_v to_o which_o i_o say_v because_o it_o be_v true_a what_o the_o psalmist_n say_v for_o he_o have_v say_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v likewise_o he_o will_v save_v all_o man_n which_o be_v save_v and_o which_o by_o his_o mercy_n seek_v to_o be_v save_v for_o the_o apostle_n have_v put_v the_o whole_a for_o a_o part_n as_o in_o the_o gospel_n the_o lord_n say_v when_o i_o shall_v be_v exalt_v from_o the_o earth_n i_o will_v draw_v all_o man_n unto_o i_o for_o he_o draw_v not_o all_o man_n nor_o draw_v all_o man_n but_o all_o that_o be_v the_o elect_a out_o of_o all_o sort_n and_o nation_n out_o of_o all_o sex_n and_o condition_n from_o king_n unto_o beggar_n from_o the_o perfect_a unto_o the_o babe_n of_o one_o day_n yet_o none_o can_v be_v save_v but_o who_o god_n will_v because_o he_o show_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v for_o if_o all_o man_n have_v continue_v in_o perdition_n just_o have_v be_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n but_o that_o his_o mercy_n and_o power_n may_v be_v show_v because_o he_o be_v powerful_a to_o save_v all_o man_n in_o those_o which_o do_v perish_v he_o show_v his_o just_a judgement_n and_o his_o mercy_n in_o they_o which_o be_v save_v for_o his_o grace_n preven_v we_o that_o we_o have_v will_n and_o our_o will_n shall_v accord_v with_o his_o will_n and_o then_o he_o will_v give_v we_o ability_n and_o because_o we_o join_v our_o will_n to_o his_o will_n we_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v reward_v and_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v all_o to_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o his_o grace_n whatsoever_o good_a we_o do_v he_o say_v then_o which_o will_v have_v
and_o what_o it_o be_v to_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o to_o drink_v his_o blood_n he_o who_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o that_o be_v to_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o to_o drink_v his_o blood_n to_o abide_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v he_o abide_v in_o we_o and_o therefore_o who_o abide_v not_o in_o christ_n or_o in_o who_o christ_n abide_v not_o without_o doubt_n neither_o eat_v he_o christ_n flesh_n spiritual_o although_o carnal_o and_o visible_o he_o do_v press_v with_o his_o tooth_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o rather_o he_o eat_v to_o his_o own_o judgement_n the_o sacrament_n of_o so_o great_a a_o thing_n who_o be_v unclean_a do_v presume_v to_o come_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n which_o no_o man_n take_v worthy_o but_o who_o be_v clean_o hence_o we_o see_v that_o haymo_n think_v wicked_a man_n can_v eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o the_o sacrament_n of_o it_o and_o whosoever_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n abide_v in_o christ_n and_o be_v immortal_a therefore_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o here_o again_o he_o confirm_v the_o perseverance_n of_o they_o who_o have_v true_a grace_n in_o the_o homily_n de_fw-fr passtone_n christi_fw-la secundum_fw-la matth._n he_o say_v after_o he_o have_v sup_v he_o give_v they_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o wit_n in_o a_o mystery_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o because_o bread_n strengthen_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o wine_n augment_v blood_n in_o man_n just_o be_v the_o bread_n turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n not_o by_o figure_n or_o by_o shadow_n but_o in_o truth_n for_o we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o truth_n and_o likewise_o his_o blood_n but_o because_o human_a frailty_n be_v not_o accustom_v to_o eat_v raw_a flesh_n and_o to_o drink_v blood_n therefore_o the_o same_o flesh_n be_v translate_v into_o bread_n and_o his_o blood_n into_o wine_n and_o in_o the_o next_o page_n he_o say_v he_o give_v it_o unto_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_v take_v you_o eat_v you_o this_o be_v contrary_a unto_o they_o which_o give_v the_o eucharist_n unto_o dead_a man_n for_o when_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v take_v you_o present_o he_o add_v and_o eat_v you_o because_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o take_v unless_o each_o do_v eat_v it_o to_o his_o salvation_n because_o what_o they_o can_v not_o take_v in_o their_o life_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o take_v after_o death_n likewise_o take_v the_o cup_n he_o give_v thanks_o and_o give_v it_o unto_o they_o and_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o that_o whosoever_o take_v shall_v drink_v here_o be_v transubstantiation_n will_v a_o romanist_n say_v but_o observe_v first_o how_o can_v the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n stand_v with_o the_o precede_a testimony_n 2._o he_o speak_v here_o as_o remigius_n do_v before_o to_o wit_n not_o a_o substantial_a change_n but_o a_o real_a change_n in_o respect_n of_o use_n and_o condition_n 3._o he_o say_v christ_n flesh_n be_v translate_v into_o the_o bread_n as_o well_o as_o he_o say_v the_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o his_o body_n but_o this_o they_o will_v not_o maintain_v and_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v do_v substantial_o and_o yet_o both_o real_o to_o wit_n as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o first_o word_n in_o a_o mystery_n 4._o he_o say_v express_o christ_n give_v they_o bread_n and_o command_v to_o eat_v therefore_o it_o be_v still_o bread_n and_o must_v be_v eat_v the_o bread_n be_v such_o bread_n as_o strengthen_v the_o heart_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v such_o wine_n as_o augment_v blood_n therefore_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v remain_v and_o here_o he_o condemn_v another_o practice_n of_o the_o romanist_n which_o although_o they_o do_v not_o profess_v in_o writing_n yet_o i_o have_v hear_v credible_o report_v that_o they_o do_v as_o baptize_v dead_a child_n so_o put_v bread_n or_o the_o hosty_a into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o elder_a person_n when_o they_o be_v dead_a this_o haymo_n write_v also_o a_o large_a commentary_n on_o the_o revelation_n wherein_o though_o he_o fail_v in_o the_o application_n of_o the_o prophetical_a part_n as_o not_o know_v what_o be_v to_o come_v yet_o be_v he_o orthodox_n in_o doctrine_n and_o contradict_v the_o present_a romish_a church_n in_o many_o particular_n and_o as_o once_o i_o have_v say_v before_o we_o look_v upon_o the_o pure_a mettle_n and_o leave_v the_o dross_n in_o lib._n 1._o at_o the_o word_n grace_n and_o peace_n he_o say_v it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o it_o be_v not_o say_v peace_n and_o grace_n but_o grace_n be_v premit_v and_o peace_n follow_v because_o none_o can_v attain_v the_o peace_n of_o reconciliation_n unless_o the_o grace_n of_o mercy_n prevene_v he_o because_o that_o we_o may_v come_v to_o the_o peace_n of_o god_n we_o be_v preven_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o general_o all_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v from_o god_n whether_o in_o faith_n or_o in_o work_n in_o abstinence_n fast_v and_o other_o thing_n be_v give_v to_o we_o free_o of_o his_o only_a mercy_n on_o cap._n 2._o at_o the_o word_n i_o will_v make_v he_o a_o pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n he_o say_v none_o doubt_v that_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o elect_a ...._o the_o lord_n than_o say_v who_o overcome_v understand_v you_o the_o temptation_n of_o the_o devil_n worldly_a lust_n and_o carnal_a delight_n i_o will_v make_v he_o a_o pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o my_o god_n that_o be_v i_o will_v make_v he_o strong_a in_o good_a work_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o fear_v any_o loss_n but_o moreover_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o fortitude_n that_o be_v by_o his_o example_n and_o doctrine_n he_o may_v sustain_v the_o church_n and_o where_o it_o be_v say_v he_o shall_v not_o go_v forth_o any_o more_o it_o be_v manifest_o know_v that_o he_o have_v go_v forth_o ...._o but_o be_v recall_v he_o shall_v go_v no_o more_o forth_o that_o be_v he_o shall_v be_v separate_v no_o more_o from_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n as_o in_o this_o place_n so_o in_o a_o hundred_o more_o of_o that_o commentary_n he_o call_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n the_o elect_a and_o he_o speak_v oft_o of_o their_o perseverance_n in_o lib._n 2._o on_o cap._n 3._o at_o these_o word_n i_o will_v sup_v with_o he_o he_o say_v the_o head_n sup_v with_o the_o member_n and_o the_o member_n with_o the_o head_n because_o christ_n die_v for_o the_o elect_n and_o the_o elect_a die_n with_o he_o that_o they_o also_o may_v perfect_v the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n christ_n feed_v we_o because_o he_o inlightn_v we_o with_o his_o faith_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o feed_v christ_n when_o we_o do_v delight_v he_o with_o our_o faith_n and_o work_v on_o cap._n 8._o at_o these_o word_n and_o another_o angel_n come_v and_o stand_v before_o the_o altar_n he_o say_v this_o other_o angel_n be_v the_o man_n christ-god_n of_o who_o the_o prophet_n say_v his_o name_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o great_a counsel_n for_o he_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o father_n will_n which_o come_v and_o stand_v before_o the_o altar_n with_o a_o golden_a censer_n to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a highpriest_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v for_o it_o be_v the_o ministry_n of_o a_o priest_n to_o stand_v at_o the_o altar_n and_o diligent_o to_o burn_v the_o incense_n be_v prepare_v with_o spice_n for_o he_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o angel_n and_o the_o highpriest_n of_o priest_n moreover_o before_o the_o altar_n that_o be_v before_o all_o the_o church_n which_o burn_v with_o the_o fire_n of_o god_n love_n and_o offer_v unto_o god_n a_o true_a sacrifice_n that_o be_v a_o contrite_a heart_n kill_v kimself_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o live_n and_o reasonable_a sacrifice_n for_o before_o this_o altar_n stand_v the_o angel_n that_o be_v the_o true_a highpriest_n by_o who_o we_o send_v all_o our_o sacrifice_n unto_o god_n the_o father_n wherefore_o also_o the_o priest_n in_o all_o their_o prayer_n make_v mention_n of_o he_o that_o by_o he_o they_o may_v be_v hear_v say_v through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n ....._o to_o this_o angel_n the_o incense_v be_v give_v that_o he_o shall_v offer_v they_o unto_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o altar_n that_o be_v upon_o himself_o by_o who_o the_o godly_a do_v direct_v unto_o the_o father_n their_o prayer_n and_o all_o their_o work_n as_o it_o be_v write_v if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v with_o the_o father_n a_o advocate_n jesus_n christ_n the_o just_a and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o
of_o virginity_n be_v commend_v so_o that_o the_o humility_n of_o marriage_n be_v not_o despise_v catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 9_o trithem_n in_o catal._n illustr_n say_v that_o he_o write_v of_o redemption_n superfluous_o even_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o reprobate_n here_o trithem_n do_v he_o wrong_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o book_n itself_o which_o be_v print_v late_o at_o rotterdam_n with_o a_o preface_n of_o the_o learned_a doctor_n rivet_n or_o renatus_n deviraeus_n who_o have_v a_o part_n of_o his_o xxx_o epistle_n write_v unto_o gotteschalk_n answer_v unto_o that_o question_n whether_o we_o shall_v after_o resurrection_n behold_v god_n with_o bodily_a eye_n here_o he_o commend_v the_o modesty_n of_o augustine_n and_o deni_v that_o god_n can_v be_v see_v in_o his_o substance_n which_o privilege_n be_v reserve_v unto_o the_o spirit_n and_o then_o he_o say_v though_o i_o pay_v my_o debt_n of_o love_n unto_o thou_o much_o respect_a brother_n i_o can_v full_o discharge_v it_o but_o i_o exhort_v thou_o that_o thou_o spend_v not_o thy_o spirit_n any_o more_o on_o such_o question_n lest_o be_v take_v up_o with_o they_o more_o than_o be_v needful_a thou_o be_v less_o able_a to_o search_v and_o teach_v profitable_a thing_n ......_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o walk_v in_o the_o most_o large_a field_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o give_v ourselves_o whole_o unto_o the_o meditation_n of_o they_o and_o seek_v the_o lord_n face_n humble_o pious_o and_o continual_o for_o no_o good_a shall_v be_v lack_v unto_o they_o who_o seek_v he_o then_o that_o preface_n show_v that_o this_o abbot_n be_v not_o author_n of_o that_o book_n which_o trithemius_n and_o other_o do_v call_v he_o but_o another_o lupus_n who_o do_v live_v at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o wit_n 20._o lupus_fw-la servatus_fw-la a_o benedictine_n in_o the_o abbey_n of_o saint_n amand_n in_o the_o diocy_n of_o tornac_n write_v a_o treatise_n of_o freewill_n predestination_n and_o of_o the_o price_n of_o christ_n blood_n the_o sum_n of_o that_o treatise_n the_o author_n do_v collect_v in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o king_n charles_n the_o bald_a who_o have_v command_v he_o to_o write_v on_o that_o subject_n his_o word_n be_v god_n make_v adam_n upright_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v and_o in_o he_o he_o create_v we_o all_o original_o upright_a this_o father_n of_o mankind_n forsake_v natural_a uprightness_n none_n force_v he_o do_v sin_n so_o grievous_o that_o himself_o and_o in_o he_o he_o condemn_v we_o all_o which_o be_v beget_v of_o both_o sex_n god_n therefore_o make_v human_a nature_n excellent_o good_a but_o man_n have_v corrupt_v it_o miserable_o by_o his_o spontaneous_a fault_n adam_n be_v then_o as_o say_v bless_a ambrose_n and_o we_o all_o be_v in_o he_o but_o adam_n perish_v and_o we_o all_o perish_v in_o he_o let_v we_o praise_v god_n work_n and_o confess_v that_o nothing_o but_o punishment_n be_v due_a unto_o our_o fault_n but_o god_n to_o who_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v be_v and_o which_o be_v to_o come_v be_v present_a for_o he_o be_v what_o he_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o addition_n or_o diminution_n of_o his_o knowledge_n see_v he_o fore-knew_a the_o whole_a mass_n of_o mankind_n to_o be_v corrupt_v with_o sin_n will_v not_o hold_v from_o it_o the_o good_a of_o his_o creation_n see_v he_o can_v use_v well_o even_o evil_a thing_n and_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n he_o do_v choose_v out_o of_o that_o mass_n who_o by_o grace_n he_o will_v deliver_v from_o deserve_a punishment_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v as_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o other_o on_o who_o he_o vouchsafe_v not_o this_o grace_n of_o mercy_n he_o in_o just_a judgement_n leave_v they_o in_o damnation_n which_o they_o have_v deserve_v by_o sin_n and_o thus_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v he_o show_v mercy_n on_o such_o who_o he_o assume_v by_o grace_n and_o he_o harden_v those_o who_o he_o do_v not_o mollify_v by_o the_o same_o grace_n but_o howbeit_o in_o hide_v yet_o in_o just_a judgement_n he_o leave_v they_o those_o then_o on_o who_o he_o show_v mercy_n be_v predestinate_v for_o glory_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v who_o he_o have_v foreknow_v he_o have_v predestinate_v and_o they_o be_v call_v the_o vessel_n of_o honour_n these_o do_v owe_v unto_o he_o what_o they_o be_v and_o what_o they_o have_v because_o they_o be_v make_v by_o his_o goodness_n when_o before_o they_o be_v not_o and_o of_o his_o bountifulness_n they_o be_v save_v when_o they_o be_v lose_v but_o those_o who_o he_o harden_v that_o be_v who_o he_o soften_v not_o which_o be_v leave_v in_o damnation_n which_o they_o have_v original_o and_o actual_o deserve_v be_v call_v vessel_n fit_v unto_o contumely_n and_o prepare_v for_o destruction_n that_o those_o be_v create_v it_o be_v the_o good_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o be_v punish_v it_o be_v their_o own_o evil_n bless_a augustine_n in_o many_o of_o his_o book_n and_o especial_o in_o that_o he_o write_v last_o doubt_v not_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v predestinate_v to_o punishment_n not_o mean_v a_o fatal_a necessity_n on_o they_o which_o shall_v perish_v but_o the_o unchangeable_a desertion_n of_o they_o which_o be_v forsake_v for_o he_o have_v read_v if_o god_n shut_v up_o a_o man_n who_o shall_v open_v unto_o he_o and_o also_o consider_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o none_o can_v correct_v what_o he_o have_v despise_v and_o that_o also_o i_o have_v give_v they_o over_o into_o the_o desire_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o they_o shall_v walk_v in_o their_o own_o device_n and_o i_o think_v he_o be_v lead_v into_o this_o thought_n especial_o by_o that_o testimony_n concern_v god_n which_o make_v what_o be_v to_o come_v and_o to_o who_o it_o be_v say_v thou_o will_v give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o their_o work_n which_o indeed_o he_o will_v do_v to_o each_o one_o except_o who_o he_o bless_v by_o forgive_a their_o iniquity_n and_o hide_v their_o sin_n which_o advance_v his_o grace_n with_o high_a praise_n can_v say_v he_o deal_v not_o with_o we_o according_a to_o our_o sin_n nor_o reward_v we_o according_a to_o our_o iniquity_n with_o augustine_n do_v in_o other_o word_n agree_v jerom_n gregory_n beda_n isidore_n ..._o as_o i_o can_v easy_o demonstrate_v certain_o the_o first_o man_n do_v by_o sin_v lose_v freewill_n in_o good_a which_o he_o do_v despise_v and_o he_o hold_v it_o in_o evil_a which_o he_o choose_v but_o as_o if_o a_o man_n will_v he_o can_v kill_v himself_o by_o withhold_a food_n from_o himself_o but_o when_o he_o be_v kill_v he_o can_v make_v himself_o to_o live_v so_o man_n can_v willing_o lose_v the_o use_n of_o freewill_n in_o good_a by_o forsake_v it_o but_o he_o can_v resume_v it_o by_o his_o own_o strength_n even_o although_o he_o will_v therefore_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v freewill_n in_o good_a unless_o it_o be_v make_v free_a by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n which_o know_v as_o it_o be_v write_v what_o be_v in_o man_n declare_v this_o sound_o when_o he_o say_v without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o to_o wit_n no_o good_a thing_n for_o he_o can_v be_v the_o author_n nor_o co-worker_n of_o ill_a who_o as_o john_n baptist_n say_v be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n and_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o wit_n both_o which_o be_v and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o do_v and_o elsewhere_o if_o the_o son_n shall_v make_v you_o free_a you_o shall_v be_v true_o free_a ....._o god_n grace_n preven_v we_o as_o it_o be_v write_v my_o god_n his_o mercy_n shall_v prevene_v i_o that_o we_o may_v both_o will_n and_o begin_v and_o his_o grace_n follow_v we_o as_o it_o be_v write_v thy_o mercy_n shall_v follow_v i_o that_o in_o vain_a we_o will_v not_o or_o begin_v these_o than_o be_v principal_o of_o god_n as_o be_v clear_a by_o these_o testimony_n and_o but_o consequent_o we_o because_o they_o be_v do_v by_o we_o willing_o as_o it_o be_v write_v lord_n thou_o will_v give_v we_o peace_n for_o thou_o work_v all_o our_o work_n unto_o we_o ......._o last_o who_o god_n have_v redeem_v by_o his_o blood_n it_o be_v learn_v by_o the_o gospel_n in_o matthew_n the_o lord_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o mark_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o but_o in_o luke_n this_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n of_o my_o blood_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o then_o two_o
and_o people_n may_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o zeal_n and_o study_n of_o good_a work_n 12._o a_o form_n of_o hear_v confession_n and_o prescribe_v penance_n be_v order_v ca._n 13._o eight_o principal_a vice_n be_v declare_v that_o all_o man_n may_v know_v they_o and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n abstain_v from_o they_o ca._n 14._o bishop_n be_v command_v to_o read_v more_o diligent_o the_o scripture_n and_o write_n of_o the_o father_n and_o to_o preach_v unto_o the_o people_n ca._n 17._o bishop_n and_o abbot_n shall_v not_o permit_v wanton_a jest_n in_o their_o hear_n but_o have_v with_o they_o the_o poor_a and_o needy_a and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v sound_v beside_o they_o ca._n 35._o as_o the_o lord_n command_v no_o servile_a work_n shall_v be_v do_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n nor_o market_n be_v hold_v ca._n 39_o tithe_n shall_v be_v give_v full_o ca._n 40._o prayer_n and_o oblation_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o child_n that_o god_n will_v preserve_v they_o in_o all_o felicity_n in_o this_o world_n and_o of_o his_o mercy_n make_v they_o rejoice_v with_o the_o holy_a angel_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 4._o at_o cabilon_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o bishop_n and_o priest_n shall_v read_v the_o scripture_n diligent_o and_o teach_v their_o people_n they_o shall_v maintain_v and_o erect_v school_n for_o young_a one_o priest_n and_o monk_n be_v rebuke_v which_o do_v persuade_v people_n to_o give_v liberal_o unto_o church_n and_o monastery_n that_o themselves_o may_v live_v at_o more_o ease_n and_o they_o order_v that_o all_o such_o good_n as_o parent_n at_o their_o death_n have_v give_v foolish_o shall_v be_v restore_v unto_o their_o child_n bishop_n and_o priest_n shall_v not_o be_v drink_v for_o how_o can_v such_o rebuke_v the_o people_n they_o shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o civil_a affair_n nor_o exact_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o inferior_a priest_n nor_o for_o chrism_n nor_o for_o dedication_n of_o church_n or_o ordination_n of_o priest_n they_o who_o give_v public_a scandal_n shall_v make_v public_a repentance_n concern_v pilgrimage_n they_o note_v many_o fault_n clark_n think_v themselves_o free_a from_o discharge_v their_o office_n and_o cleanse_v from_o their_o sin_n if_o they_o go_v to_o such_o or_o such_o place_n laic_n think_v they_o may_v do_v what_o they_o will_v if_o they_o go_v thither_o and_o pray_v nobleman_n under_o pretext_n of_o pilgrimage_n to_o ward_n rome_n or_o turone_n do_v spoil_v many_o poor_a subject_n and_o poor_a folk_n go_v in_o pilgrimage_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o more_o free_a occasion_n of_o beg_v and_o many_o time_n say_v that_o they_o be_v go_v thither_o when_o they_o have_v no_o such_o purpose_n and_o some_o be_v so_o foolish_a that_o they_o think_v the_o only_a sight_n of_o such_o place_n cleanse_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n and_o how_o all_o these_o thing_n may_v be_v redress_v they_o expect_v the_o will_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o not_o a_o word_n of_o reformation_n by_o the_o pope_n 5._o at_o aken_n be_v a_o council_n by_o command_n of_o lewis_n the_o godly_a there_o it_o be_v decree_v among_o other_o thing_n first_o that_o every_o church_n shall_v have_v sufficient_a maintenance_n for_o the_o priest_n that_o none_o need_v to_o beg_v 2._o none_o of_o the_o clergy_n of_o whatsoever_o degree_n shall_v wear_v any_o cloth_n of_o scarlet_a or_o such_o precious_a colour_n nor_o have_v ring_n on_o their_o finger_n 3._o prelate_n shall_v not_o have_v too_o large_a house_n nor_o many_o horse_n nor_o frequent_a harlot_n nor_o play_v at_o dice_n nor_o have_v gold_n or_o silver_n on_o their_o shoe_n slipper_n nor_o girdle_n whence_o may_v be_v understand_v the_o pride_n and_o pomp_n of_o prelate_n in_o those_o day_n which_o give_v occasion_n unto_o platina_n to_o say_v o_o if_o thou_o lewis_n be_v now_o alive_a the_o church_n have_v need_n of_o thy_o holy_a statute_n and_o censure_n all_o order_n of_o the_o church_n be_v now_o so_o luxurious_a and_o voluptuous_a thou_o will_v see_v now_o not_o only_o man_n which_o haply_o may_v seem_v light_a but_o horse_n and_o other_o beast_n clothe_v in_o purpure_a with_o a_o company_n of_o young_a man_n run_v before_o and_o another_o of_o old_a follow_v after_o not_o upon_o ass_n as_o christ_n do_v who_o be_v the_o only_a example_n of_o live_v well_o upon_o earth_n but_o upon_o fierce_a and_o harnished_a horse_n as_o if_o they_o be_v triumph_v over_o a_o enemy_n i_o will_v not_o speak_v say_v he_o of_o their_o silver_n vessel_n and_o precious_a householdstuff_n see_v the_o ancient_a dish_n of_o italy_n and_o ornament_n of_o attalus_n and_o vessel_n of_o corinth_n be_v nothing_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o and_o what_o follow_v on_o this_o their_o intemperance_n i_o forbear_v to_o mention_v 6._o at_o melda_n upon_o the_o river_n matrona_n be_v a_o synod_n assemble_v by_o charles_n the_o two_o where_o among_o other_o canon_n it_o be_v decree_v first_o that_o every_o bishop_n shall_v have_v in_o his_o house_n one_o which_o according_a to_o the_o pure_a mind_n of_o the_o catholic_n father_n who_o be_v able_a to_o instruct_v the_o priest_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n lest_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v his_o church_n shall_v be_v without_o the_o lantern_n of_o the_o word_n 2._o that_o presbyter_n shall_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o continue_v abroad_o but_o that_o they_o dwell_v at_o their_o church_n 3._o a_o charge_n be_v give_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n unto_o all_o bishop_n unto_o king_n and_o all_o in_o authority_n and_o unto_o all_o who_o have_v power_n in_o election_n and_o ordination_n in_o any_o order_n ecclesiastical_a that_o none_o be_v admit_v by_o simony_n by_o whatsoever_o faction_n promise_n or_o gift_n either_o by_o the_o person_n or_o another_o for_o he_o 4._o that_o no_o bishop_n do_v retire_v into_o a_o remote_a place_n for_o his_o own_o ease_n and_o so_o neglect_v his_o charge_n but_o that_o he_o visit_v his_o parish_n diligent_o and_o he_o with_o his_o child_n live_v in_o chastity_n sobriety_n and_o hospitality_n 5._o that_o the_o damnable_a custom_n of_o some_o bishop_n be_v amend_v who_o never_o or_o seldom_o visit_v their_o people_n although_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v i_o have_v set_v thou_o a_o watchman_n etc._n etc._n 7._o at_o rome_n be_v a_o synod_n of_o 47_o bishop_n convene_v by_o pope_n leo_n the_o iv_o at_o the_o command_n of_o lotharius_n where_o these_o former_a canon_n be_v confirm_v in_o other_o word_n and_o moreover_o that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v not_o be_v consecrate_v unless_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n do_v crave_v he_o priest_n shall_v be_v diligent_a in_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o in_o teach_v the_o people_n and_o shall_v not_o permit_v game_n in_o their_o sight_n priest_n shall_v not_o be_v take_v up_o with_o senory_n hunt_v hawk_v or_o any_o rural_a work_n nor_o go_v abroad_o without_o a_o sacerdotal_a habit_n abbot_n must_v be_v able_a to_o cognosce_fw-la and_o amend_v whatsoever_o may_v be_v do_v amiss_o by_o their_o brethren_n 8._o at_o valentia_n an._n 855._o be_v a_o council_n by_o command_n of_o the_o same_o lotharius_n there_o be_v three_o metropolitan_n remigius_n of_o lion_n agilmar_n of_o vienna_n roland_n of_o arles_n and_o 14_o bishop_n with_o a_o venerable_a company_n of_o priest_n and_o deacon_n six_o canon_n be_v enact_v the_o first_o for_o eschue_v all_o new-coined_a word_n in_o doctrine_n ca._n 2._o god_n foreknow_v and_o have_v eternal_o foreknow_v both_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o the_o godly_a be_v to_o do_v and_o the_o evil_n which_o the_o wicked_a be_v to_o do_v because_o we_o have_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o scripture_n say_v o_o eternal_a god_n which_o know_v all_o thing_n and_o hide_v thing_n ere_o they_o be_v do_v dan._n 13._o we_o faithful_o hold_v and_o it_o please_v to_o hold_v still_o that_o he_o foreknow_v that_o good_a man_n be_v to_o be_v good_a by_o his_o grace_n and_o according_a to_o the_o same_o grace_n be_v to_o receive_v everlasting_a reward_n and_o that_o he_o foreknow_v that_o the_o wicked_a be_v to_o be_v wicked_a through_o their_o own_o wickedness_n and_o be_v to_o be_v damn_v with_o everlasting_a punishment_n through_o his_o justice_n as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v power_n belong_v to_o god_n and_o unto_o he_o belong_v mercy_n that_o he_o may_v render_v unto_o every_o one_o according_a to_o their_o work_n and_o the_o apostle_n teach_v to_o they_o who_o by_o patient_a continuance_n in_o well_o do_v seek_v glory_n and_o honour_n and_o immortality_n he_o give_v eternal_a life_n but_o unto_o they_o which_o be_v contentious_a ......_o and_o again_o in_o flame_a fire_n render_v vengeance_n on_o they_o which_o know_v not_o god_n ...._o and_o that_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n do_v not_o put_v upon_o any_o evil_a man_n any_o
say_v he_o may_v easy_o understand_v who_o will_v compare_v the_o new_a divine_n with_o the_o ancient_a both_o latin_a and_o greek_a so_o far_o berald_n out_o of_o these_o two_o testimony_n observe_v that_o theophylact_fw-mi do_v agree_v with_o the_o ancient_n before_o he_o as_o chrysostom_n basilius_n and_o other_o of_o those_o age_n who_o he_o often_o quote_v and_o do_v disagree_v from_o the_o multitude_n of_o preacher_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n about_o the_o year_n 1533._o where_o then_o be_v their_o frequent_a gloriation_n of_o the_o constancy_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o ancient_a father_n hear_v then_o what_o theophylact_v say_v in_o the_o article_n of_o controversy_n in_o those_o day_n in_o prologue_n before_o evang._n matth._n he_o say_v because_o heresy_n be_v to_o bud_v forth_o which_o be_v ready_a to_o waste_v our_o manner_n it_o be_v think_v necessary_a that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v write_v to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o learning_n truth_n out_o of_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v deceive_v with_o the_o lie_v of_o heresy_n and_o our_o manner_n shall_v not_o altogether_o be_v undo_v on_o cap._n 13._o near_o the_o end_n speak_v of_o christ_n and_o his_o mother_n he_o say_v the_o mother_n will_v show_v some_o human_a thing_n that_o she_o have_v power_n over_o her_o son_n for_o as_o yet_o she_o have_v no_o great_a thought_n of_o he_o and_o therefore_o while_o he_o be_v yet_o speak_v she_o will_v draw_v he_o unto_o she_o porsena_n here_o add_v on_o the_o margin_n lege_fw-la cautè_fw-la to_o wit_n he_o see_v that_o these_o word_n be_v against_o the_o tenet_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o virgin_n be_v free_a from_o all_o sin_n and_o by_o right_a of_o her_o mother-hood_n she_o can_v command_v her_o son_n on_o cap._n 16._o because_o peter_n have_v confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o say_v that_o this_o confession_n which_o he_o have_v confess_v shall_v be_v the_o foundation_n of_o believer_n so_o that_o every_o man_n which_o shall_v build_v the_o house_n of_o faith_n shall_v lay_v this_o foundation_n for_o although_o we_o build_v many_o virtue_n and_o have_v not_o this_o foundation_n a_o right_a confession_n we_o do_v build_v unprofitable_o ....._o they_o have_v power_n of_o bind_v and_o forgive_n who_o receive_v the_o gift_n of_o episcopacy_n or_o oversight_n as_o peter_n do_v for_o although_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o peter_n i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v grant_v unto_o all_o the_o apostle_n when_o when_o he_o say_v who_o sin_n you_o forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v for_o when_o he_o say_v i_o will_v give_v he_o signify_v the_o time_n come_v that_o be_v after_o the_o resurrection_n ......_o when_o peter_n speak_v right_o christ_n call_v he_o bless_v but_o when_o he_o fear_v without_o reason_n and_o will_v not_o have_v he_o to_o suffer_v he_o lash_v he_o and_o say_v go_v behind_o i_o satan_n in_o luc._n cap._n 2._o bishop_n shall_v keep_v their_o flock_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v sing_v in_o the_o field_n sing_v spiritual_a thing_n and_o teach_v the_o people_n and_o hear_v divine_a vision_n and_o say_n bethleem_n be_v the_o house_n of_o bread_n and_o what_o other_o be_v the_o house_n of_o bread_n but_o the_o church_n in_o which_o bread_n be_v provide_v it_o be_v therefore_o the_o duty_n of_o spiritual_a shepherd_n to_o seek_v heavenly_a bread_n which_o when_o they_o have_v see_v they_o must_v preach_v it_o unto_o other_o ....._o the_o thing_n whereof_o the_o scripture_n be_v silent_a we_o shall_v not_o inquire_v on_o cap._n 16._o nothing_o be_v so_o profitable_a as_o diligent_a search_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o devil_n may_v false_o and_o apparent_o make_v a_o search_n of_o the_o dead_a to_o deceive_v the_o unwise_a and_o from_o hell_n he_o may_v sow_v doctrine_n according_a to_o his_o wickedness_n but_o those_o who_o do_v due_o search_v the_o scripture_n nothing_o can_v delude_v they_o for_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o lantern_n and_o light_n which_o when_o it_o shine_v the_o thief_n be_v find_v and_o make_v manifest_a therefore_o we_o shall_v believe_v they_o and_o not_o regard_v the_o rise_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o a_o little_a before_o he_o say_v as_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o man_n to_o pass_v from_o the_o company_n of_o the_o just_a into_o the_o place_n of_o sinner_n so_o it_o be_v impossible_a as_o abraham_n teach_v we_o to_o pass_v from_o the_o place_n of_o punishment_n into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o just_a ...._o the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n be_v the_o possession_n of_o good_a thing_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o just_a pass_v from_o the_o wave_n of_o the_o sea_n into_o the_o haven_n of_o heaven_n on_o joh._n cap._n 1._o the_o new_a testament_n be_v call_v grace_n because_o god_n give_v free_o unto_o we_o not_o only_a remission_n of_o sin_n but_o the_o adoption_n of_o child_n and_o it_o be_v call_v truth_n because_o whatsoever_o the_o father_n see_v in_o figure_n or_o speak_v he_o have_v here_o preach_v these_o clear_o ..........._o here_o we_o learn_v that_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n childhood_n be_v but_o feign_v and_o lie_v and_o make_v up_o by_o they_o who_o will_v scorn_v the_o mystery_n for_o if_o these_o have_v be_v true_a how_o can_v the_o lord_n have_v be_v unknown_a which_o wrought_v they_o for_o it_o be_v no_o way_n likely_a that_o he_o be_v not_o famous_a which_o do_v such_o miracle_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o for_o before_o he_o be_v baptize_v he_o wrought_v no_o sign_n neither_o be_v he_o know_v on_o cap._n 3._o if_o thou_o know_v not_o the_o wind_n which_o be_v a_o spirit_n subject_a to_o sense_n how_o search_v thou_o curious_o of_o regeneration_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n how_o and_o from_o who_o it_o be_v breathe_v if_o this_o spirit_n can_v be_v comprehend_v far_o less_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n subject_n to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n confound_v therefore_o be_v macedonius_n the_o fighter_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o eunomius_n before_o he_o for_o he_o will_v make_v the_o spirit_n a_o servant_n although_o he_o hear_v in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o spirit_n blow_v whither_o it_o will_v far_o rather_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o more_o free_a motion_n and_o do_v work_v where_o he_o will_v and_o after_o what_o manner_n he_o will_v ......_o when_o thou_o hear_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n think_v not_o that_o his_o flesh_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n this_o do_v apollinarius_n teach_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n from_o heaven_n which_o do_v pass_v through_o the_o virgin_n as_o through_o a_o conduit_n but_o because_o christ_n be_v one_o person_n consist_v in_o two_o nature_n therefore_o whatsoever_o belong_v to_o the_o manhood_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o word_n and_o again_o what_o belong_v unto_o the_o word_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o man_n so_o here_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v say_v to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n because_o he_o be_v one_o person_n and_o again_o lest_o when_o you_o hear_v it_o say_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v down_o you_o will_v think_v that_o he_o be_v not_o in_o heaven_n he_o say_v even_o he_o which_o be_v in_o heaven_n for_o do_v not_o think_v that_o i_o be_o not_o there_o because_o i_o come_v down_o but_o both_o be_o i_o here_o bodily_a and_o i_o sit_v there_o as_o god_n with_o the_o father_n ....._o here_o we_o learn_v that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v like_a or_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o new_a and_o there_o be_v but_o one_o giver_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n although_o martion_n and_o manicheus_fw-la and_o that_o rabble_n of_o heretic_n deny_v it_o he_o teach_v also_o that_o since_o the_o jew_n behold_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n do_v escape_v death_n far_o rather_o we_o look_v on_o he_o which_o be_v crucify_v and_o believe_v shall_v escape_v the_o death_n of_o the_o soul_n ....._o adam_n die_v just_o because_o he_o sin_v but_o the_o lord_n die_v unjust_o because_o he_o have_v not_o sin_v ...._o and_o because_o he_o die_v unjust_o he_o overcome_v he_o by_o who_o he_o be_v kill_v and_o so_o deliver_v adam_n from_o death_n which_o be_v lay_v just_o upon_o he_o on_o cap._n 6._o diligent_a faith_n be_v a_o guide_n unto_o good_a work_n and_o good_a work_n do_v conserve_v faith_n for_o both_o work_n be_v dead_a without_o faith_n and_o faith_n without_o work_n ......._o he_o say_v i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n he_o say_v not_o i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o nourishment_n but_o of_o life_n for_o when_o all_o thing_n be_v dead_a christ_n make_v we_o alive_a by_o himself_o who_o be_v that_o bread_n in_o so_o far_o as_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o leaven_n of_o mankind_n be_v heat_v by_o the_o fire_n
have_v make_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n unprofitable_a unto_o themselves_o which_o certain_o be_v horrible_a to_o be_v speak_v and_o very_o lamentable_a see_v that_o death_n bring_v salvation_n unto_o many_o this_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o basilius_n also_o and_o nevertheless_o we_o find_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o he_o may_v give_v his_o life_n a_o ransom_n for_o many_o to_o be_v expound_v for_o all_o cap._n 10._o can_v never_o with_o these_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v year_n by_o year_n ....._o if_o they_o be_v once_o offer_v have_v be_v available_a they_o shall_v no_o more_o have_v be_v offer_v but_o when_o the_o oblation_n be_v make_v year_n by_o year_n and_o often_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o they_o be_v too_o weak_a for_o bring_v salvation_n unto_o they_o who_o be_v desirous_a of_o it_o and_o therefore_o after_o the_o first_o offering_n follow_v another_o and_o again_o and_o again_o another_o for_o among_o drug_n that_o be_v call_v most_o valid_a and_o efficacious_a which_o be_v but_o once_o apply_v or_o drunken_a do_v heal_v and_o cure_v but_o what_o must_v be_v often_o change_v and_o apply_v have_v the_o less_o virtue_n of_o heal_a and_o do_v no_o good_a unto_o the_o sick_a but_o one_o may_v ask_v do_v we_o not_o offer_v without_o blood_n yea_o indeed_o but_o then_o we_o remember_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o have_v but_o one_o oblation_n and_o not_o many_o see_v he_o be_v offer_v but_o once_o for_o we_o offer_v he_o continual_o or_o rather_o we_o remember_v his_o oblation_n even_o as_o if_o at_o this_o time_n he_o be_v sacrifice_v wherefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o we_o have_v but_o one_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o law_n have_v many_o although_o as_o it_o be_v say_v before_o it_o be_v offer_v the_o often_o that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o more_o profitable_a unto_o many_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v far_o otherwise_o but_o our_o sacrifice_n as_o i_o have_v say_v be_v but_o one_o and_o once_o offer_v and_o continue_v whole_a both_o in_o this_o life_n and_o that_o to_o come_v and_o it_o be_v more_o perfect_a for_o it_o be_v but_o one_o blood_n and_o once_o pour_v forth_o and_o one_o body_n although_o it_o be_v offer_v for_o many_o and_o it_o be_v not_o many_o as_o it_o be_v but_o one_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v for_o we_o do_v offer_v that_o continual_o as_o if_o it_o be_v present_a so_o far_o from_o theophylact._n but_o here_o some_o may_v object_v that_o theophylact_fw-mi agree_v not_o with_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o vindicate_v theoph●lact_fw-mi be_v vindicate_v many_o particular_n it_o be_v true_a and_o therefore_o i_o say_v often_o we_o must_v make_v separation_n of_o the_o dross_n from_o the_o pure_a gold_n but_o his_o difference_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v great_a than_o it_o be_v porsena_n in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o the_o reader_n before_o the_o gospel_n say_v theophylact_v follow_v chrysostom_n concern_v freewill_n and_o faith_n and_o some_o other_o thing_n and_o therefore_o in_o expound_v some_o place_n he_o be_v somewhat_o more_o violent_a which_o i_o say_v that_o herein_o you_o shall_v use_v discretion_n which_o know_v thyself_o to_o be_v addict_v unto_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n only_o and_o not_o to_o scar_n thou_o from_o read_v of_o he_o as_o some_o be_v wont_a when_o any_o passage_n displease_v they_o throw_v the_o book_n away_o so_o say_v i_o in_o read_v of_o any_o book_n write_v by_o man_n we_o who_o be_v addict_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n only_o must_v use_v discretion_n but_o it_o seem_v porsena_n speak_v not_o this_o unto_o papist_n because_o they_o be_v not_o addict_v to_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n only_o and_o he_o say_v that_o theophylact_fw-mi be_v more_o violent_a in_o expound_v some_o place_n where_o certain_o porsena_n understand_v that_o he_o cross_v the_o tenet_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n but_o this_o may_v be_v more_o clear_a by_o particular_n 1._o porsena_n have_v often_o mark_v the_o margin_n with_o liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la as_o if_o theophylact_fw-mi do_v will_n in_o point_n of_o free_a will_n there_o assert_v the_o romish_a error_n concern_v freewill_n and_o i_o know_v that_o other_o do_v allege_v his_o testimony_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n howbeit_o he_o speak_v nothing_o against_o we_o nor_o for_o they_o as_o be_v clear_a by_o inspection_n of_o particular_a place_n on_o luk._n 15._o fol._n 103._o on_o the_o margin_n be_v liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la and_o in_o the_o line_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o man_n be_v rational_a whereupon_o follow_v freewill_n for_o all_o rational_a creature_n have_v a_o freewill_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v they_o reason_n that_o they_o may_v use_v it_o free_o etc._n etc._n it_o be_v clear_a that_o theophylact_fw-mi speak_v there_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n absolute_o or_o without_o any_o relation_n to_o any_o particular_a condition_n of_o man_n before_o the_o fall_n or_o after_o the_o fall_n and_o he_o speak_v against_o the_o stoic_n and_o manichean_o which_o do_v hold_v that_o the_o action_n of_o man_n be_v carry_v by_o fate_n or_o press_a necessity_n and_o therefore_o it_o follow_v there_o if_o god_n will_v have_v we_o to_o be_v compel_v he_o have_v not_o make_v we_o rational_a and_o of_o a_o freewill_n on_o joh._n 6._o at_o the_o word_n will_v you_o also_o go_v away_o he_o say_v the_o lord_n say_v not_o go_v you_o away_o for_o this_o have_v be_v to_o repel_v they_o but_o he_o ask_v will_v you_o go_v away_o whereby_o he_o make_v it_o free_a whether_o they_o will_v follow_v he_o or_o not_o and_o he_o show_v that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o to_o follow_v he_o in_o fear_n on_o these_o word_n also_o have_v porsena_n fix_v liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la as_o also_o on_o mat._n 16._o at_o the_o word_n if_o any_o will_v follow_v i_o he_o say_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n the_o lord_n say_v if_o any_o will_n to_o show_v freewill_n and_o not_o co-act_a virtue_n these_o and_o many_o more_o place_n be_v clear_o speak_v against_o the_o necessity_n of_o fate_n or_o coaction_n which_o now_o be_v not_o controvert_v but_o if_o you_o ask_v by_o what_o power_n be_v a_o unregenerate_v man_n convert_v he_o have_v say_v it_o already_o on_o 2_o cor._n 4._o and_o eph._n 1_o and_o 2._o or_o if_o you_o ask_v by_o what_o power_n do_v a_o regenerate_a man_n continue_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o practice_v of_o godliness_n theophylact_fw-mi teach_v that_o on_o phil._n 2._o at_o the_o word_n for_o it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o you_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v whereas_o he_o have_v say_v with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a now_o he_o say_v that_o they_o need_v not_o fear_v for_o i_o have_v not_o speak_v so_o that_o you_o shall_v despair_v but_o be_v the_o more_o wary_a for_o if_o you_o take_v heed_n and_o be_v diligent_a god_n will_v make_v all_o perfect_a for_o it_o be_v he_o which_o make_v you_o prompt_a to_o such_o a_o good_a will_n that_o we_o will_v good_a thing_n and_o also_o bring_v such_o promptitude_n of_o our_o mind_n unto_o a_o end_n for_o god_n work_v in_o we_o both_o the_o will_n that_o be_v he_o enable_v you_o that_o you_o desire_v good_a thing_n and_o he_o will_v augment_v this_o good_a will_n and_o kindle_v it_o that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o more_o fervent_a ....._o the_o apostle_n take_v not_o away_o freewill_n but_o will_v that_o we_o shall_v always_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n and_o commit_v all_o unto_o he_o mark_v say_v theophylact_v but_o this_o manner_n of_o speak_v he_o say_v in_o you_o who_o work_n your_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a for_o in_o such_o man_n which_o be_v willing_o lead_v unto_o good_a god_n work_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o good_a will_n that_o be_v that_o it_o may_v be_v fullfil_v in_o you_o what_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n ....._o for_o god_n will_v enable_v we_o to_o live_v right_o although_o it_o be_v no_o other_o cause_n but_o only_o this_o because_o so_o he_o will_v 2._o it_o be_v object_v that_o theophylact_fw-mi work_v and_o election_n by_o foresee_a faith_n or_o work_v say_v that_o election_n be_v make_v upon_o the_o foresight_n of_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n as_o on_o eph._n 1._o it_o be_v when_o he_o say_v he_o have_v choose_v he_o point_v forth_o both_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o their_o virtue_n to_o wit_n who_o god_n have_v separate_v as_o who_o be_v to_o be_v good_a i_o answer_v in_o these_o word_n theophylact_fw-mi touch_v not_o the_o move_a cause_n of_o election_n but_o only_o teach_v that_o god_n have_v choose_v none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v to_o be_v good_a and_o godly_a and_o this_o he_o insist_o oft_o upon_o against_o they_o which_o hold_v that_o faith_n or_o profession_n of_o faith_n be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n although_o man_n do_v not_o
good_a work_n as_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o word_n follow_v for_o when_o the_o text_n say_v that_o we_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n before_o he_o he_o add_v lest_o it_o come_v into_o one_o mind_n that_o god_n have_v choose_v who_o he_o will_v to_o be_v save_v and_o thereupon_o one_o be_v slack_a and_o think_v it_o be_v not_o any_o more_o needful_a to_o study_v unto_o virtue_n that_o one_o may_v attain_v life_n see_v they_o be_v already_o choose_v according_a to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v no_o more_o hope_n unto_o other_o unto_o this_o he_o say_v god_n have_v choose_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n that_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v live_v in_o that_o holiness_n which_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o we_o who_o have_v be_v wash_v in_o baptism_n therefore_o let_v we_o continue_v and_o keep_v a_o godly_a life_n whence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o judge_v the_o move_a cause_n to_o be_v the_o only_a will_n of_o god_n and_o thereupon_o follow_v that_o scruple_n which_o he_o remove_v and_o this_o may_v be_v clear_v from_o his_o word_n on_o v._o 2._o ch_n 2._o 10._o 3._o porsena_n mark_v in_o the_o margin_n transubstantiation_n and_o transubstantiation_n at_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n in_o matth._n 26_o panis_n qui_fw-la sanctificatur_fw-la in_o altario_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o caro_fw-la domini_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la figura_fw-la and_o the_o word_n in_o the_o line_n be_v when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n he_o show_v that_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v sanctify_v on_o the_o altar_n be_v the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o a_o answer_a figure_n for_o he_o say_v not_o this_o be_v a_o figure_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n for_o by_o unspeakable_a operation_n it_o be_v transform_v although_o it_o seem_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v bread_n because_o we_o be_v infirm_a and_o do_v abhor_v to_o eat_v raw_a flesh_n especial_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o it_o appear_v bread_n and_o be_v flesh_n and_o on_o mar._n 14_o when_o he_o have_v bless_v that_o be_v have_v give_v thanks_o he_o break_v the_o bread_n which_o also_o we_o do_v adjoin_v prayer_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o i_o say_v which_o you_o take_v for_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o a_o figure_n only_o and_o some_o exemplar_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v convert_v into_o it_o for_o the_o lord_n say_v the_o bread_n that_o i_o will_v give_v you_o be_v my_o flesh_n he_o say_v not_o it_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o flesh_n but_o it_o be_v my_o flesh_n and_o again_o unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o you_o will_v say_v how_o be_v not_o the_o flesh_n see_v o_o man_n that_o be_v because_o of_o our_o infirmity_n for_o because_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v of_o such_o thing_n wherewith_o we_o be_v accustom_v we_o abhor_v they_o not_o but_o if_o we_o see_v blood_n and_o flesh_n set_v before_o we_o we_o can_v not_o endure_v they_o but_o will_v abhor_v they_o therefore_o the_o merciful_a god_n condescend_v unto_o our_o weakness_n keep_v still_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o transelementate_v they_o into_o the_o virtue_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n these_o be_v his_o word_n without_o any_o fault_n in_o the_o translation_n now_o behold_v the_o vanity_n of_o man_n mind_n when_o it_o be_v fond_a on_o a_o thing_n ixion_n as_o the_o fable_n be_v will_v so_o fain_o have_v have_v juno_n that_o he_o think_v he_o have_v she_o in_o his_o embracement_n when_o he_o have_v but_o the_o wind_n or_o cloud_n so_o the_o romanist_n think_v they_o have_v here_o their_o transubstantiation_n when_o they_o have_v but_o word_n far_o different_a from_o what_o they_o do_v fancy_n in_o these_o testimony_n they_o lay_v hold_v on_o two_o passage_n first_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v sanctify_v be_v the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o a_o answer_a figure_n i_o will_v they_o can_v conjoin_v the_o word_n on_o mark_n it_o be_v not_o a_o figure_n only_o and_o some_o exemplar_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n where_o the_o author_n deni_v not_o simple_o or_o absolute_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v a_o figure_n and_o exemplar_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o say_v he_o it_o be_v not_o a_o figure_n only_o or_o it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o figure_n and_o some_o exemplar_n therefore_o according_a to_o his_o mind_n it_o be_v a_o figure_n and_o some_o exemplar_n but_o more_o than_o a_o bare_a figure_n and_o a_o special_a kind_n of_o exemplar_n against_o who_o be_v this_o say_v i_o have_v read_v it_o impute_v unto_o some_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v a_o mere_a sign_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o i_o never_o read_v any_o who_o have_v so_o affirm_v except_o socinian_o or_o anabaptist_n so_o then_o in_o these_o word_n theophylact_fw-mi speak_v according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n but_o he_o say_v it_o be_v the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o say_v christ_n himself_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o so_o say_v we_o therefore_o the_o question_n be_v in_o what_o sense_n the_o bread_n be_v his_o body_n next_o they_o say_v it_o be_v by_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n here_o first_o mark_n that_o the_o former_a passage_n prove_v it_o not_o 2._o where_o say_v theophylact_v so_o they_o say_v in_o these_o word_n by_o unspeakable_a operation_n it_o be_v transform_v although_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v bread_n i_o answer_v in_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n the_o word_n ought_v to_o be_v consider_v attentive_o what_o be_v transformation_n it_o be_v twofold_a if_o we_o speak_v proper_o external_a and_o internal_a external_n be_v when_o the_o outward_a form_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v change_v into_o another_o but_o this_o be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o keep_v still_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o it_o be_v say_v express_o in_o the_o word_n on_o mark._n internal_a transformation_n be_v when_o not_o only_o the_o outward_a form_n be_v change_v but_o the_o inward_a nature_n and_o essence_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v change_v into_o another_o which_o be_v before_o as_o when_o lot_n wife_n be_v turn_v into_o a_o pillar_n of_o salt_n or_o moses_n rod_n into_o a_o serpent_n but_o theophylact_v say_v it_o appear_v bread_n and_o be_v flesh_n wherefore_o he_o mean_v not_o a_o proper_a transformation_n but_o a_o improper_a kind_n and_o so_o say_v the_o reform_a church_n the_o romanist_n say_v he_o say_v the_o bread_n be_v transform_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n where_o say_v he_o so_o not_o on_o matthew_n for_o his_o word_n be_v but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v turn_v or_o convert_v into_o it_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n the_o bread_n be_v transform_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o another_o thing_n christ_n body_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o bread_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v god_n transelement_v the_o bread_n into_o the_o virtue_n of_o flesh_n so_o neither_o on_o matthew_n nor_o mark_n either_o first_o or_o last_o do_v theophylact_v assert_v a_o transformation_n or_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o the_o first_o place_n he_o speak_v of_o a_o convert_n of_o christ_n body_n into_o the_o bread_n and_o in_o the_o other_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o transelementation_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o virtue_n of_o flesh_n and_o the_o papist_n do_v hold_v neither_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o as_o yet_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n nor_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o author_n but_o show_v how_o the_o papist_n delude_v themselves_o with_o his_o word_n as_o for_o his_o meaning_n in_o this_o matter_n unless_o his_o word_n be_v contrary_a one_o to_o another_o the_o first_o word_n must_v be_v expound_v by_o the_o latter_a that_o be_v when_o he_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o bread_n he_o mean_v god_n keep_v still_o the_o form_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n both_o outward_a and_o inward_a but_o transelementate_n they_o into_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n that_o be_v from_o bare_a and_o earthly_a thing_n he_o translate_v they_o into_o another_o rank_n for_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a signification_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o set_v in_o another_o file_n or_o rank_n of_o thing_n even_o of_o spiritual_a thing_n even_o of_o seal_v and_o convey_v unto_o we_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d proper_o be_v to_o remove_v a_o soldier_n from_o one_o file_n into_o another_o and_o then_o the_o soldier_n change_v not_o his_o nature_n but_o his_o place_n and_o use_v and_o so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o element_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o we_o may_v be_v the_o more_o
assure_v that_o this_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o theophylact_fw-mi because_o for_o confirmation_n he_o add_v the_o lord_n say_v the_o bread_n that_o i_o will_v give_v you_o be_v my_o flesh_n and_o on_o these_o word_n in_o joh._n 6._o he_o say_v note_v well_o that_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v eat_v by_o we_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o only_o some_o figuration_n of_o the_o lord_n flesh_n but_o the_o same_o flesh_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o say_v not_o the_o bread_n that_o i_o will_v give_v be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o flesh_n but_o it_o be_v my_o flesh_n for_o by_o mysterious_a word_n it_o be_v transform_v by_o mystical_a blessing_n and_o accession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n into_o the_o lord_n flesh_n and_o at_o the_o word_n unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n he_o add_v when_o we_o hear_v unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n we_o must_v in_o take_v the_o divine_a mystery_n or_o sacrament_n hold_v undoubted_a faith_n and_o not_o ask_v what_o way_n for_o the_o natural_a man_n that_o be_v who_o follow_v human_a and_o natural_a thought_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o spiritual_a thing_n which_o be_v above_o nature_n and_o so_o he_o understand_v not_o the_o spiritual_a eat_n of_o the_o lord_n flesh_n of_o which_o they_o who_o be_v not_o partaker_n be_v not_o partaker_n of_o eternal_a life_n because_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v jesus_n who_o be_v eternal_a life_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o flesh_n of_o a_o mere_a man_n but_o of_o god_n and_o be_v able_a to_o deify_v we_o to_o wit_n be_v unite_v unto_o the_o godhead_n that_o flesh_n be_v also_o very_o food_n because_o it_o endure_v not_o for_o a_o little_a time_n nor_o can_v be_v corrupt_v as_o corruptible_a food_n but_o it_o be_v a_o help_n unto_o eternal_a life_n in_o these_o his_o word_n we_o see_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o absolute_o as_o he_o do_v seem_v to_o speak_v on_o matthew_n but_o as_o he_o speak_v on_o mark_n the_o bread_n be_v not_o only_o some_o figuration_n and_o then_o he_o say_v it_o be_v transform_v by_o mystical_a blessing_n and_o accession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o then_o he_o say_v in_o take_v the_o divine_a mystery_n we_o must_v hold_v undoubted_a faith_n then_o they_o who_o have_v not_o faith_n undoubted_a can_v eat_v that_o mysterious_a sacrament_n and_o we_o must_v not_o ask_v what_o way_n to_o wit_n as_o they_o do_v now_o whether_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n or_o whether_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v turn_v to_o nothing_o and_o christ_n body_n come_v into_o the_o form_n of_o the_o bread_n or_o etc._n etc._n theophylact_fw-mi be_v far_o from_o assert_v any_o of_o these_o way_n and_o when_o he_o say_v that_o flesh_n be_v very_o food_n because_o it_o endure_v not_o for_o a_o little_a time_n nor_o can_v be_v corrupt_v he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o visible_a bread_n which_o experience_n teach_v to_o be_v corruptible_a but_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o lord_n flesh_n which_o we_o receive_v by_o faith_n in_o a_o word_n then_o theophylact_fw-mi speak_v nothing_o of_o transubstantiation_n but_o rather_o against_o it_o and_o the_o papist_n delude_v themselves_o and_o abuse_v his_o word_n a_o four_o thing_n they_o object_v out_o of_o theophylact_fw-mi that_o he_o assert_v the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n when_o he_o say_v on_o joh._n 21_o he_o who_o dare_v not_o ask_v concern_v the_o traitor_n but_o do_v commit_v the_o question_n unto_o another_o now_o the_o government_n of_o all_o be_v concredit_v unto_o he_o and_o on_o the_o margin_n porsena_n add_v praefectura_fw-la omnium_fw-la petro_n tributa_fw-la and_o it_o follow_v as_o if_o christ_n be_v say_v unto_o peter_n now_o i_o bring_v thou_o forth_o that_o thou_o may_v govern_v the_o world_n and_o follow_v i_o and_o on_o the_o margin_n praeest_fw-la petrus_n orbi_fw-la but_o to_o expound_v these_o word_n as_o if_o peter_n be_v the_o only_a governor_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n be_v whole_o concredit_v unto_o peter_n alone_o be_v far_o contrary_a unto_o the_o word_n and_o mind_n of_o theophylact_fw-mi as_o we_o have_v hear_v from_o he_o on_o gal._n 2._o where_o he_o assert_v that_o paul_n be_v equal_a unto_o he_o and_o on_o matth._n 16_o where_o he_o assert_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n peter_n therefore_o be_v a_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n but_o not_o the_o only_a governor_n for_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v as_o much_o governor_n as_o he_o in_o respect_n of_o power_n since_o the_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o all_o with_o one_o and_o the_o same_o word_n as_o theophylact_v assert_n and_o whatsoever_o power_n they_o have_v yet_o they_o have_v no_o civil_a power_n because_o as_o we_o have_v hear_v from_o theophylact_fw-mi on_o rom._n 13._o all_o soul_n even_o apostle_n must_v be_v subject_a unto_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n neither_o do_v the_o word_n of_o porsena_n insinuate_v so_o much_o as_o they_o will_v have_v for_o praefectura_fw-la and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v but_o a_o subordinate_a power_n and_o a_o little_a jurisdiction_n yea_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n a_o conjunct_a power_n as_o praefectus_fw-la vrbis_fw-la which_o at_o rome_n be_v two_o conjunct_a and_o subordinate_a unto_o the_o power_n of_o the_o former_a so_o this_o be_v all_o the_o power_n which_o they_o can_v bring_v unto_o peter_n from_o the_o word_n of_o theophylact_fw-mi and_o we_o may_v see_v how_o in_o many_o particular_n he_o differ_v from_o the_o tenet_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o favour_v they_o not_o in_o the_o main_a thing_n wherein_o they_o pretend_v to_o have_v his_o consent_n 4._o radulph_n a_o benedictine_n of_o flaviak_n in_o this_o century_n write_v 20_o book_n on_o leviticus_n and_o 14_o book_n on_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n as_o witness_v gesner_n in_o the_o preface_n on_o levit._n he_o say_v although_o it_o shall_v move_v we_o not_o a_o little_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o world_n be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o faith_n and_o now_o be_v subject_n unto_o the_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o faith_n be_v declare_v by_o so_o many_o miracle_n and_o testify_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o so_o many_o martyr_n yet_o the_o singular_a ground_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n when_o it_o be_v clear_o see_v to_o be_v fulfil_v in_o our_o day_n which_o we_o know_v be_v prefigure_v and_o foretell_v so_o many_o year_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o father_n and_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n here_o by_o the_o way_n note_n that_o not_o only_a radulph_n but_o many_o other_o of_o the_o more_o ancient_a father_n do_v use_v the_o word_n sacrament_n for_o the_o rite_n of_o religion_n yea_o and_o for_o mystery_n and_o very_o large_o or_o homonymous_o lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v our_o altar_n because_o we_o lay_v our_o oblation_n on_o he_o for_o if_o we_o do_v any_o good_a thing_n we_o hope_v that_o by_o he_o it_o shall_v be_v accept_v of_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v offer_v spiritual_a sacrifice_n acceptable_a unto_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n ....._o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v furnish_v unto_o we_o matter_n of_o holy_a thought_n ibid._n scarce_o can_v any_o good_a work_n be_v perfect_v without_o admission_n of_o some_o sin_n it_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v fear_v lest_o when_o the_o reward_n of_o perfect_a devotion_n be_v expect_v the_o punishment_n of_o our_o guiltiness_n be_v require_v of_o we_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o that_o angel_n be_v none_o other_o but_o our_o great_a highpriest_n of_o who_o we_o speak_v to_o wit_n he_o be_v send_v by_o the_o father_n unto_o man_n and_o send_v again_o from_o man_n unto_o the_o father_n to_o plead_v the_o cause_n of_o man_n before_o the_o father_n he_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n ibid._n cap._n 4_o whatsoever_o man_n can_v do_v for_o himself_o be_v no_o way_n sufficient_a to_o obtain_v forgiveness_n unless_o the_o immaculate_a sacrifice_n of_o that_o just_a one_o do_v commend_v the_o repentance_n of_o sinner_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 3_o when_o you_o do_v any_o good_a thing_n ascribe_v not_o the_o very_a affection_n of_o godliness_n unto_o you_o as_o if_o you_o can_v do_v it_o of_o yourself_o for_o it_o be_v god_n which_o work_v in_o we_o at_o his_o good_a pleasure_n both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perfect_v ....._o he_o who_o ascribe_v grace_n unto_o himself_o must_v necessary_o lose_v grace_n for_o which_o he_o be_v not_o thankful_a lib._n 6._o cap._n 3._o he_o die_v who_o discover_v his_o head_n because_o while_o he_o expect_v salvation_n another_o way_n then_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n he_o do_v
designation_n of_o the_o other_o malcolm_z and_o his_o good_a fame_n do_v cross_v his_o desire_n wherefore_o the_o king_n cause_v he_o to_o be_v poison_v nor_o can_v the_o author_n of_o the_o deed_n be_v know_v all_o man_n have_v so_o good_a a_o opinion_n of_o the_o king_n then_o kenneth_n propound_v unto_o his_o nobility_n a_o new_a designation_n of_o his_o successor_n and_o also_o propound_v the_o example_n of_o other_o nation_n where_o the_o elder_a son_n of_o the_o king_n or_o the_o near_a in_o blood_n do_v succeed_v and_o if_o the_o heir_n be_v not_o of_o ripe_a age_n the_o worthy_a of_o the_o nobility_n govern_v the_o realm_n under_o the_o name_n of_o tutor_n and_o not_o king_n and_o by_o this_o custom_n say_v he_o sedition_n bloody_a war_n and_o murder_n be_v prevent_v which_o have_v be_v frequent_a in_o this_o country_n through_o the_o ambition_n of_o the_o nobility_n there_o first_o he_o ask_v the_o opinion_n of_o two_o which_o be_v of_o high_a estimation_n and_o who_o may_v seem_v most_o to_o oppose_v this_o novation_n they_o partly_o for_o fear_n and_o partly_o to_o decline_v ambition_n do_v allow_v the_o king_n purpose_n and_o so_o it_o pass_v current_n that_o the_o king_n son_n be_v declare_v governor_n of_o cumberland_n now_o as_o kenneth_n go_v about_o in_o this_o way_n to_o establish_v his_o posterity_n he_o trouble_v his_o conscience_n and_o partly_o with_o inward_a gripe_n for_o the_o aforesaid_a murder_n and_o partly_o with_o dream_n he_o be_v so_o vex_v that_o in_o a_o morning_n he_o go_v unto_o the_o bishop_n and_o monk_n and_o confess_v his_o sin_n since_o king_n gregory_n about_o the_o year_n 855._o make_v some_o law_n for_o immunity_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o priest_n have_v stray_v from_o the_o learning_n and_o devotion_n of_o the_o ancient_n so_o they_o bring_v comfort_n unto_o the_o king_n not_o from_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n but_o i●●oin_v he_o for_o their_o own_o advantage_n to_o visit_v holy_a place_n and_o grave_n of_o saint_n to_o kiss_v relic_n to_o redeem_v his_o sin_n by_o hear_v of_o mass_n and_o alms-deed_n and_o to_o account_v more_o of_o monk_n and_o priest_n than_o he_o have_v do_v before_o buchan_n hist_o li._n 6._o but_o bishop_n spotsewood_n in_o his_o history_n lib._n 2._o say_v they_o be_v not_o yet_o become_v so_o gross_o ignorant_a as_o to_o believe_v that_o by_o such_o external_a work_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v satisfy_v although_o some_o idle_a toy_n such_o as_o the_o visit_v the_o grave_n of_o the_o saint_n kiss_v of_o relic_n hear_v of_o mass_n and_o other_o of_o that_o kind_n which_o avarice_n and_o superstition_n have_v invent_v be_v then_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n yet_o people_n be_v still_o teach_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a propitiation_n for_o sin_n and_o by_o his_o blood_n the_o guilt_n thereof_o be_v only_o wash_v away_o herein_o his_o judgement_n be_v charitable_a but_o how_o true_a it_o be_v i_o see_v not_o his_o warrant_n the_o king_n resolve_v to_o obey_v the_o direction_n and_o as_o he_o be_v go_v to_o visit_v the_o grave_n of_o palladius_n he_o lodge_v with_o fenestella_n lady_n of_o fettercairne_n and_o be_v treacherous_o murder_v by_o she_o in_o the_o year_n 994._o then_o constantine_n son_n of_o king_n culen_n at_o all_o occasion_n begin_v to_o regret_n the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o former_a novation_n that_o thereby_o the_o country_n will_v be_v endamage_v and_o all_o they_o of_o the_o royal_a blood_n defraud_v for_o say_v he_o what_o be_v more_o foolish_a then_o to_o permit_v unto_o fortune_n the_o chief_a matter_n of_o the_o state_n what_o if_o the_o king_n child_n through_o infirmity_n of_o body_n or_o mind_n be_v unapt_a for_o government_n what_o if_o babe_n have_v be_v king_n when_o the_o roman_n peicht_n and_o dane_n do_v oppress_v the_o land_n what_o be_v more_o against_o reason_n then_o to_o establish_v that_o by_o law_n which_o god_n in_o his_o word_n have_v threaten_v as_o a_o curse_n neither_o be_v the_o pretend_a danger_n of_o sedition_n and_o murder_n prevent_v thereby_o since_o there_o be_v no_o less_o fear_n of_o tutor_n then_o of_o competitor_n because_o those_o also_o must_v be_v the_o near_a in_o blood_n wherefore_o the_o present_a occasion_n be_v not_o to_o be_v omit_v but_o present_o to_o abolish_v that_o law_n if_o it_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o law_n which_o be_v enact_v by_o tyranny_n and_o fear_n and_o the_o former_a custom_n whereby_o the_o kingdom_n have_v flourish_v from_o small_a beginning_n be_v in_o time_n to_o be_v restore_v lest_o it_o can_v be_v remedy_v when_o a_o preparative_n be_v once_o past_a a_o parliament_n be_v hold_v at_o scone_n within_o 12._o day_n after_o the_o death_n of_o kenneth_n and_o constantine_n be_v proclaim_v king_n the_o governor_n of_o cumbria_n be_v as_o yet_o but_o young_a have_v little_a assistance_n but_o his_o base_a brother_n kenneth_n levy_v a_o army_n for_o himself_o and_o camped_n at_o the_o water_n almound_n near_o unto_o the_o king_n and_o perceive_v his_o number_n to_o be_v lesser_a than_o the_o king_n he_o seek_v the_o advantage_n of_o sun_n and_o wind_n the_o king_n rely_v upon_o his_o number_n and_o both_o captain_n be_v slay_v then_o grim_a the_o son_n or_o brother-son_n of_o king_n duffus_n be_v proclaim_v king_n by_o that_o party_n the_o forenamed_a malcolm_n raise_v a_o army_n against_o he_o by_o mediation_n of_o bishop_n forthad_v they_o agree_v that_o grim_a shall_v remain_v king_n of_o the_o land_n by_o the_o north-wall_n of_o severus_n and_o malcolm_n during_o his_o life_n time_n shall_v possess_v the_o south-part_n and_o succeed_v to_o the_o crown_n nevertheless_o king_n grim_n consider_v that_o his_o seed_n will_v certain_o be_v debar_v of_o the_o crown_n begin_v to_o oppress_v both_o part_n so_o that_o the_o north-part_n seek_v aid_n from_o malcolm_n and_o grim_n be_v forsake_v by_o his_o army_n and_o slay_v in_o the_o year_n 1016._o this_o tumult_n for_o succession_n be_v not_o yet_o end_v as_o follow_v 3._o there_o be_v extant_a a_o book_n call_v altercatio_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o synagogae_fw-la without_o the_o name_n of_o the_o author_n by_o authority_n of_o chronic._n hirsang_n it_o be_v give_v to_o gisilbert_n a_o english_a monk_n who_o be_v say_v to_o have_v live_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o century_n it_o say_v in_o ca._n 4._o the_o holy_a spirit_n first_o make_v the_o will_n good_a and_o then_o work_v by_o it_o true_o whatsoever_o good_a can_v be_v do_v whether_o to_o think_v or_o to_o will_n or_o to_o perfect_a be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o god_n and_o not_o to_o man_n freewill_n therefore_o if_o god_n work_v these_o three_o thing_n in_o we_o to_o wit_n to_o think_v to_o will_v and_o to_o perfect_a sure_o he_o work_v the_o first_o without_o we_o the_o second_o with_o we_o and_o the_o three_o by_o we_o see_v by_o give_v the_o good_a will_v he_o preven_v we_o by_o change_v the_o evil_a will_n with_o consent_n he_o join_v we_o to_o himself_o and_o by_o furnish_v unto_o our_o consent_n ability_n and_o facility_n the_o inward_a worker_n be_v make_v manifest_a external_o by_o our_o outward_a work_n ca._n 8._o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v here_o righteousness_n be_v mean_v not_o wherewith_o he_o be_v just_a but_o wherewith_o he_o clothe_v man_n when_o he_o justifi_v the_o ungodly_a free_o unto_o this_o righteousness_n the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n give_v witness_n the_o law_n because_o by_o command_v threaten_a and_o justify_v no_o man_n it_o show_v clear_o that_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o quicken_a spirit_n through_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n the_o prophet_n because_o what_o they_o foretold_v christ_n have_v fulfil_v at_o his_o come_n ....._o we_o cry_v unto_o the_o most_o secret_a ear_n of_o god_n by_o desire_n more_o than_o by_o word_n for_o unto_o he_o who_o know_v all_o thing_n our_o wish_n be_v voice_n if_o thou_o desire_v good_a thou_o have_v cry_v moses_n be_v silent_a in_o voice_n and_o cry_v by_o faith_n as_o the_o woman_n touch_v the_o hem_n of_o christ_n but_o other_o do_v cry_v in_o fear_n and_o fail_v in_o faith_n catal._n test_n verit_fw-la lib._n 11._o 4._o fredward_o a_o knight_n about_o the_o year_n 940._o write_v a_o book_n concern_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o john_n scot_n and_o of_o augustine_n paschasius_fw-la a_o abbot_n write_v against_o he_o ibid._n about_o the_o year_n 950._o it_o be_v report_v as_o a_o strange_a thing_n that_o odo_n a_o dane_n than_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n turn_v the_o bread_n on_o the_o altar_n into_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o from_o flesh_n into_o bread_n again_o he_o confirm_v the_o strange_a doctrine_n with_o strange_a argument_n to_o wit_n by_o lie_v miracle_n ibid._n 5._o at_o
no_o satisfaction_n for_o penance_n only_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o the_o priest_n who_o anoint_v they_o with_o oil_n in_o token_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n 15._o only_o on_o maundy_n thursday_n they_o do_v consecrate_v for_o the_o sick_a and_o keep_v it_o the_o whole_a year_n after_o and_o think_v it_o more_o holy_a that_o day_n than_o any_o other_o neither_o do_v they_o fast_o on_o any_o saturday_n save_v only_o on_o easter-even_a 16._o they_o have_v but_o five_o order_n as_o clerk_n deacon_n subdeacon_n priest_n and_z bishop_n whereas_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v nine_o order_n according_a to_o the_o nine_o order_n of_o angel_n 17._o in_o their_o order_n they_o make_v no_o vow_n of_o single_a life_n allege_v the_o canon_n j._n n._n priest_n or_o deacon_n shall_v not_o put_v away_o my_o wife_n as_o it_o be_v for_o honesty_n sake_n 18._o every_o year_n on_o certain_a day_n they_o excommunicate_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o the_o latin_n as_o heretic_n 19_o they_o excommunicate_v he_o who_o strike_v a_o priest_n 20._o their_o emperor_n do_v name_n patriarch_n bishop_n and_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o depose_v they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n also_o he_o give_v benefice_n to_o who_o he_o list_v and_o retain_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o same_o benefice_n as_o it_o please_v he_o 21._o they_o blame_v the_o latin_n because_o they_o eat_v not_o flesh_n egg_n nor_o cheese_n on_o friday_n 22._o they_o hold_v against_o the_o latin_n for_o celebrate_v without_o consecrate_a church_n and_o fast_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o for_o permit_v menstruous_a woman_n to_o enter_v into_o church_n before_o their_o purify_n also_o for_o suffer_v dog_n or_o other_o beast_n to_o enter_v into_o church_n 23._o they_o use_v not_o to_o kneel_v at_o their_o devotion_n yea_o not_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o one_o day_n in_o the_o year_n affirm_v that_o the_o latin_n like_o goat_n or_o beast_n prostrate_v themselves_o on_o the_o ground_n in_o their_o prayer_n 24._o they_o permit_v not_o the_o latin_n to_o celebrate_v on_o their_o altar_n and_o if_o it_o chance_v a_o latin_a priest_n celebrate_v on_o their_o altar_n by_o and_o by_o they_o wash_v it_o in_o token_n of_o abomination_n and_o false_a sacrifice_n 25._o they_o condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n as_o idolatry_n these_o be_v the_o article_n contain_v in_o the_o say_a register_n but_o there_o be_v many_o more_o in_o the_o book_n of_o catholic_a tradition_n publish_v in_o the_o french_a tongue_n by_o th._n a._n i._o c._n and_o translate_v into_o english_a and_o print_v at_o london_n ann_n 1610._o out_o of_o which_o i_o have_v draw_v these_o article_n 1._o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_o universal_a pastor_n and_o no_o primacy_n give_v to_o peter_n who_o be_v never_o at_o rome_n but_o when_o he_o be_v martyr_v 2._o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o stone_n of_o rome_n be_v hard_a and_o grievous_a and_o not_o far_o from_o the_o jewish_a baseness_n to_o include_v the_o church_n within_o a_o town_n 3._o st._n john_n end_v his_o life_n after_o peter_n have_v the_o first_o place_n among_o all_o evangelist_n and_o bishop_n and_o he_o never_o teach_v that_o rome_n by_o divine_a right_n aught_o to_o be_v the_o lady_n of_o other_o church_n 4._o but_o after_o st._n john_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n obtain_v the_o first_o place_n among_o the_o bishop_n within_o the_o roman_a empire_n for_o see_v the_o citizen_n of_o rome_n reign_v above_o other_o city_n he_o have_v be_v proud_a and_o audacious_a who_o will_v have_v prefer_v himself_o before_o their_o bishop_n especial_o without_o ordinance_n of_o a_o council_n 5._o the_o church_n of_o italy_n and_o other_o their_o neighbour_n by_o lapse_n of_o time_n give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o only_o the_o first_o place_n but_o also_o superintendence_n over_o the_o bishop_n near_o they_o in_o particular_a to_o give_v his_o advice_n in_o matter_n that_o happen_v until_o a_o synod_n may_v be_v hold_v yet_o never_o any_o presidency_n or_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n above_o other_o church_n 6._o as_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a in_o authority_n so_o they_o leave_v behind_o they_o every_o one_o diverse_a successor_n of_o equal_a authority_n 7._o he_o who_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n accuse_v god_n the_o author_n thereof_o but_o god_n be_v void_a of_o blame_n and_o the_o scripture_n contain_v the_o whole_a matter_n of_o faith_n 8._o those_o only_o be_v canonical_a book_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o ark_n and_o write_v in_o hebrew_n before_o or_o in_o greek_a after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n 9_o they_o hold_v they_o be_v the_o first_o nation_n convert_v unto_o christ_n and_o in_o that_o regard_n they_o be_v the_o man_n who_o true_o and_o pure_o maintain_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o it_o be_v teach_v they_o by_o the_o apostle_n 10._o faith_n be_v a_o assurance_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o he_o who_o doubt_v can_v approach_v unto_o god_n with_o confidence_n 11._o the_o say_n of_o paul_n it_o be_v not_o in_o he_o who_o run_v nor_o in_o he_o who_o will_v prevent_v two_o mischief_n one_o that_o no_o man_n exalt_v himself_o for_o grant_v that_o thou_o run_v or_o endeavorest_n yet_o think_v not_o what_o thou_o do_v well_o be_v thou_o for_o if_o thou_o be_v not_o inspire_v from_o above_o all_o be_v vain_a another_o that_o no_o man_n deem_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v crown_v without_o service_n 12._o faith_n be_v impute_v to_o justification_n faith_n suffice_v for_o all_o faith_n absolve_v justifi_v and_o make_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a glory_n for_o god_n require_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o compunction_n and_o mourning_n 13._o when_o we_o praise_v good_a work_n we_o mean_v not_o to_o exalt_v ourselves_o by_o they_o or_o to_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o they_o but_o we_o desire_v man_n will_v give_v themselves_o thereunto_o as_o to_o thing_n necessary_a unto_o salvation_n and_o which_o every_o one_o be_v bind_v to_o exercise_n according_a to_o his_o power_n follow_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n 14_o they_o communicate_v under_o both_o element_n and_o they_o have_v one_o fashion_n for_o the_o communicant_n in_o the_o church_n and_o another_o for_o the_o sick_a the_o priest_n with_o little_a or_o no_o reverence_n eat_v the_o remanent_fw-la element_n which_o be_v not_o eat_v by_o the_o faithful_a but_o for_o the_o sick_a it_o be_v keep_v all_o the_o year_n be_v consecrate_v the_o week_n before_o easter_n 15._o they_o celebrate_v the_o liturgy_n in_o their_o own_o language_n that_o the_o people_n may_v understand_v 16._o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v by_v his_o indulgence_n deliver_v any_o from_o these_o temporal_a punishment_n which_o god_n inflict_v neither_o ought_v he_o to_o dispense_v with_o the_o fulfil_n of_o all_o these_o work_n of_o repentance_n which_o be_v possible_a etc._n etc._n the_o most_o part_n of_o these_o last_o difference_n be_v fall_v betwixt_o the_o east_n and_o western_a church_n since_o the_o 11._o century_n and_o in_o they_o all_o we_o find_v that_o the_o difference_n be_v either_o calumny_n articulate_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o matter_n of_o discipline_n or_o ceremony_n or_o then_o our_o reform_a church_n agree_v with_o they_o 8._o the_o bishop_n of_o milan_n have_v the_o next_o place_n in_o italy_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n how_o milan_n become_v subject_a unto_o rome_n rome_n he_o have_v eighteen_o suffragan_n bishop_n under_o he_o twenty_o two_o ordinary_a cardinal_n and_o divers_a other_o office_n of_o mark_n he_o be_v always_o name_v by_o the_o king_n of_o lombardie_n neither_o he_o nor_o any_o of_o his_o clergy_n trot_v at_o any_o time_n to_o rome_n this_o be_v a_o great_a moat_n in_o the_o priest_n eye_n and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n ofttimes_o seek_v to_o bring_v milan_n into_o subjection_n unto_o their_o see_n but_o the_o millanoye_n still_o keep_v their_o liberty_n at_o last_o ann_n 1059._o ariald_v clericus_fw-la decumanus_n conspire_v with_o landulfus_n cotta_n praefatus_fw-la populi_fw-la against_o the_o archbishop_n uvido_z and_o make_v a_o pretext_n that_o marry_v priest_n ought_v to_o be_v exautorate_v uvido_z assemble_v all_o his_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n at_o fontanetum_n with_o common_a consent_n it_o be_v deny_v that_o priest_n shall_v have_v liberty_n of_o marriage_n then_o be_v great_a strife_n in_o the_o town_n the_o nobility_n defend_v uvido_z and_o the_o people_n be_v for_o landulf_n who_o send_v ariald_v to_o pope_n nicolaus_n ii_o accuse_v the_o clergy_n of_o milan_n and_o require_v he_o to_o send_v some_o judge_n to_o try_v the_o matter_n he_o be_v glad_a of_o the_o occasion_n and_o send_v peter_n damian_n bishop_n of_o ostia_n and_o anselm_n bishop_n of_o luca._n so_o soon_o as_o damian_n begin_v to_o talk_v
other_o be_v like_o a_o criminal_a court_n both_o which_o be_v different_a from_o worldly_a court_n in_o that_o the_o one_o have_v execution_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o judge_n force_v man_n unto_o obedience_n and_o the_o other_o by_o the_o only_a willingness_n of_o submit_v party_n which_o if_o they_o refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n can_v do_v no_o more_o but_o commit_v the_o cause_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o as_o it_o please_v god_n shall_v be_v execute_v in_o this_o life_n or_o that_o to_o come_v and_o upon_o good_a ground_n be_v the_o name_n of_o charity_n give_v unto_o the_o ecclesiastical_a judicatory_a because_o by_o it_o only_o be_v the_o defender_n move_v to_o submit_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n to_o judge_v with_o so_o great_a sincerity_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o offender_n that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n leave_v unto_o corrupt_a affection_n in_o the_o one_o nor_o of_o repine_v in_o the_o other_o and_o this_o great_a love_n make_v the_o punishment_n of_o chastise_v seem_v the_o more_o grievous_a even_o unto_o the_o chastiser_n so_o that_o in_o the_o church_n be_v never_o any_o censure_n inflict_v without_o great_a mourning_n of_o the_o people_n and_o great_a of_o the_o ruler_n and_o hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o at_o that_o time_n the_o word_n mourning_n be_v use_v for_o chastise_v so_o st._n paul_n rebuke_v the_o corinthian_n that_o they_o have_v not_o censure_v the_o incestuous_a man_n say_v and_o you_o have_v not_o mourn_v that_o he_o that_o have_v do_v this_o deed_n may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o in_o the_o other_o epistle_n i_o fear_v lest_o when_o i_o come_v i_o shall_v not_o find_v you_o such_o as_o i_o will_v and_z lest_o i_o shall_v be_v wail_v many_o which_o have_v sin_v already_o now_o it_o seem_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v usual_a in_o all_o society_n be_v order_v by_o some_o one_o which_o be_v precedent_n and_o propound_v thing_n and_o after_o deliberation_n gather_v the_o suffrage_n which_o part_n see_v it_o be_v most_o convenient_a unto_o the_o most_o able_a and_o fit_a man_n without_o doubt_n be_v confer_v on_o the_o bishop_n but_o when_o the_o church_n be_v multiply_v the_o proposition_n and_o deliberation_n be_v do_v by_o the_o bishop_n first_o in_o the_o college_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n which_o be_v call_v the_o presbytery_n and_o there_o purpose_n be_v bring_v to_o ripeness_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o last_o stroke_n in_o the_o public_a meeting_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v yet_o the_o custom_n about_o the_o year_n 250._o as_o be_v clear_a in_o the_o epistle_n of_o cyprian_a who_o write_v of_o they_o who_o have_v sacrifice_v unto_o idol_n unto_o the_o presbytery_n say_v it_o be_v not_o his_o manner_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n without_o their_o advice_n nor_o without_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n and_o he_o write_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o when_o he_o shall_v return_v he_o will_v in_o their_o presence_n and_o according_a to_o their_o judgement_n examine_v the_o cause_n and_o merit_n and_o unto_o the_o priest_n which_o by_o themselves_o have_v receive_v some_o delinquent_n he_o write_v that_o they_o give_v account_n unto_o the_o people_n because_o of_o the_o ingenuity_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o bishop_n at_o that_o time_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o all_o man_n almost_o do_v rest_n on_o their_o opinion_n and_o the_o church_n when_o charity_n become_v cold_a and_o the_o charge_n that_o christ_n have_v lay_v on_o they_o be_v careless_o perform_v leave_v all_o unto_o the_o bishop_n and_o ambition_n which_o be_v a_o sly_a affection_n and_o ready_a to_o creep_v into_o the_o heart_n with_o the_o shadow_n and_o show_v of_o virtue_n do_v persuade_v the_o bishop_n to_o accept_v it_o glad_o but_o that_o alteration_n come_v not_o to_o the_o height_n till_o the_o persecution_n be_v cease_v for_o then_o the_o bishop_n do_v as_o it_o be_v set_v up_o a_o throne_n unto_o themselves_o which_o become_v most_o frequent_a by_o the_o multitude_n of_o plea_n with_o the_o accession_n of_o temporary_a riches_n and_o this_o form_n of_o judicatory_a albeit_o differ_v from_o the_o former_a wherein_o all_o thing_n be_v carry_v with_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n do_v yet_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o sincerity_n and_o therefore_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n have_v try_v the_o fruit_n of_o this_o court_n in_o decide_v controversy_n and_o how_o the_o virtue_n of_o religion_n be_v able_a to_o discern_v many_o trick_n and_o guile_n which_o the_o judge_n have_v not_o perceive_v make_v a_o law_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o appeal_n from_o the_o bishop_n sentence_n and_o the_o judge_n shall_v put_v they_o in_o execution_n yea_o and_o when_o a_o cause_n be_v begin_v before_o the_o secular_a judge_n whatsoever_o be_v the_o state_n of_o it_o if_o either_o of_o the_o party_n howbeit_o the_o other_o be_v unwilling_a do_v appeal_v unto_o the_o bishop_n the_o cause_n without_o delay_n shall_v be_v refer_v unto_o his_o consideration_n and_o then_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o bishop_n begin_v to_o be_v courtly_a and_o when_o he_o have_v the_o magistrate_n to_o be_v the_o executioner_n of_o his_o decree_n he_o take_v unto_o he_o the_o name_n of_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n episcopal_a audience_n and_o such_o title_n likewise_o the_o emperor_n valens_n think_v good_a in_o the_o year_n 365._o to_o enlarge_v this_o court_n by_o give_v unto_o they_o the_o inspection_n of_o the_o price_n of_o thing_n set_v forth_o to_o be_v sell_v which_o business_n be_v not_o acceptable_a unto_o the_o good_a and_o moderate_a bishop_n for_o possidonius_fw-la report_v that_o when_o augustine_n have_v be_v take_v up_o with_o such_o work_n until_o noon_n and_o sometime_o till_o night_n he_o call_v it_o angaria_fw-la a_o force_a toil_n whereby_o his_o mind_n be_v distract_v from_o thing_n more_o proper_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o for_o these_o rustle_a broil_n he_o leave_v more_o useful_a thing_n undo_v as_o neither_o do_v paul_n go_v about_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o suitable_a to_o a_o preacher_n but_o leave_v they_o unto_o other_o nevertheless_o when_o not_o a_o few_o of_o the_o bishop_n do_v abuse_v that_o authority_n that_o be_v grant_v unto_o they_o by_o constantine_n law_n the_o same_o law_n after_o 70._o year_n be_v recall_v by_o arcadius_n and_o honorius_n and_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o bishop_n shall_v judge_v in_o cause_n of_o religion_n only_o and_o in_o civil_a no_o other_o way_n but_o with_o consent_n of_o party_n and_o also_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o they_o have_v no_o court_n of_o judgement_n this_o law_n be_v little_o regard_v in_o rome_n because_o of_o the_o great_a power_n of_o the_o bishop_n therefore_o in_o the_o year_n 452._o valentinian_n live_v in_o the_o city_n do_v renew_v that_o law_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v put_v in_o execution_n but_o the_o succeed_a prince_n do_v ratify_v unto_o they_o again_o that_o power_n as_o justinian_n do_v establish_v the_o bishop_n court_n and_o audience_n and_o assign_v unto_o they_o not_o only_o the_o affair_n of_o religion_n but_o the_o ecclesiastical_a fault_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o several_a power_n over_o the_o laic_n by_o these_o degree_n correction_n which_o be_v appoint_v by_o christ_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o charity_n be_v turn_v to_o dominion_n and_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o lose_v the_o ancient_a reverence_n and_o obedience_n wherewith_o christian_n be_v wont_a to_o regard_v their_o bishop_n i_o know_v well_o that_o in_o word_n they_o will_v deny_v their_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n to_o be_v dominion_n like_o the_o secular_a but_o i_o can_v see_v what_o real_a difference_n they_o can_v show_v certain_o st._n paul_n write_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n sheweth_z a_o clear_a difference_n let_v not_o a_o bishop_n be_v give_v to_o lucre_n not_o a_o striker_n but_o now_o it_o be_v most_o usual_a to_o pay_v unto_o the_o bishop_n the_o expense_n of_o law_n and_o at_o his_o command_n to_o put_v into_o prison_n even_o as_o in_o secular_a court_n but_o when_o the_o province_n in_o the_o west_n be_v divide_v and_o the_o empire_n be_v make_v up_o of_o italy_n france_n and_o germany_n and_o spain_n become_v a_o kingdom_n in_o these_o four_o country_n the_o prince_n make_v choice_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v their_o counsellor_n and_o then_o by_o the_o confusion_n of_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a power_n oh_o how_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n court_n augment_v within_o 200._o year_n they_o draw_v unto_o they_o all_o criminal_a and_o civil_a power_n over_o the_o clergy_n yea_o and_o over_o the_o laic_n in_o many_o particular_n pretend_v that_o the_o cause_n be_v ecclesiastical_a they_o they_o forge_v a_o mix_v judicatory_a wherein_o either_o a_o bishop_n or_o a_o magistrate_n which_o of_o the_o two_o shall_v first_o
they_o be_v lecherous_a in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o they_o have_v not_o break_v any_o bond_n of_o marriage_n ibid._n cap._n 3._o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o any_o of_o these_o who_o god_n have_v predestinate_v unto_o the_o crown_n can_v lose_v their_o crown_n it_o may_v be_v and_o it_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o some_o lose_v the_o crown_n who_o god_n have_v call_v by_o a_o visible_a call_n or_o which_o may_v have_v be_v hear_v by_o man_n ibid._n lib._n 6._o cap._n 11._o except_v the_o apostle_n whatsoever_o other_o thing_n afterward_o be_v say_v let_v it_o be_v cut_v off_o neither_o have_v any_o authority_n therefore_o albeit_o after_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v any_o holy_a man_n how_o wise_a soever_o he_o be_v let_v he_o not_o have_v that_o authority_n see_v the_o lord_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n ibid._n lib._n 11._o cap._n 20._o possible_o one_o will_v say_v since_o christ_n overcome_v death_n and_o ascend_v into_o the_o heaven_n do_v he_o descend_v thence_o again_o sure_o he_o descend_v but_o invisible_o all_o the_o world_n have_v hear_v his_o descend_v when_o a_o sound_n be_v hear_v from_o heaven_n as_o of_o the_o spirit_n come_v and_o fill_v the_o house_n where_o they_o be_v sit_v do_v not_o christ_n then_o descend_v from_o heaven_n be_v the_o substance_n or_o majesty_n of_o the_o son_n separate_v from_o the_o spirit_n that_o when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v the_o son_n of_o god_n descend_v not_o also_o certain_o he_o descend_v not_o in_o the_o form_n of_o his_o manhood_n yet_o undoubted_o he_o descend_v in_o his_o uncircumscribed_a deity_n or_o in_o the_o spirit_n that_o he_o give_v and_o he_o descend_v to_o visit_v the_o nation_n by_o his_o messenger_n who_o he_o inspire_v 9_o bernard_n in_o epist_n 56._o ad_fw-la gaufrid_n episco_n carnot_n write_v that_o notbert_n praemonstratensis_fw-la do_v teach_v that_o antichrist_n be_v before_o the_o door_n and_o to_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o same_o age_n within_o these_o few_o day_n say_v bernard_n there_o i_o obtain_v to_o see_v this_o man_n face_n and_o i_o learn_v many_o thing_n from_o a_o heavenly_a fistule_n to_o wit_n from_o his_o mouth_n behold_v what_o account_n this_o author_n make_v of_o he_o who_o speak_v thus_o hen._n oraeus_n in_o nomenclat_n say_v this_o notbert_n be_v the_o beginner_n of_o the_o order_n of_o monk_n in_o the_o diocy_n of_o magdeburgh_n pol._n vergil_n de_fw-fr inven_n rer_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 3._o call_v he_o a_o priest_n of_o lorraine_n and_o say_v that_o he_o begin_v that_o most_o exact_a order_n after_o the_o rule_n of_o augustinian_n as_o also_o in_o that_o chapter_n and_o the_o precede_a he_o show_v that_o sundry_a other_o see_v about_o that_o time_n that_o the_o monastical_a institution_n be_v not_o observe_v man_n become_v always_o worse_a and_o worse_o and_o godliness_n be_v corrupt_v by_o riches_n quae_fw-la pietas_fw-la ut_fw-la mater_fw-la illas_fw-la à_fw-la principio_fw-la ordini_fw-la pepererat_fw-la &_o quotidie_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la ignaviae_fw-la suae_fw-la potius_fw-la quàm_fw-la religioni_fw-la consulant_fw-la therefore_o they_o will_v reform_v the_o order_n and_o add_v some_o new_a rite_n for_o distinction_n from_o other_o of_o the_o same_o order_n who_o be_v become_v loose_a and_o by_o these_o mean_n the_o number_n of_o order_n be_v multiply_v 10._o theodoricus_n abbot_n of_o st._n trudo_n at_o leodium_n about_o the_o year_n 1120._o say_v simon_n magus_n now_o reign_v at_o rome_n and_o not_o simon_n peter_n and_o simony_n be_v in_o place_n of_o the_o gospel_n what_o may_v we_o not_o have_v if_o we_o have_v money_n in_o catal._n test_n verit_fw-la lib._n 14._o be_v some_o of_o his_o verse_n concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v ut_fw-la mopso_n nisa_n corvo_fw-la datur_fw-la ec●e_fw-la columba_fw-la qualis_fw-la pullus_fw-la erit_fw-la quem_fw-la fert_fw-la commixtio_fw-la talis_fw-la hence_o it_o appear_v that_o good_a man_n at_o that_o time_n bewail_v the_o wretched_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n 11._o hugo_n de_fw-fr s._n victore_fw-la by_o nation_n a_o saxon_a and_o abbot_n of_o s._n victor_n at_o paris_n be_v in_o great_a account_n about_o the_o year_n 1130._o his_o work_n be_v extant_a in_o three_o tome_n in_o one_o place_n he_o say_v the_o clerk_n of_o our_o time_n know_v not_o the_o law_n nor_o learn_v they_o it_o but_o they_o study_v vanity_n ease_n surfeit_v and_o drunkenness_n they_o be_v often_o in_o the_o street_n seldom_o in_o the_o church_n slow_a to_o search_v the_o fault_n of_o sinner_n and_o ready_a to_o follow_v the_o trace_n of_o hare_n they_o give_v more_o bread_n to_o dog_n then_o to_o the_o poor_a their_o bed_n be_v better_o array_v then_o the_o altar_n the_o bark_a of_o dog_n and_o low_v of_o ox_n be_v more_o pleasant_a unto_o god_n than_o the_o sing_n of_o such_o clerk_n their_o preach_v may_v be_v despise_v who_o life_n be_v contemn_v of_o our_o communion_n with_o christ_n he_o say_v on_o john_n 6._o the_o lord_n show_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o bread_n he_o give_v and_o which_o they_o do_v eat_v in_o the_o wilderness_n say_v i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n for_o he_o be_v the_o bread_n wherewith_o a_o hungry_a soul_n be_v refresh_v which_o be_v when_o true_a faith_n embrace_v he_o for_o by_o faith_n we_o love_v he_o and_o by_o love_n we_o be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n which_o be_v our_o life_n therefore_o this_o spiritual_a bread_n be_v eat_v by_o faith_n even_o without_o sacramental_a eat_n and_o be_v profitable_a unto_o salvation_n daily_o we_o have_v need_n of_o this_o bread_n while_o this_o present_a life_n endure_v and_o so_o say_v augustine_n why_o prepare_v thou_o thy_o tooth_n and_o stomach_n believe_v and_o thou_o have_v eat_v on_o chapter_n 20._o he_o say_v who_o sin_n you_o forgive_v i._n e._n who_o sin_n be_v forgive_v by_o you_o god_n also_o forgive_v they_o this_o be_v speak_v general_o not_o only_o unto_o the_o apostle_n as_o some_o say_v this_o be_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o it_o be_v speak_v and_o grant_v unto_o all_o their_o successor_n on_o rom._n 3._o the_o write_a law_n be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o work_n because_o man_n under_o the_o law_n think_v that_o all_o their_o righteousness_n be_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n and_o grace_n be_v so_o call_v because_o man_n under_o grace_n set_v the_o sum_n and_o efficacy_n of_o their_o salvation_n on_o grace_n only_o know_v that_o as_o no_o man_n be_v save_v by_o righteousness_n of_o his_o work_n so_o none_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n of_o his_o righteousness_n for_o righteousness_n be_v not_o of_o good_a work_n but_o good_a work_n be_v of_o righteousness_n on_o chapter_n 4._o if_o man_n have_v not_o sin_v he_o shall_v have_v have_v perfect_a righteousness_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o perfect_a fulfil_n of_o god_n command_n so_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v have_v no_o lust_n against_o reason_n and_o he_o may_v have_v love_v god_n with_o all_o his_o heart_n but_o after_o sin_n and_o for_o sin_n man_n can_v have_v this_o perfect_a righteousness_n unto_o which_o eternal_a life_n be_v just_o due_a but_o god_n of_o his_o grace_n give_v faith_n unto_o man_n and_o of_o the_o same_o grace_n repute_v it_o for_o that_o perfection_n as_o if_o he_o have_v the_o perfection_n of_o righteousness_n de_fw-fr scriptura_fw-la &_o scriptor_n sacris_fw-la cap._n 1._o he_o say_v that_o scripture_n only_o be_v true_o call_v divine_a which_o be_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o write_v by_o those_o who_o speak_v by_o god_n spirit_n that_o make_v a_o man_n divine_a and_o reform_v he_o according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n by_o teach_v to_o know_v he_o and_o by_o exhort_v to_o love_v he_o whatsoever_o be_v teach_v therein_o be_v truth_n whatsoever_o be_v command_v be_v good_a and_o whatsoever_o be_v promise_v be_v blessedness_n for_o god_n be_v truth_n without_o falsehood_n goodness_n without_o wickedness_n and_o blessedness_n without_o misery_n in_o cap._n 6_o &_o 7._o all_o divine_a scripture_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o when_o he_o have_v divide_v the_o old_a testament_n into_o the_o law_n prophet_n and_o hagiographa_n and_o have_v reckon_v the_o book_n that_o be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n canon_n he_o add_v there_o be_v also_o other_o book_n as_o wisdom_n the_o book_n of_o syracides_n judith_n tobias_n and_o the_o maccabee_n that_o be_v read_v indeed_o but_o be_v not_o roll_v in_o the_o canon_n catol_n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 15._o likewise_o de_n sacramentis_fw-la fidei_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 28._o if_o it_o be_v ask_v what_o be_v original_a sin_n in_o we_o it_o be_v a_o corruption_n or_o vice_n by_o which_o in_o our_o birth_n we_o draw_v ignorance_n in_o our_o mind_n and_o concupiscence_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o cap._n 19_o in_o the_o
sin_n nothing_o hinder_v he_o from_o good_a and_o nothing_o move_v he_o unto_o ill_n he_o have_v not_o infirmity_n unto_o ill_n and_o he_o have_v help_v unto_o good_a then_o his_o reason_n can_v judge_v without_o error_n and_o his_o will_n can_v follow_v good_a without_o difficulty_n but_o after_o sin_n and_o before_o reparation_n by_o grace_n he_o be_v burden_a and_o overcome_v with_o lust_n and_o he_o have_v infirmity_n in_o ill_a and_o have_v not_o grace_n in_o good_a and_o therefore_o he_o may_v sin_v and_o he_o can_v but_o sin_n yea_o and_o damnable_o but_o after_o reparation_n and_o before_o confirmation_n he_o be_v burden_a with_o lust_n but_o not_o overcome_v and_o he_o have_v infirmity_n in_o ill_a but_o have_v grace_n in_o good_a so_o that_o he_o may_v sin_v because_o of_o infirmity_n and_o liberty_n and_o he_o may_v not_o sin_v to_o death_n because_o of_o liberty_n and_o help_a grace_n but_o he_o have_v not_o that_o he_o can_v as_o yet_o not_o sin_n at_o all_o or_o that_o he_o can_v sin_v because_o the_o infirmity_n be_v not_o perfect_o take_v away_o and_o grace_n be_v not_o full_o perfect_v but_o after_o confirmation_n when_o infirmity_n be_v altogether_o take_v away_o and_o grace_n be_v perfect_v he_o can_v be_v overcome_v nor_o burden_a and_o then_o shall_v he_o have_v that_o he_o can_v sin_v ibid._n a._n that_o liberty_n which_o be_v from_o sin_n they_o only_o now_o have_v who_o the_o son_n by_o grace_n make_v free_a and_o repair_v not_o so_o that_o they_o be_v altogether_o free_a from_o sin_n in_o this_o mortal_a flesh_n but_o that_o in_o they_o sin_n have_v not_o dominion_n nor_o reign_v and_o this_o be_v true_a and_o good_a liberty_n which_o beget_v a_o good_a service_n to_o wit_n of_o righteousness_n whence_o augustin_n in_o ench._n faith_n none_o shall_v be_v free_a to_o do_v righteousness_n unless_o he_o be_v deliver_v from_o sin_n become_v the_o servant_n of_o righteousness_n and_o that_o be_v true_a liberty_n for_o their_o joy_n of_o the_o good_a deed_n and_o also_o it_o be_v godly_a service_n for_o obedience_n of_o the_o command_n here_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o line_n propter_fw-la recti_fw-la facti_fw-la laetitiam_fw-la these_o master_n of_o lovane_n have_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v print_v in_o the_o margin_n recte_fw-la faciendi_fw-la licentiam_fw-la this_o little_a change_n give_v occasion_n to_o consider_v whether_o the_o licence_n of_o do_v a_o thing_n right_o or_o the_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n of_o do_v well_o be_v more_o true_a liberty_n they_o show_v that_o they_o do_v judge_n a_o licence_n of_o do_v well_o be_v sufficient_a and_o nevertheless_o many_o have_v licence_n and_o commandment_n to_o do_v right_o and_o do_v it_o not_o nor_o have_v a_o will_v to_o do_v it_o and_o some_o do_v it_o and_o nevertheless_o be_v culpable_a because_o they_o do_v it_o not_o hearty_o or_o with_o pleasure_n but_o for_o some_o compulsion_n or_o by-respect_n as_o it_o follow_v there_o in_o the_o line_n there_o be_v another_o liberty_n not_o true_a and_o conjoin_v with_o evil_a service_n which_o be_v to_o do_v ill_a when_o reason_n dissent_v from_o the_o will_n judge_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v do_v what_o the_o will_n will_v do_v for_o to_o do_v good_a reason_n agree_v with_o the_o will_n and_o therefore_o that_o be_v true_a and_o pious_a liberty_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o marginal_a alteration_n be_v far_o different_a from_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o master_n if_o it_o be_v not_o contrary_a dist_n 27._o a._n virtue_n be_v as_o augustine_n say_v a_o good_a quality_n of_o the_o mind_n whereby_o man_n live_v right_o and_o which_o none_o do_v use_v evil_o and_o which_o only_a god_n work_v in_o man_n therefore_o it_o be_v only_o the_o work_n of_o god_n as_o augustin_n teach_v of_o the_o virtue_n of_o righteousness_n upon_o that_o place_n of_o the_o psalmist_n i_o have_v do_v judgement_n and_o righteousness_n say_v righteousness_n be_v a_o excellent_a virtue_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o none_o but_o god_n work_v in_o man_n therefore_o when_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n say_v i_o have_v do_v righteousness_n he_o understand_v not_o the_o virtue_n itself_o which_o no_o man_n do_v but_o the_o work_n of_o it_o behold_v say_v he_o here_o it_o be_v manifest_o teach_v that_o righteousness_n in_o man_n be_v not_o the_o work_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n which_o be_v likewise_o to_o be_v mean_v of_o all_o other_o virtue_n b._n for_o the_o apostle_n write_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n affirm_v likewise_o that_o faith_n be_v not_o of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n only_o say_v through_o grace_n you_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o for_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o saint_n so_o this_o to_o wit_n faith_n be_v not_o from_o the_o power_n of_o our_o nature_n because_o it_o be_v mere_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n behold_v here_o it_o be_v clear_o teach_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o from_o the_o liberty_n of_o will_n or_o of_o freewill_n which_o agree_v with_o what_o be_v say_v before_o that_o prevening_a and_o work_v grace_n be_v a_o virtue_n which_o make_v free_a and_o heal_v the_o will_n of_o man_n wherefore_o augustin_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr spir._n &_o light_v say_v we_o be_v justify_v not_o by_o freewill_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n not_o that_o it_o be_v without_o our_o will_n but_o our_o will_n be_v show_v to_o be_v weak_a by_o the_o law_n that_o grace_n may_v heal_v the_o will_n and_o the_o will_n be_v make_v whole_a may_v obey_v the_o law_n c_o here_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o mind_n whether_o unto_o good_a or_o ill_a be_v from_o freewill_n and_o therefore_o if_o grace_n or_o virtue_n be_v a_o motion_n of_o the_o mind_n it_o be_v of_o freewill_n but_o if_o it_o be_v of_o freewill_n even_o but_o partly_o then_o god_n alone_o without_o man_n work_v it_o not_o therefore_o some_o have_v say_v not_o unlearned_o that_o virtue_n be_v a_o good_a quality_n or_o form_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o inform_v the_o soul_n and_o it_o be_v not_o a_o motion_n or_o affection_n of_o the_o mind_n but_o freewill_n be_v help_v by_o it_o that_o it_o may_v be_v move_v and_o set_v on_o good_a and_o so_o out_o of_o virtue_n and_o freewill_n arise_v the_o good_a motion_n or_o affection_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o thence_o the_o good_a deed_n proceed_v outward_o as_o the_o earth_n be_v water_v with_o rain_n that_o it_o may_v bud_v and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n and_o the_o rain_n be_v not_o the_o earth_n nor_o the_o bud_n nor_o the_o fruit_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o the_o bud_n nor_o fruit_n nor_o bud_n of_o the_o fruit_n so_o the_o rain_n of_o god_n blessing_n be_v free_o pour_v on_o the_o earth_n of_o our_o mind_n that_o be_v on_o freewill_n that_o be_v grace_n which_o only_a god_n do_v and_o not_o man_n with_o he_o be_v inspire_v whereby_o the_o will_n of_o man_n be_v water_v that_o it_o may_v bud_v and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n that_o be_v the_o will_n be_v heal_v and_o prepare_v that_o it_o may_v will_v good_a in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v say_v to_o work_v and_o it_o be_v help_v that_o it_o may_v do_v good_a in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v say_v to_o cooperate_v and_o that_o grace_n be_v not_o without_o reason_n call_v virtue_n because_o it_o heal_v and_o help_v the_o will_n of_o man_n because_o the_o papist_n do_v wrest_v many_o passage_n of_o the_o ancient_n wherein_o they_o find_v the_o word_n meritum_fw-la or_o meremur_fw-la here_o we_o may_v see_v how_o these_o word_n be_v to_o be_v expound_v and_o how_o lombard_n do_v understand_v they_o in_o the_o section_n e._n good_a will_n be_v both_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o also_o the_o merit_n of_o man_n or_o rather_o of_o grace_n because_o it_o be_v principal_o of_o grace_n and_o it_o be_v a_o grace_n wherefore_o augustin_n ad_fw-la sixt._n presbyt_fw-la say_v what_o be_v the_o merit_n of_o man_n before_o grace_n see_v nothing_o but_o grace_n work_v good_a merit_n in_o we_o for_o from_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v say_v which_o preveen_v and_o heal_v the_o will_n of_o man_n and_o from_o that_o freedom_n arise_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n the_o good_a affection_n or_o the_o good_a motion_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o good_a merit_n of_o man_n as_o for_o example_n from_o the_o virtue_n of_o faith_n and_o from_o the_o freedom_n of_o man_n will_n be_v beget_v in_o the_o mind_n some_o good_a motion_n and_o remunerable_a to_o wit_n to_o believe_v so_o from_o charity_n &_o freewill_n another_o good_a motion_n proceed_v to_o wit_n to_o love_v which_o be_v a_o very_a good_a
thing_n of_o the_o world_n that_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n may_v not_o find_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v he_o in_o thou_o etc._n etc._n he_o do_v oft_o call_v the_o clergy_n syria_n edom_n the_o calf_n of_o bethel_n idol_n of_o egypt_n priest_n of_o baal_n etc._n etc._n in_o his_o other_o epistle_n he_o say_v if_o thou_o have_v once_o taste_v the_o sweetness_n of_o wisdom_n i._n e._n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n thou_o will_v loathe_v all_o other_o thing_n in_o comparison_n for_o this_o give_v abundant_o the_o incomparable_a treasure_n of_o pleasure_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o all_o gift_n and_o again_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o read_v the_o scripture_n for_o that_o be_v the_o table_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n that_o be_v the_o food_n by_o which_o we_o breath_n and_o live_v certain_o christ_n do_v use_v the_o only_a testimony_n of_o the_o word_n against_o all_o the_o tentation_n of_o satan_n in_o the_o wilderness_n if_o therefore_o a_o host_n shall_v come_v against_o you_o guard_v yourself_o with_o the_o buckler_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o with_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n again_o the_o exhortation_n of_o man_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v but_o as_o sound_a brass_n and_o a_o tinkle_a cymbal_n he_o only_o can_v give_v a_o mouth_n and_o wisdom_n which_o say_v without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o lord_n take_v thou_o away_o my_o stony_a heart_n and_o give_v a_o new_a humble_a contrite_a and_o a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n in_o the_o last_o of_o his_o epistle_n he_o reckon_v the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la esdras_n iii_o and_o iv_o jude_v tobias_n maccabee_n among_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la catol_n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 14._o 10._o richard_n de_fw-fr st._n victor_n a_o scot_n be_v hold_v for_o a_o learned_a and_o good_a man_n about_o the_o year_n 1140._o he_o write_v much_o on_o cant._n c._n 2._o the_o read_n and_o meditation_n of_o the_o scripture_n do_v strengthen_v the_o mind_n and_o weaken_v the_o enemy_n so_o long_o as_o they_o keep_v this_o in_o mind_n and_o do_v it_o they_o be_v hereby_o most_o expert_a to_o encounter_v with_o the_o enemy_n de_fw-fr statu_fw-la hom_n inter_fw-la cap._n 12._o how_o just_o be_v freewill_n say_v to_o be_v dead_a see_v by_o itself_o it_o be_v never_o move_v unto_o any_o good_a for_o what_o good_a can_v it_o do_v of_o itself_o see_v it_o can_v say_v jesus_n be_v the_o lord_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v often_o move_v unto_o good_a but_o never_o accept_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n de_fw-fr sacrif_n abrah_n &_o mariae_fw-la if_o the_o grace_n and_o protection_n of_o god_n be_v withhold_v man_n be_v throw_v down_o at_o every_o suggestion_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o into_o whatsoever_o evil_a and_o be_v once_o throw_v down_o he_o can_v never_o rise_v by_o his_o own_o power_n a_o man_n can_v bring_v forth_o no_o bud_n of_o good_a work_n of_o himself_o without_o work_a grace_n and_o when_o he_o have_v begin_v to_o work_v he_o can_v no_o way_n continue_v without_o its_o cooperation_n par._n 2._o in_o explanat_fw-la aliquot_fw-la locor_fw-la apost_n the_o law_n teach_v only_o what_o we_o shall_v do_v and_o add_v not_o how_o we_o may_v obey_v and_o therefore_o it_o can_v justify_v none_o the_o gospel_n teach_v what_o shall_v be_v do_v how_o it_o may_v be_v do_v and_o how_o that_o which_o be_v not_o do_v may_v be_v supply_v in_o apocaly_a lib._n 3._o only_o that_o prayer_n be_v acceptable_a in_o heaven_n which_o the_o son_n offer_v unto_o the_o father_n catol_n test_n ver_fw-la lib_n 15._o he_o be_v the_o first_o which_o teach_v that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v bear_v without_o original_a sin_n io._n mayor_n in_o gest_n scot._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 12._o 11._o malcolm_z iv_o king_n of_o scot_n do_v command_v roger_n archbishop_n of_o scotland_n the_o pope_n legate_n be_v forbid_v to_o come_v into_o scotland_n york_n and_o roman_a legate_n to_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o realm_n and_o say_v it_o be_v not_o reason_n that_o the_o land_n shall_v be_v oppress_v by_o ungodly_a man_n bear_v glorious_a name_n he._n boet._n hist_o lib._n 13._o again_o in_o the_o year_n 1188._o pope_n clement_n send_v another_o and_o he_o have_v not_o better_a success_n for_o all_o do_v refuse_v he_o except_z john_n bishop_n of_o st._n andrews_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v banish_v and_o he_o have_v refuge_n unto_o the_o pope_n who_o by_o and_o by_o send_v unto_o henry_n king_n of_o england_n and_o give_v unto_o he_o the_o right_a of_o the_o crown_n of_o scotland_n io._n bale_n cent._n 3._o §_o 26._o in_o appen_n 12._o it_o be_v record_v that_o one_o fulco_n come_v and_o say_v unto_o the_o english_a king_n daughter_n king_n richard_n three_o daughter_n richard_n with_o great_a boldness_n o_o king_n thou_o have_v three_o very_a bad_a daughter_n take_v good_a heed_n unto_o they_o and_o provide_v unto_o they_o good_a husband_n lest_o by_o inconvenient_a bestow_n of_o they_o thou_o run_v not_o into_o damage_n only_o but_o utter_a perdition_n unto_o thyself_o the_o king_n say_v thou_o be_v mad_a foolish_a hypocrite_n i_o have_v no_o daughter_n fulco_n repli_v i_o do_v not_o lie_v o_o mighty_a king_n for_o you_o have_v three_o daughter_n continual_o in_o your_o court_n and_o whole_o possess_v your_o person_n and_o such_o whore_n be_v they_o that_o the_o like_a have_v not_o be_v hear_v i_o mean_v mischievous_a pride_n greedy_a covetousness_n and_o filthy_a lechery_n therefore_o i_o say_v again_o beware_v of_o they_o and_o out_o of_o hand_n provide_v marriage_n for_o they_o the_o king_n then_o take_v his_o word_n in_o good_a part_n &_o by_o and_o by_o call_v his_o noble_n declare_v unto_o they_o they_o the_o word_n of_o fulco_n who_o counsel_n say_v he_o i_o intend_v to_o follow_v not_o doubt_v of_o your_o consent_n my_o lord_n thereunto_o wherefore_o here_o before_o you_o all_o i_o give_v my_o elder_a daughter_n swell_a pride_n to_o wife_n unto_o the_o proud_a templar_n my_o greedy_a daughter_n avarice_n unto_o the_o cistertian_n monk_n and_o filthy_a luxury_n unto_o the_o riotous_a prelate_n of_o the_o church_n so_o several_o agree_v with_o all_o their_o nature_n that_o the_o like_a match_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v unto_o they_o this_o be_v about_o the_o year_n 1198._o say_v i._o fox_n in_o act._n 13._o here_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o remember_v the_o example_n of_o simon_n thurvey_n thurvey_n simon_n thurvey_n a_o english_a man_n of_o cornwall_n for_o a_o warn_n to_o temerarious_a student_n he_o be_v a_o subtle_a logician_n and_o expert_a in_o all_o liberal_a science_n he_o leave_v his_o own_o country_n and_o be_v a_o doctor_n in_o paris_n many_o year_n and_o trust_v to_o his_o philosophy_n he_o vaunt_v that_o he_o know_v all_o christ_n law_n and_o by_o force_n of_o disputation_n he_o can_v disprove_v it_o all_o on_o a_o sudden_a he_o become_v forgetful_a of_o all_o learning_n and_o can_v not_o say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n nor_o know_v the_o a_o b_o c._n mat._n paris_n report_v that_o when_o he_o be_v write_v his_o history_n nicola_n epi._n danelm_n tell_v he_o this_o and_o have_v see_v this_o simon_n learning_n to_o read_v from_o his_o own_o bastard_n son_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o child_n of_o six_o year_n only_o 14._o king_n william_n go_v into_o england_n to_o congratulate_v the_o safe_a arrival_n of_o richard_n from_o judea_n in_o the_o year_n 1199._o at_o that_o time_n harald_n earl_n of_o orknay_n and_o caitnes_n take_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o country_n prisoner_n because_o he_o have_v stop_v some_o suit_n he_o have_v demand_v of_o the_o king_n and_o bereave_v he_o of_o his_o eye_n and_o tongue_n william_n at_o his_o return_v will_v revenge_v this_o inhumanity_n and_o harald_n will_v defend_v himself_o by_o force_n but_o his_o force_n be_v scatter_v and_o he_o be_v apprehend_v it_o be_v do_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o hangman_n as_o he_o have_v unto_o the_o bishop_n and_o then_o strangle_v all_o his_o male-children_n be_v geld_v and_o many_o of_o his_o friend_n as_o accessory_n be_v fine_v in_o money_n buchan_n lib._n 7._o when_o this_o be_v report_v unto_o pope_n innocentius_n iii_o he_o send_v his_o legate_n john_n cardinal_n de_fw-fr monte_fw-fr celio_n with_o a_o sword_n rich_o set_v with_o precious_a stone_n a_o purple_a hat_n in_o form_n of_o a_o diadem_n and_o a_o bull_n of_o large_a privilege_n exempt_n the_o church_n of_o scotland_n from_o all_o censure_n except_o only_o of_o the_o pope_n or_o legate_n send_v by_o the_o conclave_n the_o bull_n be_v date_v in_o the_o year_n 1209._o h._n both_o hist_o lib._n 13._o cap._n 8._o the_o four_o age_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n lurk_v and_o of_o antichrist_n reign_v contain_v the_o space_n of_o 300._o year_n from_o the_o year_n
purgatory_n be_v not_o know_v and_o then_o it_o be_v believe_v by_o some_o by_o degree_n partly_o by_o revelation_n and_o partly_o by_o scripture_n and_o so_o at_o last_o it_o be_v believe_v general_o by_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o may_v easy_o understand_v some_o cause_n of_o pardon_n see_v then_o purgatory_n be_v so_o late_o know_v who_o can_v now_o admire_v that_o there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o pardon_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n etc._n etc._n 4._o a_o four_o device_n of_o the_o friar_n condigno_fw-la 4._o meritum_fw-la ex_fw-la congruo_fw-la &_o condigno_fw-la be_v the_o distinction_n of_o merit_n ex_fw-la congruo_fw-la &_o condigno_fw-la some_o hold_v the_o one_o part_n only_o and_o some_o both_o part_n but_o it_o be_v never_o universal_o approve_v among_o they_o see_v always_o some_o do_v abhor_v to_o say_v a_o man_n by_o his_o merit_n be_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n of_o which_o number_n be_v guiliel_n parisien_n jo._n scotus_n gregorius_n de_fw-fr arimino_fw-la biel_n etc._n etc._n this_o particular_a lead_v to_o another_o consideration_n doctrine_n their_o contrary_a doctrine_n of_o these_o friar_n that_o as_o they_o do_v differ_v in_o degree_n the_o latter_a sort_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v worse_o or_o more_o erroneous_a than_o their_o father_n and_o ready_a to_o produce_v a_o worse_a generation_n so_o they_o do_v and_o still_o do_v differ_v in_o contrary_a opinion_n for_o they_o preach_v not_o christ_n of_o good_a will_v say_v agrip._n the_o vanit_fw-la scien_fw-fr cap._n 97._o but_o for_o contention_n so_o that_o there_o be_v more_o hope_n of_o agreement_n among_o philosopher_n then_o among_o these_o schoolman_n see_v they_o have_v darken_v and_o kill_v all_o manner_n of_o divinity_n with_o opinion_n of_o man_n and_o new_a error_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o posterity_n swear_v into_o the_o word_n or_o tenet_n of_o their_o master_n and_o they_o be_v lead_v captive_a by_o his_o opinion_n so_o that_o they_o will_v not_o yield_v unto_o contrary_a reason_n nor_o scripture_n this_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o family_n or_o sect_n of_o thomist_n and_o scotist_n strive_v the_o one_o against_o the_o other_o not_o in_o philosophical_a or_o indifferent_a point_n but_o in_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n as_o for_o example_n 1._o thomas_n say_v a_o man_n be_v accept_v of_o god_n not_o for_o his_o virtue_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o these_o virtue_n in_o 2._o sent._n dist_n 26._o q._n 1._o be_v 4._o but_o capreolus_n on_o that_o place_n bring_v scotus_n durand_n and_o aureolus_n hold_v the_o contrary_a 2._o thomas_n say_v a_o man_n deserve_v glory_n ex_fw-la condigno_fw-la 1_o 2._o qu._n 114._o be_v 3._o yet_o to_o make_v this_o smooth_a he_o have_v devise_v that_o distinction_n that_o a_o work_n deserve_v either_o as_o it_o proceed_v from_o freewill_n or_o as_o it_o proceed_v from_o god_n grace_n and_o so_o on_o that_o part_n of_o rom._n 6._o j●ct_n 4._o he_o say_v if_o good_a work_n be_v consider_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n or_o as_o they_o proceed_v from_o man_n freewill_n they_o deserve_v not_o eternal_a life_n ex_fw-la condigno_fw-la but_o only_o as_o they_o proceed_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o durand_n in_o 2._o sent._n dist_n 27._o qu._n 2._o refute_v both_o the_o tenet_n and_o that_o frivolous_a distinction_n 3._o thomas_n prove_v that_o a_o man_n can_v understand_v supernatural_a thing_n without_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n in_o 2._o sent._n dist_n 28._o qu._n 1._o be_v 5._o but_o durand_n on_o that_o place_n strive_v for_o the_o contrary_n 4._o thomas_n say_v no_o man_n in_o this_o life_n without_o habitual_a grace_n can_v eschew_v all_o and_o every_o sin_n 1_o 2._o qu._n 109._o but_o scotus_n hold_v the_o contrary_a in_o 2._o sent._n dist_n 28._o 5._o thomas_n say_v none_o without_o the_o help_n of_o god_n can_v sufficient_o prepare_v himself_o unto_o habitual_a grace_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la be_v 6._o and_o there_o he_o declare_v what_o it_o be_v to_o prepare_v himself_o to_o wit_n to_o turn_v unto_o god_n as_o he_o which_o have_v his_o eye_n turn_v from_o the_o sun_n prepare_v himself_o to_o receive_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n when_o he_o turn_v himself_o unto_o the_o sun_n against_o this_o do_v durand_n dispute_v in_o 2._o sent._n dist_n 28._o qu._n 5._o 6._o thomas_n say_v grace_n differ_v real_o from_o virtue_n as_o the_o soul_n from_o the_o faculty_n in_o 2._o sent._n dist_n 26._o qu._n 1._o be_v 4._o scotus_n hold_v the_o contrary_a on_o that_o place_n 7._o thomas_n hold_v that_o want_v of_o original_a justice_n in_o babe_n be_v a_o sin_n ibid._n dist_n 30._o qu._n 1._o be_v 2._o durand_n on_o that_o place_n hold_v the_o contrary_a 3._o thomas_n say_v original_a sin_n can_v be_v proper_o call_v a_o quality_n or_o absolute_a form_n incline_v to_o ill_a action_n 1_o 2._o qu._n 82._o be_v 1._o gregor_n de_fw-fr armi._n on_o 2._o sent._n dist_n 30._o qu._n 1._o be_v 2._o teach_v that_o according_a to_o augustin_n original_a sin_n be_v a_o positive_a quality_n or_o carnal_a concupiscence_n by_o which_o man_n be_v incline_v to_o sin_n actual_o 9_o thomas_n hold_v that_o every_o action_n of_o man_n if_o it_o be_v evil_a be_v proper_o a_o sin_n 1_o 2._o qu._n 21._o be_v 1._o gregory_n in_o loc_n cit_fw-la hold_v the_o contrary_a 10._o thomas_n prove_v that_o every_o act_n of_o man_n as_o it_o be_v a_o act_n be_v from_o god_n de_fw-fr malo_fw-la qu._n 3._o be_v 2._o capreolus_n on_o 2._o sent._n dist_n 37._o qu._n 1._o be_v 1._o bring_v durand_n gregory_n and_o aureolus_n dispute_v in_o the_o contrary_n 11._o thomas_n teach_v that_o to_o the_o goodness_n of_o a_o action_n be_v require_v the_o goodness_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o of_o the_o form_n and_o intention_n capreolus_n on_o 2._o sent._n dist_n 38._o bring_v sundry_a schoolman_n hold_v that_o the_o goodness_n of_o intention_n be_v not_o necessary_a 12._o dominican_n general_o hold_v that_o the_o sacrament_n do_v work_v grace_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o knife_n cut_v and_o frame_v a_o thing_n and_o not_o a_o vessel_n contain_v grace_n but_o the_o franciscan_n deny_v all_o effective_a power_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o bring_v the_o virtue_n of_o they_o from_o the_o only_a power_n of_o god_n promise_n so_o oft_o as_o the_o sacrament_n be_v administer_v they_o do_v agree_v in_o the_o opere_fw-la operato_fw-la and_o differ_v in_o the_o manner_n council_n trident._n lib._n 2._o 13._o dominican_n hold_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v not_o confer_v but_o only_o foresignify_a grace_n which_o be_v to_o be_v give_v after_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n the_o franciscan_n hold_v the_o contrary_a ibid._n 14._o thomas_n par_fw-fr 3._o qu._n 75._o be_v 4._o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n by_o the_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o it_o but_o bellarmin_n de_fw-fr euchar._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 23._o say_v scotus_n hold_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o think_v a_o doctrine_n of_o ●aith_n before_o the_o lateran_n council_n and_o that_o there_o be_v not_o express_v text_n of_o scripture_n which_o without_o declaration_n of_o the_o scripture_n can_v convince_v one_o to_o admit_v transubstantiation_n certain_o the_o opinion_n of_o thomas_n be_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o article_n which_o innocentius_n the_o iii_o do_v decree_n and_o howbeit_o the_o romanist_n hold_v still_o the_o word_n transubstantiation_n yet_o they_o be_v all_o for_o the_o most_o part_n fall_v upon_o another_o conceit_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n evanish_v or_o be_v annihilate_v and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n come_v in_o stead_n of_o it_o and_o hence_o arise_v many_o question_n among_o they_o as_o whether_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v eat_v with_o the_o tooth_n and_o go_v into_o the_o belly_n whether_o the_o wicked_a do_v eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o who_o will_v read_v any_o school-man_n on_o lombard_n lib._n 4._o dist_n 10_o 11._o will_v find_v many_o such_o question_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n in_o a_o word_n all_o the_o huge_a volume_n of_o thomist_n and_o scotist_n upon_o the_o sentence_n be_v so_o many_o monument_n of_o controversy_n betwixt_o antagonist_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n as_o late_o dr._n t._n mortan_n have_v prove_v the_o protestant_a faith_n by_o testimony_n of_o these_o schoolman_n or_o as_o he_o speak_v even_o the_o enemy_n be_v judge_n therefore_o all_o the_o boast_n of_o papist_n concern_v the_o unity_n of_o their_o church_n be_v indeed_o but_o to_o delude_v they_o which_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o their_o book_n thus_o the_o church_n be_v pitiful_o divide_v with_o these_o sect_n and_o when_o the_o disciple_n of_o these_o schoolman_n go_v abroad_o to_o preach_v one_o
the_o valiantness_n of_o his_o father_n and_o grandfather_n pope_n john_n say_v solomon_n son_n be_v not_o very_o wise_a so_o he_o reject_v they_o both_o and_o allege_v that_o according_a to_o former_a act_n of_o his_o predecessor_n now_o he_o be_v emperor_n wherefore_o war_n continue_v eight_o year_n and_o john_n proclaim_v against_o they_o both_o allege_v that_o the_o imperial_a crown_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o pope_n since_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o german_n may_v elect_v their_o king_n but_o then_o he_o be_v emperor_n when_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v father_n and_o prince_n of_o all_o christendom_n do_v approve_v he_o and_o when_o the_o elector_n can_v agree_v none_o be_v king_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n govern_v at_o his_o pleasure_n even_o as_o the_o soul_n shall_v command_v the_o body_n by_o who_o benefit_n it_o live_v and_o so_o shall_v the_o world_n be_v well_o rule_v when_o profane_a thing_n be_v subject_a unto_o spiritual_a ......_o for_o these_o cause_n see_v two_o be_v choose_v ...._o and_o neither_o of_o the_o two_o seem_v worthy_a unto_o we_o say_v he_o we_o command_v that_o within_o three_o month_n they_o both_o renounce_v etc._n etc._n the_o most_o do_v follow_v lewis_n at_o frankford_n be_v a_o frequent_a diet_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o all_o the_o elector_n frederick_n be_v a_o captive_a there_o many_o thing_n be_v decree_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o lewis_n shall_v provide_v that_o the_o liberty_n of_o germany_n be_v not_o turn_v into_o bondage_n and_o whosoever_o will_v maintain_v the_o act_n of_o pope_n john_n be_v a_o enemy_n of_o the_o republic_n immediate_o otho_n bishop_n of_o carintha_n and_o lambert_n bishop_n of_o tolouse_n the_o pope_n legate_n be_v expel_v out_o of_o germany_n all_o the_o bishop_n prelate_n priest_n and_o monk_n obey_v the_o decree_n only_o the_o dominican_n incline_v sometime_o unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o sometime_o unto_o the_o pope_n by_o authority_n of_o that_o assembly_n a_o act_n be_v pope_n a_o description_n of_o the_o pope_n publish_v that_o be_v in_o aventin_n lib._n cit_fw-la the_o head_n be_v christ_n the_o saviour_n our_o lord_n and_o god_n and_o his_o chief_a apostle_n peter_n paul_n james_n and_o john_n have_v foretell_v that_o perilous_a time_n be_v come_v after_o their_o departure_n and_o they_o have_v sorewarn_v especial_o that_o we_o shall_v beware_v of_o false_a christ_n false_a apostle_n and_o false_a prophet_n who_o be_v so_o call_v from_o the_o lie_v of_o their_o feign_a religion_n term_v themselves_o priest_n when_o they_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o antichrist_n their_o insatiable_a thirst_n of_o honour_n and_o money_n their_o lechery_n and_o pride_n be_v most_o manifest_a bewray_v they_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o confess_v sincere_o that_o our_o time_n can_v endure_v any_o censure_n ......_o long_o custom_n prevail_v above_o truth_n indignation_n break_v our_o silence_n see_v from_o heaven_n we_o be_v set_v in_o the_o high_a watch_n of_o human_a affair_n we_o can_v be_v silent_a lest_o we_o prove_v to_o be_v dumb_a dog_n that_o can_v bark_v as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v although_o we_o can_v drive_v away_o the_o wolf_n because_o of_o the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o time_n yet_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o resist_v they_o and_o declare_v who_o they_o be_v although_o we_o can_v prevail_v against_o they_o lurk_v under_o sheep_n skin_n as_o we_o will_v yet_o it_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n sufficient_a unto_o those_o who_o can_v attain_v to_o have_v a_o willingness_n to_o do_v then_o they_o apply_v unto_o john_n show_v how_o that_o he_o vex_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o compel_v christian_n to_o draw_v their_o sword_n against_o christian_n and_o bring_v people_n into_o a_o custom_n of_o perjury_n rebellion_n and_o conspiracy_n and_o they_o add_v neither_o can_n christian_n keep_v peace_n when_o god_n give_v it_o they_o be_v so_o trouble_v with_o this_o antichrist_n so_o great_a be_v the_o madness_n of_o this_o man_n or_o rather_o satan_n that_o open_o in_o assembly_n he_o proclaim_v his_o wickedness_n as_o if_o they_o be_v good_a work_n when_o christian_a prince_n be_v at_o variance_n than_o indeed_o he_o be_v priest_n of_o rome_n the_o great_a priest_n then_o reign_v and_o domineer_v when_o all_o thing_n be_v waste_v with_o jar_n and_o broil_n and_o his_o power_n become_v terrible_a he_o may_v have_v most_o easy_o restore_v peace_n with_o one_o letter_n but_o he_o have_v no_o will_n that_o peace_n be_v among_o we_o yea_o by_o he_o rather_o be_v the_o discord_n increase_v he_o feign_v now_o to_o favour_n lewis_n and_o then_o to_o love_v frederick_n as_o each_o of_o they_o be_v weak_a he_o promise_v his_o aid_n unto_o the_o weak_a he_o do_v purposely_o invite_v both_o unto_o the_o coronation_n and_o give_v fair_a word_n unto_o both_o when_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o have_v agree_v he_o peswade_v they_o unto_o arm_n all_o these_o thing_n he_o do_v crafty_o that_o when_o we_o be_v undo_v by_o intestine_a war_n he_o may_v destroy_v the_o empire_n and_o possess_v castle_n town_n and_o republic_n ......._o when_o he_o be_v capital_a foe_n and_o public_a enemy_n yet_o he_o will_v be_v proctor_n witness_v and_o judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n ...._o what_o he_o please_v he_o judge_v lawful_a ......_o he_o assume_v the_o spirit_n of_o satan_n make_v himself_o like_a unto_o the_o most_o high_a and_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v worship_v which_o the_o angel_n forbid_v john_n to_o do_v and_o his_o foot_n to_o be_v kiss_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o dioclesian_n and_o alexander_n two_o most_o cruel_a tyrant_n ....._o those_o pope_n have_v thrust_v caesar_n out_o of_o rome_n and_o italy_n and_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n they_o permit_v the_o heaven_n unto_o he_o and_o have_v take_v hell_n and_o earth_n unto_o themselves_o and_o they_o will_v be_v believe_v not_o only_o call_v god_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o of_o man_n as_o if_o they_o reign_v over_o the_o soul_n and_o tongue_n or_o as_o if_o they_o have_v divide_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o world_n with_o jupiter_n how_o contrary_a be_v these_o thing_n crucify_a and_o supreme_a power_n a_o soldier_n and_o a_o priest_n a_o emperor_n and_o a_o pastor_n ....._o he_o be_v the_o two_o head_a beast_n who_o be_v augustus_n and_o the_o great_a high_a priest_n as_o we_o read_v of_o nero_n decius_n etc._n etc._n then_o they_o refute_v the_o particular_n of_o the_o pope_n bull_n final_o conclude_v if_o he_o be_v not_o the_o antichrist_n certain_o he_o be_v his_o forerunner_n from_o who_o we_o appeal_v unto_o the_o christian_a senate_n of_o the_o world_n this_o apology_n of_o lewis_n prevail_v even_o among_o his_o foe_n that_o the_o earl_n of_o tirolis_n and_o some_o other_o deal_v for_o peace_n between_o lewis_n and_o frederick_n lewis_n have_v the_o other_o captive_a and_o he_o set_v he_o at_o liberty_n on_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v renounce_v the_o title_n of_o emperor_n and_o within_o few_o year_n he_o die_v then_o lewis_n be_v sole_a emperor_n and_o he_o go_v into_o italy_n an._n 1327._o be_v invite_v by_o the_o gibelines_n to_o aid_v they_o against_o the_o gwelph_n and_o he_o exercise_v the_o imperial_a authority_n where_o he_o come_v therefore_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v he_o platin._n but_o tho._n couper_n in_o epist_n say_v he_o be_v accurse_v because_o udalrick_n the_o emperor_n secretary_n without_o the_o emperor_n knowledge_n in_o a_o epistle_n have_v call_v the_o pope_n the_o beast_n rise_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n the_o emperor_n do_v often_o proffer_n a_o treaty_n of_o peace_n but_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o hear_v of_o it_o many_o learned_a man_n both_o divine_n and_o jurist_n of_o bolonia_n and_o paris_n write_v then_o against_o the_o pope_n as_o follow_v when_o lewis_n can_v not_o obtain_v confirmation_n from_o the_o pope_n he_o enter_v into_o rome_n and_o be_v receive_v glad_o he_o and_o the_o empress_n be_v crown_v by_o stephen_n colonna_n vicar_n of_o rome_n with_o full_a consent_n say_v platin._n of_o noble_n and_o cardinal_n the_o city_n be_v then_o govern_v by_o their_o own_o citizen_n under_o the_o title_n vicar_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n plat._n in_o johan._n there_o he_o assemble_v a_o very_a frequent_a synod_n and_o declare_v more_o full_o 1._o what_o wrong_v he_o have_v suffer_v from_o jac._n de_fw-fr cadurco_fw-la alius_fw-la pope_n john_n the_o xxii_o or_o rather_o the_o mystical_a antichrist_n say_v he_o and_o abiathar_n who_o have_v follow_v absalon_n against_o david_n an_o he_o do_v not_o only_o thus_o complain_v but_o also_o the_o orator_n of_o the_o armenian_n and_o other_o nation_n against_o who_o john_n have_v covenant_v with_o the_o turk_n 2._o he_o show_v what_o authority_n other_o emperor_n have_v exercise_v against_o the_o pope_n when_o they_o be_v find_v vicious_a
law_n of_o god_n unto_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o counsel_n that_o have_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o unto_o good_a human_a law_n whatsoever_o be_v find_v to_o have_v be_v attempt_v by_o man_n in_o government_n of_o the_o world_n contrary_a unto_o these_o let_v it_o be_v amend_v and_o reform_v and_o therefore_o away_o with_o all_o abuse_n custom_n dispensation_n privilege_n and_o exemption_n that_o be_v contrary_a unto_o they_o 2._o let_v the_o pope_n conform_v themselves_o their_o work_n and_o word_n unto_o divine_a and_o human_a law_n and_o give_v unto_o their_o inferior_n a_o example_n of_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v do_v or_o if_o they_o will_v shift_v from_o those_o law_n and_o domineer_v rather_o than_o provide_v for_o their_o subject_n their_o honour_n be_v puff_v up_o with_o pride_n and_o what_o be_v ordain_v for_o concord_n be_v turn_v to_o damage_n 3._o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o many_o thing_n have_v stray_v from_o the_o primitive_a institution_n and_o from_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n counsel_n and_o decree_n even_o so_o far_o that_o the_o first_o institution_n be_v forget_v but_o they_o shall_v prefer_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n unto_o all_o custom_n how_o ancient_a soever_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v 4._o the_o pope_n shall_v not_o suffer_v cause_n to_o be_v light_o bring_v from_o other_o province_n unto_o his_o court_n now_o all_o order_n be_v confound_v the_o pope_n give_v benefice_n before_o they_o be_v vacant_a and_o the_o proverb_n be_v to_o be_v fear_v as_o too_o true_a he_o who_o covet_v all_o lose_v all_o here_o he_o inveigh_v at_o the_o promotion_n of_o stranger_n who_o be_v blind_a leader_n of_o the_o blind_a when_o they_o know_v not_o the_o language_n of_o their_o flock_n and_o against_o simony_n which_o reign_v say_v he_o in_o the_o court_n as_o if_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n against_o the_o plurality_n of_o benefice_n and_o pension_n wherewith_o bishopric_n be_v burden_a to_o pay_v unto_o cardinal_n benefice_n be_v bestow_v on_o the_o pope_n nephew_n and_o friend_n st._n gregory_n will_v not_o be_v call_v universal_a bishop_n nor_o suffer_v that_o name_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o any_o other_o and_o the_o ancient_a pope_n be_v wont_a to_o prefer_v the_o name_n of_o other_o bishop_n unto_o their_o own_o this_o he_o show_v by_o instance_n and_o conclude_v the_o point_n thus_o every_o cause_n shall_v be_v decide_v in_o its_o province_n 6._o it_o seem_v profitable_a that_o in_o the_o council_n marriage_n be_v grant_v unto_o priest_n 7._o monk_n shall_v be_v compel_v to_o work_v with_o their_o hand_n as_o ancient_o ......_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v permit_v to_o meddle_v with_o the_o office_n of_o priest_n ......_o and_o far_o less_o shall_v friar_n be_v permit_v to_o go_v a_o beg_n 8._o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o repress_v the_o abuse_n of_o image_n the_o sell_v of_o indulgence_n and_o pennance_n and_o the_o impertinent_a discourse_n of_o monk_n in_o their_o sermon_n for_o they_o leave_v the_o scripture_n and_o preach_v the_o invention_n of_o man_n he_o often_o repeat_v there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o reform_v the_o church_n unless_o rome_n begin_v with_o her_o good_a example_n and_o here_o in_o the_o nine_o place_n he_o reckon_v their_o corruption_n for_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n be_v offend_v and_o infect_v with_o the_o example_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o leader_n of_o the_o people_n as_o isaiah_n say_v cause_v the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o be_v blaspeme_v and_o as_o augustine_n say_v nothing_o be_v more_o hurtful_a unto_o the_o church_n than_o the_o clark_n who_o be_v worse_a than_o laic_n he_o show_v the_o rapine_n of_o the_o legate_n and_o other_o servant_n of_o the_o court_n the_o exaction_n for_o indulgence_n for_o privilege_n and_o dispensation_n from_o whence_o flow_v the_o neglect_n or_o contempt_n of_o religion_n and_o all_o these_o be_v through_o the_o luxury_n and_o pride_n of_o pope_n and_o prelate_n who_o pride_n be_v great_a than_o of_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n here_o he_o tax_v the_o negligence_n and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o and_o seem_v to_o despair_v of_o they_o in_o these_o word_n alas_o that_o say_n of_o isaiah_n seem_v now_o to_o be_v too_o true_a of_o the_o church_n it_o shall_v be_v a_o habitation_n for_o dragon_n and_o a_o court_n for_o ostrich_n ....._o o_o that_o it_o be_v not_o true_a of_o our_o clergy_n which_o he_o say_v this_o people_n draw_v near_o unto_o i_o with_o their_o mouth_n but_o their_o heart_n be_v far_o from_o i_o he_o have_v many_o such_o passage_n in_o the_o three_o part_n of_o that_o treatise_n but_o no_o fruit_n follow_v so_o wholesome_a admonition_n mornay_n in_o myster_n 3._o arnold_n de_fw-fr villanova_n a_o french_a man_n or_o catalanus_fw-la as_o some_o say_v write_v king_n tbe_n doubt_n and_o fear_n of_o a_o king_n many_o book_n in_o colloqu●o_n frider._n &_o arnol._n he_o have_v a_o remarkable_a history_n frederick_n king_n of_o sicily_n a_o religious_a prince_n say_v unto_o he_o he_o have_v a_o purpose_n to_o do_v some_o remarkable_a service_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o two_o impediment_n be_v in_o his_o way_n fear_v and_o doubt_n he_o fear_v to_o be_v despise_v as_o a_o fantastical_a fool_n by_o the_o world_n both_o of_o clark_n and_o laic_n who_o be_v all_o careful_a of_o earthly_a thing_n but_o none_o of_o they_o savour_n of_o heaven_n and_o he_o doubt_v whether_o the_o gospel_n be_v man_n invention_n or_o bring_v from_o heaven_n three_o thing_n do_v move_v he_o to_o doubt_v so_o 1._o he_o certain_o know_v by_o hear_v and_o see_v that_o bishop_n and_o clark_n make_v a_o show_n of_o religion_n through_o custom_n but_o they_o have_v no_o devotion_n they_o be_v earnest_a in_o vainglory_n and_o lust_n but_o they_o feed_v no_o soul_n unto_o salvation_n 2._o monk_n and_o regulars_n profess_v apostolical_a simplicity_n and_o poverty_n do_v astonish_v man_n with_o their_o lewdness_n they_o be_v so_o estrange_v from_o the_o way_n of_o god_n that_o in_o comparison_n of_o they_o not_o only_o the_o secular_a clark_n but_o even_o the_o laic_n be_v justify_v their_o wickedness_n be_v so_o vile_a that_o no_o estate_n can_v endure_v they_o they_o profess_v humility_n poverty_n and_o perfection_n of_o virtue_n but_o no_o measure_n of_o virtue_n may_v be_v find_v in_o they_o for_o humility_n they_o be_v presumptuous_o proud_a creep_v into_o king_n court_n counsel_n and_o commission_n they_o intrude_v themselves_o into_o secular_a affair_n and_o if_o they_o be_v refuse_v or_o rebuke_v they_o become_v furious_a with_o viperous_a bite_n they_o attend_v feast_n and_o endeavour_v by_o any_o mean_n to_o enrich_v themselves_o they_o be_v false_a ungrateful_a deceitful_a and_o affect_a liar_n in_o hatred_n pertinacious_a in_o preach_v pestiferous_a disobedient_a to_o superior_n and_o do_v open_o avow_v uncleanness_n the_o three_o cause_n of_o his_o doubt_n be_v whereas_o in_o former_a time_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v send_v their_o legate_n unto_o the_o nation_n to_o know_v of_o their_o increase_n or_o decrease_v in_o religion_n now_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v hear_v of_o but_o their_o business_n be_v for_o worldly_a thing_n arnold_n answer_v be_v answer_v answer_v his_o purpose_n be_v pious_a and_o he_o shall_v not_o leave_v it_o off_o his_o fear_n be_v a_o suggestion_n of_o satan_n hate_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o he_o shall_v vanquish_v such_o fear_n by_o consideration_n of_o god_n love_n and_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n suffer_v the_o revile_n of_o man_n ....._o as_o for_o his_o doubt_n he_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o promise_a saviour_n and_o the_o same_o god_n who_o create_v the_o world_n which_o be_v clear_a not_o only_o by_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o even_o by_o irresistible_a demonstration_n his_o reason_n be_v such_o as_o shall_v rather_o confirm_v his_o faith_n for_o the_o first_o two_o be_v null_n because_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n have_v foretell_v the_o defection_n and_o corruption_n of_o preacher_n both_o by_o voice_n and_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o by_o revelation_n unto_o person_n of_o both_o sex_n which_o the_o pope_n with_o great_a devotion_n keep_v among_o the_o archive_v of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v and_o i_o have_v see_v and_o handle_v they_o in_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o against_o the_o three_o motive_n it_o may_v suffice_v what_o god_n have_v do_v in_o his_o time_n and_o what_o he_o be_v about_o to_o do_v short_o to_o wit_n he_o have_v warn_v the_o see_v of_o apostasy_n under_o boniface_n the_o viii_o and_o under_o benedict_n for_o a_o certain_a
small_a like_o a_o tree_n then_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o i_o it_o signify_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n again_o he_o say_v as_o i_o be_v the_o same_o way_n exercise_v i_o see_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o behold_v a_o man_n walk_v in_o the_o same_o habit_n carry_v sweet_a bread_n on_o his_o shoulder_n and_o very_o good_a wine_n by_o his_o side_n and_o he_o hold_v in_o his_o hand_n a_o round_a stone_n bite_v it_o with_o his_o tooth_n as_o a_o hungry_a man_n bit_v bread_n but_o he_o do_v nothing_o then_o two_o head_n of_o serpent_n come_v out_o of_o the_o stone_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n instruct_v i_o say_v this_o stone_n be_v unprofitable_a and_o curious_a question_n wherewith_o the_o hungry_a soul_n be_v turmoil_v when_o they_o leave_v substantial_a thing_n and_o i_o say_v what_o mean_v those_o two_o head_n he_o say_v the_o name_n of_o the_o one_o be_v vain_a glory_n and_o the_o other_o be_v overthrow_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o about_o that_o time_n the_o chief_a question_n in_o the_o school_n be_v whether_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n or_o whether_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o evacuate_v what_o eat_v a_o mouse_n when_o she_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n wherein_o subsi_v the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n whether_o in_o christ_n body_n or_o by_o themselves_o etc._n etc._n again_o he_o say_v i_o see_v a_o clear_a cross_n of_o silver_n like_v to_o the_o cross_n of_o tolouse_n but_o the_o twelve_o apple_n of_o it_o be_v like_a to_o vile_a apple_n that_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n what_o be_v this_o lord_n jesus_n the_o spirit_n say_v the_o cross_n be_v the_o church_n which_o shall_v be_v clear_a with_o pureness_n of_o life_n and_o shrill_a with_o the_o clear_a voice_n of_o the_o truth_n preach_v then_o i_o say_v what_o mean_v those_o rot_a apple_n the_o humiliation_n of_o the_o churchman_n which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v here_o he_o prophesy_v of_o the_o reformation_n possevin_n in_o apparto_n 2._o call_v this_o robert_n a_o excellent_a preacher_n of_o the_o word_n mornay_n in_o myster_n pag._n 427._o 6._o marsilius_n paravinus_n write_v the_o book_n defensor_fw-la pacis_fw-la about_o the_o year_n 1324._o there_o he_o debate_v the_o question_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n law_n canon_n and_o history_n ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a he_o maintain_v these_o position_n christ_n be_v the_o only_a head_n and_o foundation_n of_o day_n rare_a thesis_n in_o those_o day_n the_o church_n he_o make_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v universal_a vicar_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o make_v he_o the_o other_o apostle_n subject_a unto_o peter_n it_o be_v more_o probable_a that_o peter_n be_v never_o at_o rome_n far_o less_o have_v he_o his_o seat_n there_o who_o have_v no_o fix_a seat_n as_o also_o not_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o fullness_n of_o power_n in_o any_o man_n be_v a_o manifest_a lie_n a_o execrable_a title_n the_o beginning_n of_o many_o evil_n and_o the_o use_n thereof_o shall_v be_v discharge_v in_o a_o good_a council_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o key_n be_v that_o judiciary_n power_n that_o consist_v in_o dispense_n the_o word_n the_o sacrament_n and_o discipline_n christ_n who_o vicar_n the_o pope_n call_v himself_o do_v never_o exercise_v temporal_a authority_n on_o earth_n he_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o magistrate_n and_o so_o be_v his_o apostle_n after_o his_o ascension_n and_o they_o teach_v other_o to_o obey_v prince_n if_o a_o pope_n usurp_v temporal_a authority_n prince_n shall_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n resist_v by_o word_n and_o deed_n or_o they_o be_v unjust_a and_o sin_n against_o god_n and_o those_o who_o fight_v for_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v account_v the_o soldier_n of_o satan_n unto_o the_o pope_n belong_v not_o the_o election_n nor_o confirmation_n of_o the_o emperor_n but_o contrary_o the_o christian_a prince_n with_o consent_n of_o clergy_n and_o people_n shall_v name_v the_o pope_n or_o if_o one_o be_v choose_v in_o his_o absence_n he_o shall_v confirm_v he_o if_o the_o pope_n go_v astray_o or_o be_v accurse_v the_o emperor_n shall_v reduce_v he_o into_o the_o way_n and_o judge_v he_o in_o a_o council_n when_o peter_n live_v he_o may_v have_v fall_v and_o err_v neither_o have_v the_o pope_n any_o privilege_n against_o error_n that_o that_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o be_v to_o be_v extend_v unto_o the_o other_o apostle_n only_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o truth_n against_o which_o canon_n we_o may_v not_o believe_v either_o pope_n or_o church_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o any_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n we_o may_v not_o believe_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n see_v not_o once_o have_v they_o seduce_v silly_a soul_n into_o hell_n the_o christian_a church_n be_v the_o universality_n of_o believer_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n she_o be_v represent_v in_o a_o lawful_a and_o general_a council_n a_o council_n shall_v be_v assemble_v by_o the_o emperor_n with_o consent_n of_o christian_a prince_n as_o ancient_o it_o be_v always_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v the_o only_a rule_n and_o chief_a judge_n in_o decide_v cause_n ecclesiastical_a not_o only_o the_o clergy_n by_o lay_v man_n also_o if_o they_o be_v godly_a and_o learned_a shall_v have_v voice_n in_o general_a counsel_n the_o clergy_n and_o synagogue_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o den_n of_o thief_n etc._n etc._n this_o book_n be_v print_v at_o basil_n an._n 1522._o in_o another_o treatise_n he_o say_v good_a work_n be_v not_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o salvation_n but_o causa_fw-la sine_fw-la quanon_fw-mi mornay_n ibid._n pag._n 452._o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o heretic_n by_o pope_n john_n the_o xxiii_o catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 18._o consider_v what_o a_o modern_a can_v say_v more_o of_o this_o matter_n and_o whether_o they_o show_v not_o themselves_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o antiquity_n who_o accuse_v we_o of_o novelty_n 7._o the_o same_o position_n be_v hold_v by_o john_n de_fw-fr janduno_n or_o gandanensis_fw-la at_o the_o same_o time_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o his_o book_n print_v at_o venice_n and_o florence_n so_o write_v also_o luitpold_a bishop_n of_o bamberg_n namely_o in_o a_o treatise_n de_fw-fr translatione_fw-la imperii_fw-la print_v lutet_n an._n 1540_o he_o say_v the_o authority_n of_o govern_v the_o empire_n belong_v unto_o the_o emperor_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v choose_v and_o the_o coronation_n by_o the_o pope_n add_v nothing_o since_o caesar_n be_v not_o his_o vassal_n nor_o feudatory_a the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n be_v but_o a_o fable_n he_o be_v also_o condemn_v by_o pope_n john_n catal._n test_n ibid._n michael_n cesenas_n general_n of_o the_o franciscan_n be_v bold_a say_v express_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o antichrist_n and_o rome_n be_v babylon_n drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n therefore_o antonin_n par_fw-fr 3._o tit_n 21._o cap._n 5._o reckon_v he_o among_o the_o poor_a man_n of_o lion_n for_o the_o valdenses_n still_o suffer_v persecution_n in_o sundry_a country_n and_o under_o divers_a name_n as_o the_o adversary_n please_v to_o brand_v they_o many_o error_n be_v impute_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n but_o because_o they_o do_v abhor_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o court_n they_o be_v revile_v as_o we_o have_v hear_v from_o arnold_n de_fw-fr villanova_n and_o seek_v out_o to_o the_o fire_n as_o an._n 1302._o nogaret_n the_o father_n of_o he_o who_o take_v pope_n boniface_n the_o viii_o be_v burn_v in_o aquitania_n clemens_n the_o v._o cause_v it_o to_o be_v proclaim_v to_o take_v up_o the_o flag_n of_o the_o cross_n against_o they_o and_o destroy_v 4000_o near_o the_o alps_o whether_o they_o have_v sle_z platin._n other_o go_v high_o unto_o the_o mountain_n of_o who_o some_o remain_v in_o his_o day_n say_v antonin_n par_fw-fr 3._o tit_n 22._o cap._n 10._o from_o they_o be_v the_o in-dweller_n of_o angronia_n and_o adjacent_a part_n continue_v until_o the_o council_n at_o trent_n trithemius_n testify_v of_o many_o that_o be_v burn_v in_o austria_n about_o that_o time_n howbeit_o he_o believe_v the_o report_n of_o malice_n impute_v many_o error_n unto_o they_o yet_o he_o testify_v that_o they_o abhor_v the_o mass_n call_v the_o hosty_a a_o god_n invent_v by_o man_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o synagogue_n of_o unbeliever_n and_o not_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n they_o deny_v all_o man_n merit_n intercession_n of_o saint_n the_o difference_n of_o day_n and_o meat_n etc._n etc._n he_o witness_v also_o that_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v innumerable_a in_o bohemia_n austria_n
enemy_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n nation_n etc._n etc._n morn_n in_o myster_n pag._n 451_o &_o 465._o in_o dialog_n par_fw-fr 2._o tract_n 1._o lib._n 3._o cap._n 16._o he_o say_v the_o book_n of_o judith_n tobias_n and_o the_o maccabee_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n be_v not_o for_o confirmation_n of_o any_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o church_n read_v these_o two_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o wisdom_n for_o edification_n of_o the_o people_n in_o manner_n but_o not_o for_o confirmation_n of_o point_n of_o faith_n ibid._n par_fw-fr 1._o lib._n 5._o cap._n 25._o he_o say_v a_o general_a council_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o be_v not_o the_o church_n universal_a therefore_o it_o be_v vain_a to_o say_v that_o a_o general_a council_n can_v oer_o against_o the_o faith_n and_o cap._n 28._o if_o a_o general_a council_n shall_a yet_o some_o catholic_n shall_v remain_v which_o either_o private_o or_o public_o as_o shall_v be_v expedient_a shall_v be_v bold_a to_o defend_v the_o orthodox_n faith_n ....._o for_o god_n be_v able_a of_o stone_n that_o be_v of_o the_o unlearned_a laic_n despise_v poor_a one_o and_o distress_a catholic_n to_o raise_v up_o child_n of_o abraham_n and_o lib._n 6._o cap._n 84._o counsel_n be_v not_o call_v general_a because_o they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o pope_n ....._o if_o prince_n and_o layman_n will_v they_o may_v be_v present_a in_o the_o general_a council_n and_o deal_v of_o matter_n treat_v therein_o in_o prologue_n compend_v error_n he_o say_v alas_o the_o time_n of_o which_o the_o bless_a apostle_n prophesy_v when_o man_n will_v not_o suffer_v wholesome_a doctrine_n ....._o this_o pprophecy_n be_v altogether_o fulfil_v in_o our_o day_n for_o behold_v many_o pervert_n the_o holy_a scripture_n deny_v the_o say_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n reject_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n molest_v persecute_v and_o bring_v into_o bondage_n and_o without_o mercy_n torment_n and_o afflict_v even_o unto_o death_n they_o that_o defend_v the_o truth_n so_o that_o we_o may_v right_o say_v of_o our_o time_n which_o daniel_n long_o since_o pronounce_v iniquity_n have_v go_v from_o babylon_n from_o the_o elder_n and_o judge_n which_o seem_v to_o govern_v and_o rule_v the_o people_n for_o many_o that_o shall_v be_v pillar_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o defend_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n even_o unto_o blood_n cast_v themselves_o headlong_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o heresy_n in_o the_o same_o prologue_n he_o submit_v his_o writing_n unto_o the_o censure_n and_o correction_n of_o the_o church_n but_o he_o add_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o not_o of_o the_o malignant_a church_n 8._o brigida_n or_o brigitta_n be_v descend_v of_o the_o blood_n royal_a of_o scotland_n ph._n morn_n in_o myster_n pa._n 480._o another_o then_o she_o which_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n patrick_n about_o the_o year_n 520._o she_o be_v marry_v unto_o the_o king_n of_o sweden_n a_o most_o devout_a woman_n say_v platin._n and_o canonize_v as_o a_o saint_n and_o prophetess_n be_v persuade_v by_o the_o friar_n with_o the_o same_o of_o rome_n she_o go_v thither_o in_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n urban_n the_o v._o hope_v to_o find_v great_a comfort_n there_o but_o in_o her_o revelation_n she_o call_v the_o pope_n a_o murderer_n of_o soul_n a_o destroyer_n of_o christ_n flock_n more_o abominable_a than_o the_o jew_n more_o odious_a than_o judas_n more_o unjust_a than_o pilate_n worse_o than_o lucifer_n she_o say_v his_o seat_n be_v to_o be_v drown_v like_o a_o heavy_a stone_n and_o his_o assessor_n be_v to_o burn_v in_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n unquenchable_a she_o rebuke_v the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n that_o through_o their_o default_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o preach_v yea_o it_o be_v abolish_v and_o they_o have_v change_v all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n into_o two_o word_n give_v money_n in_o the_o end_n she_o say_v she_o hear_v the_o virgin_n say_v to_o her_o son_n rome_n be_v a_o fertile_a land_n and_o christ_n answer_v it_o be_v so_o but_o of_o tare_n she_o say_v also_o that_o her_o come_n to_o rome_n be_v to_o cast_v away_o rather_o than_o confirm_v the_o opinion_n that_o she_o have_v conceive_v of_o it_o these_o revelation_n have_v be_v often_o print_v 9_o thomas_n bradwardin_n be_v a_o fellow_n in_o merton_n college_n of_o oxford_n and_o afterward_o chancellor_n of_o london_n and_o common_o call_v the_o profound_a doctor_n about_o the_o year_n 1330._o he_o have_v many_o dispute_n with_o the_o schoolman_n against_o the_o error_n of_o pelagius_n and_o reduce_v all_o his_o lesson_n into_o three_o book_n which_o he_o entitle_v de_fw-fr causa_fw-la dei_fw-la he_o begin_v thus_o i_o have_v be_v solicit_v earnest_o by_o the_o petition_n of_o great_a and_o many_o man_n that_o what_o i_o have_v speak_v only_o by_o voice_n in_o dispute_n concern_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n against_o pelagius_n and_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o cause_n i_o will_v tie_v it_o unto_o durable_a writ_n but_o here_o be_v two_o thing_n as_o the_o lover_n of_o god_n do_v provoke_v and_o encourage_v i_o into_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n so_o the_o friend_n of_o pelagius_n be_v far_o more_o in_o number_n do_v hinder_v and_o terrify_v i_o for_o which_o i_o speak_v not_o without_o inward_a sorrow_n of_o heart_n as_o of_o old_a eight_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o prophet_n of_o baal_n be_v against_o the_o one_o prophet_n of_o god_n and_o innumerable_a people_n do_v cleave_v unto_o they_o so_o it_o be_v now_o in_o this_o cause_n how_o many_o o_o lord_n fight_z now_o with_o pelagius_n for_o free_a will_n against_o thy_o free_a grace_n and_o against_o paul_n the_o spiritual_a soldier_n of_o grace_n how_o many_o do_v to_o day_n despise_v free_a grace_n and_o proud_o think_v that_o free_a will_n be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n or_o if_o they_o do_v use_v the_o word_n of_o grace_n they_o do_v but_o perfunctorious_o feign_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a but_o they_o boast_v that_o they_o deserve_v by_o the_o power_n of_o freewill_n to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v salvation_n seem_v unto_o they_o to_o be_v not_o a_o free_a gift_n but_o a_o buy_v good_a because_o o_o god_n almighty_n these_o wild_a man_n presume_v of_o the_o power_n of_o their_o free_a will_n refuse_v the_o aid_n of_o thy_o work_n in_o their_o working_n and_o say_v with_o those_o depart_v thou_o from_o we_o moreover_o lord_n how_o many_o advance_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o own_o will_n and_o will_v not_o serve_v thou_o or_o if_o they_o confess_v with_o their_o lip_n that_o thou_o work_v with_o they_o yet_o with_o these_o thy_o proud_a and_o hateful_a subject_n they_o will_v not_o have_v thou_o to_o reign_v over_o they_o yea_o and_o proud_a than_o lucifer_n they_o be_v not_o content_a to_o be_v equal_a with_o thou_o king_n of_o king_n but_o most_o impudent_o they_o will_v reign_v above_o thou_o for_o they_o fear_v not_o to_o say_v that_o their_o own_o will_n go_v first_o in_o action_n as_o the_o lady_n and_o thou_o follow_v as_o the_o servant_n ......_o o_o lord_n my_o god_n i_o can_v think_v it_o without_o sigh_n how_o many_o and_o great_a judge_n endeavour_v careful_o to_o absolve_v and_o reconcile_v the_o pelagian_a error_n that_o be_v condemn_v in_o ancient_a time_n and_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o bound_n of_o all_o the_o church_n how_o many_o presumptuous_a advocate_n plead_v for_o they_o how_o many_o damnable_a proctor_n they_o procure_v on_o their_o side_n how_o many_o not_o have_v two_o argument_n of_o any_o art_n do_v turn_n to_o kill_a argument_n and_o at_o least_o to_o advance_v the_o cause_n of_o pelagius_n attempt_v to_o cast_v down_o thy_o cause_n with_o their_o cry_n horror_n reproach_n vice_n laughter_n and_o gesture_n how_o many_o and_o how_o innumerable_a people_n favour_v they_o for_o almost_o all_o the_o world_n go_v after_o pelagius_n arise_v lord_n judge_v thy_o own_o cause_n then_o he_o show_v how_o he_o be_v comfort_v in_o a_o vision_n or_o dream_n that_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v prevail_v against_o pelagius_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o add_v with_o how_o many_o martyrdom_n with_o pelagianisin_n the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o pelagianisin_n how_o many_o wound_n do_v the_o holy_a father_n cut_v down_o the_o wood_n of_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n and_o how_o many_o venomous_a branch_n do_v still_o spring_v and_o wax_v out_o of_o these_o old_a root_n as_o it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v yet_o for_o first_o when_o their_o arch-heretick_n lucifer_n will_v not_o be_v under_o and_o with_o god_n michael_n throw_v he_o down_o then_o arise_v cain_n think_v that_o a_o sinner_n be_v not_o justify_v of_o god_n free_o by_o grace_n give_v free_o but_o by_o his_o antecedent_n merit_n when_o he_o in_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n be_v
intend_v to_o hold_v unto_o our_o last_o breath_n we_o firm_o believe_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o believe_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o be_v the_o one_o true_a god_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n distinguish_v in_o this_o only_a that_o he_o proceed_v from_o both_o by_o virtue_n of_o which_o faith_n quicken_a renew_v &_o reform_v every_o one_o attain_v the_o participation_n of_o christ_n meritorion_n grace_n justification_n truth_n fortitude_n and_o perfect_a salvation_n by_o which_o spirit_n also_o the_o holy_a church_n be_v ground_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n be_v not_o able_a to_o prevail_v which_o also_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n in_o the_o member_n of_o true_a faith_n he_o wash_v justifi_v sanctifi_v order_v govern_v gather_v strenthen_v &_o fructifi_v as_o also_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n inspire_v and_o be_v know_v by_o he_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v unite_v from_o he_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o rule_v the_o church_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n be_v make_v perfect_a unto_o the_o life_n of_o glory_n we_o believe_v the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o we_o full_o consent_v unto_o the_o divine_a scripture_n or_o apostl_n of_o god_n we_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o with_o clear_a knowledge_n and_o unfeigned_a faith_n we_o love_v he_o and_o with_o the_o member_n inspire_v by_o he_o we_o keep_v his_o reveal_v truth_n unto_o eternal_a glory_n by_o the_o same_o fullness_n of_o form_a faith_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o foundation_n of_o lively_a faith_n be_v the_o number_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n unto_o the_o end_n thereof_o who_o god_n the_o father_n in_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n have_v choose_v justifi_v call_v unto_o the_o glory_n of_o salvation_n and_o magnify_v without_o which_o be_v no_o salvation_n unto_o man_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o ministry_n and_o dispensation_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n be_v the_o congregation_n of_o all_o minister_n and_o people_n subdue_v by_o obediente_a obey_v the_o will_n of_o god_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o it_o who_o god_n only_o send_v inspire_v by_o his_o spirit_n give_v they_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n peace_n &_o reconciliation_n that_o they_o may_v bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o their_o travel_n be_v not_o disappoint_v of_o the_o save_a reward_n who_o name_n and_o number_n he_o only_o know_v because_o he_o have_v write_v they_o in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n that_o first_o church_n have_v none_o that_o shall_v be_v damn_v and_o the_o other_o be_v mix_v until_o the_o appoint_a time_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n but_o the_o church_n of_o malignant_n seek_v they_o that_o be_v of_o that_o evil_a one_o who_o satan_n send_v in_o this_o time_n of_o mortal_a life_n to_o the_o perdition_n of_o the_o world_n and_o trial_n of_o the_o elect_a on_o this_o church_n all_o the_o curse_n and_o sad_a thing_n that_o christ_n &_o his_o apostl_n have_v foretell_v shall_v be_v heap_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o who_o be_v unworthy_a of_o ecclesiastical_a honour_n may_v rule_v over_o they_o by_o their_o power_n the_o promise_n also_o of_o renovation_n be_v fulfil_v in_o she_o and_o yet_o we_o arrogate_v not_o so_o much_o unto_o we_o as_o that_o we_o will_v be_v call_v or_o be_v the_o only_a catholic_n church_n as_o if_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v find_v with_o we_o only_o but_o we_o endeavour_v with_o all_o diligence_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a truth_n and_o we_o be_v afraid_a to_o be_v subject_a unto_o orobey_v evil_a worker_n who_o we_o find_v to_o be_v enemies_n of_o the_o church_n and_o its_o truth_n for_o fear_n of_o everlasting_a damnation_n and_o for_o obedience_n unto_o christ_n and_o because_o they_o do_v mind_n speak_v and_o do_v unto_o his_o church_n thing_n contrary_a unto_o his_o law_n wherefore_o we_o willing_o endure_v oppression_n taunt_n and_o calumny_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n for_o un_o less_o holy_a fear_n and_o the_o horror_n of_o hell_n do_v withhold_v we_o we_o will_v embrace_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o world_n with_o its_o vanity_n wherein_o one_o may_v live_v as_o he_o list_v but_o we_o will_v rather_o choose_v the_o strait_a deride_v and_o sad_a way_n in_o which_o our_o redeemer_n christ_n and_o the_o church_n his_o spouse_n condemn_v by_o the_o world_n and_o despise_v yet_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n have_v walk_v than_o to_o taste_v and_o follow_v the_o momentany_a pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n the_o first_o and_o chief_a ministry_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n whereby_o grace_n and_o truth_n that_o be_v painful_o purchase_v by_o the_o torment_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v reveal_v which_o grace_n be_v give_v for_o salvation_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o god_n the_o father_n unto_o the_o elect_n which_o be_v call_v by_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n another_o necessary_a ministry_n of_o the_o church_n we_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o teach_v by_o which_o the_o save_a truth_n be_v know_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o faith_n through_o which_o knowledge_n the_o life_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n be_v administer_v unto_o the_o man_n of_o good_a desire_n likewise_o we_o declare_v that_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n be_v useful_a unto_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o sacrament_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v signify_v to_o be_v fulfil_v unto_o believe_a people_n and_o by_o they_o entrance_n into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o keep_v unity_n among_o they_o that_o walk_v unto_o glory_n be_v minister_v i'faith_o which_o god_n give_v cause_v we_o think_v of_o baptism_n the_o first_o sacrament_n these_o thing_n whosoever_o of_o ripe_a age_n by_o hear_v god_n word_n believe_v and_o believe_v be_v renew_v in_o soul_n and_o be_v enlighten_v such_o by_o outward_a wash_n for_o argument_n of_o inward_a cleanness_n attain_v by_o faith_n shall_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n into_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n our_o profession_n be_v also_o extend_v unto_o child_n which_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o dionysius_n write_v shall_v be_v baptize_v and_o then_o by_o the_o guidance_n of_o their_o godfather_n be_v instruct_v in_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v invite_v unto_o and_o accustom_v with_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n by_o faith_n receive_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o profess_v that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostl_v this_o be_v observe_v whoesover_v in_o their_o young_a year_n have_v not_o receive_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n such_o do_v receive_v they_o by_o prayer_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n for_o confirmation_n of_o aith_n we_o think_v the_o same_o of_o infant_n whosoever_o be_v baptize_v shall_v come_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n which_o he_o purpose_v to_o follow_v through_o adversity_n and_o reproach_n so_o that_o new_a birth_n appear_v in_o his_o spirit_n and_o life_n of_o grace_n such_o a_o one_o shall_v be_v bring_v unto_o the_o bishop_n or_o priest_n and_o be_v demand_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o god_n commandment_n and_o of_o his_o good_a will_n and_o constant_a purpose_n and_o work_n of_o truth_n and_o shall_v testify_v by_o confession_n that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o such_o a_o one_o be_v to_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o hope_n of_o attain_a truth_n and_o he_o be_v to_o be_v help_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n may_v be_v increase_v in_o he_o for_o the_o constancy_n and_o warrefare_n of_o faith_n and_o final_o for_o confirm_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o the_o truth_n that_o he_o have_v he_o may_v be_v associate_v into_o the_o church_n by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n in_o virtue_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o this_o faith_n which_o we_o have_v drink_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o believe_v and_o confess_v with_o our_o mouth_n wheresoever_o a_o worthy_a priest_n with_o believe_v people_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n and_o purpose_n of_o christ_n and_o order_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v show_v forth_o his_o prayer_n with_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n immediate_o the_o present_a bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o death_n for_o we_o and_o so_o the_o present_a wine_n be_v his_o blood_n shed_v
for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n this_o profession_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v write_v by_o the_o evangelist_n and_o holy_a paul_n unto_o this_o profession_n may_v be_v add_v this_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o blood_n shall_v according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v take_v in_o both_o kind_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n and_o of_o his_o blood_n shed_v as_o he_o say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o then_o this_o death_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n shall_v be_v preach_v as_o also_o the_o hope_n of_o his_o blood_n shed_v as_o the_o apostle_n witness_v say_v so_o oft_o as_o you_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n you_o shall_v show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n until_o he_o come_v three_o according_a to_o the_o sure_a knowledge_n of_o spiritual_a truth_n of_o which_o the_o evangelist_n john_n do_v write_v as_o also_o for_o assurance_n of_o give_v taking_z use_v and_o of_o truth_n by_o faith_n in_o hope_n as_o the_o lord_n say_v take_v and_o eat_v take_v and_o drink_v four_o for_o the_o conjunct_a use_n for_o according_a to_o the_o institution_n and_o practice_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o priest_n shall_v then_o administer_v when_o the_o necessity_n of_o believer_n require_v and_o he_o shall_v receive_v with_o they_o as_o he_o say_v do_v you_o this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o paul_n say_v the_o cup_n which_o we_o bless_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o partake_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o we_o many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n who_o be_v partaker_n of_o that_o one_o bread_n and_o one_o cup._n five_o for_o distinction_n of_o believer_n from_o the_o unbeliever_n and_o unworthy_a and_o for_o excommunication_n and_o rebuke_n of_o those_o who_o be_v defile_v with_o the_o spot_n of_o vice_n do_v refuse_v to_o amend_v of_o this_o say_v paul_n i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o partaker_n with_o the_o devil_n you_o can_v not_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o devil_n and_o again_o he_o say_v put_v away_o the_o evil_a from_o yourselves_o for_o if_o any_o who_o be_v call_v a_o brother_n among_o you_o be_v covetous_a or_o a_o fornicator_n or_o a_o idolater_n or_o a_o drunkard_n or_o a_o railer_n or_o a_o thief_n with_o such_o a_o one_o eat_v you_o not_o behold_v this_o be_v our_o faith_n most_o gracious_a king_n concern_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o as_o we_o be_v afraid_a to_o change_v or_o forsake_v these_o thing_n which_o our_o lord_n jesus_n have_v be_v please_v to_o testify_v and_o for_o which_o end_n we_o do_v now_o declare_v it_o so_o neither_o dare_v we_o add_v any_o thing_n unto_o it_o which_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o sacrament_n have_v not_o add_v as_o also_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o follow_v christ_n in_o poverty_n and_o affliction_n in_o singleness_n of_o heart_n have_v not_o alter_v the_o ordinance_n of_o his_o law_n concern_v this_o sacrament_n which_o our_o lord_n through_o his_o great_a mercy_n have_v ordain_v for_o love_n of_o his_o elect_a have_v many_o contention_n arisen_a in_o opinion_n exposition_n and_o addition_n of_o sanction_n or_o decree_n so_o that_o contrary_a unto_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o lord_n institution_n they_o have_v furious_o rage_v against_o other_o even_o to_o take_v away_o their_o life_n but_o we_o for_o eschue_v so_o great_a mischief_n have_v our_o refuge_n unto_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n even_o unto_o his_o word_n and_o meaning_n so_o often_o repeat_v in_o his_o word_n so_o that_o what_o he_o command_v to_o believe_v we_o do_v believe_v it_o simple_o and_o what_o he_o have_v command_v to_o do_v we_o will_v do_v it_o faith_n full_o true_o we_o do_v not_o only_o believe_v that_o that_o bread_n be_v his_o body_n which_o be_v take_v and_o bless_a and_o break_v he_o testify_v to_o be_v his_o body_n but_o also_o if_o he_o have_v take_v a_o stone_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n we_o will_v have_v full_o believe_v it_o because_o of_o this_o our_o simple_a faith_n and_o because_o we_o will_v not_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o forsake_v it_o for_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n we_o be_v call_v heretic_n likewise_o for_o the_o actual_a use_n unto_o which_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o example_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n do_v invite_v we_o because_o we_o do_v and_o use_v it_o so_o with_o upright_a faith_n in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v condemn_v judge_v worthy_a of_o prison_n and_o be_v afflict_v for_o we_o be_v tie_v unto_o christ_n command_n and_o dissuade_v by_o his_o forbid_v do_v worship_n he_o with_o reverence_n and_o honour_v due_a unto_o he_o and_o we_o fear_v to_o worship_v any_o other_o thing_n as_o he_o only_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wherefore_o gracious_a king_n let_v your_o highness_n understand_v that_o we_o do_v so_o not_o in_o contumacy_n or_o any_o contempt_n but_o for_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o obedience_n unto_o he_o and_o we_o pray_v that_o your_o highness_n will_v show_v compassion_n on_o we_o who_o be_v condemn_v for_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o wish_v that_o the_o most_o high_a will_v of_o his_o grace_n be_v please_v to_o preserve_v and_o keep_v your_o honour_n from_o his_o wrath_n by_o the_o same_o faith_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o ordination_n of_o priest_n be_v true_o from_o the_o high_a bishop_n and_o great_a priest_n that_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o embassage_n of_o christ_n the_o ministry_n preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n doctrine_n judge_v offer_v of_o prayer_n by_o man_n thanksgiving_n and_o praise_n may_v be_v do_v unto_o god_n by_o they_o and_o it_o be_v from_o god_n unto_o man_n that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n may_v be_v verify_v in_o hope_n of_o the_o receive_v true_a faith_n and_o by_o excommunication_n the_o wicked_a may_v be_v debar_v from_o that_o good_a and_o by_o the_o same_o faith_n we_o confess_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n may_v be_v verify_v in_o hope_n of_o the_o receive_v true_a faith_n and_o by_o excommunication_n the_o wicked_a may_v be_v debar_v from_o that_o good_a and_o by_o the_o same_o faith_n we_o confess_v that_o they_o who_o intend_v to_o ordain_v other_o shall_v follow_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n and_o shall_v consummate_v his_o ambassage_n with_o a_o right_a mind_n without_o respect_n of_o person_n free_a from_o covetousness_n and_o simony_n by_o the_o same_o faith_n we_o declare_v that_o they_o which_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v or_o promote_v to_o high_a or_o inferior_a order_n shall_v excel_v other_o believer_n in_o a_o godly_a life_n and_o faith_n in_o christ_n for_o a_o lively_a faith_n sanctifi_v and_o make_v fit_a unto_o all_o office_n and_o possess_v the_o blessing_n and_o life_n for_o good_a work_n of_o a_o honest_a conversation_n be_v the_o garment_n and_o ornament_n of_o a_o priest_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o heavenly_a father_n and_o example_n of_o the_o people_n and_o show_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o word_n they_o shall_v also_o have_v more_o abundant_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o wit_n more_o servant_n love_n towards_o christ_n confidence_n of_o their_o own_o and_o their_o neighbour_n salvation_n trust_v in_o god_n equity_n of_o mind_n a_o wholesome_a feel_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o good_a conscience_n their_o foot_n prepare_v unto_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n prudence_n of_o spirit_n knowledge_n of_o god_n law_n discern_v of_o spirit_n and_o the_o like_a what_o clerck_n soever_o by_o such_o a_o ordination_n be_v advance_v unto_o the_o priesthood_n we_o profess_v that_o such_o a_o ordination_n be_v a_o sacrament_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a priesthood_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o of_o his_o ordination_n by_o god_n the_o father_n and_o a_o form_n of_o the_o ministry_n as_o of_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n to_o offer_v unto_o god_n the_o incense_n of_o truth_n in_o christ_n we_o approve_v that_o three_o thing_n be_v necessary_a unto_o the_o full_a gradation_n of_o a_o presbyter_n first_o the_o the_o trial_n of_o his_o life_n faith_n gift_n and_o fidelity_n in_o lesser_a thing_n that_o be_v entrust_v unto_o he_o another_o prayer_n with_o fast_v three_o the_o give_v of_o power_n with_o word_n suitable_a there_o unto_o and_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n for_o corroboration_n by_o faith_n we_o do_v testify_v that_o marriage_n be_v a_o lawful_a honest_a and_o
ernest_n archb._n of_o magdeburgh_n be_v a_o ding_o an._n 1511._o his_o chaplain_n clemens_n schaw_n and_o two_o franciscan_n be_v by_o he_o and_o one_o of_o the_o franciscan_n say_v famous_a prince_n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n we_o will_v communicate_v unto_o your_o highness_n not_o only_o all_o our_o good_a work_n but_o likewise_o of_o all_o the_o order_n of_o the_o minorite_n and_o without_o doubt_n when_o you_o have_v these_o you_o shall_v stand_v just_a and_o bless_a before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n ernest_n answer_v by_o no_o mean_n will_v i_o trust_v either_o in_o my_o own_o work_n or_o in_o you_o but_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n only_o be_v sufficient_a catalogue_n test._n ver_fw-la lib._n 19_o ex_fw-la cl._n schaw_n 11._o john_n picus_n lord_n of_o mirandula_n and_o earl_n of_o concordia_n be_v about_o that_o time_n admire_v for_o his_o learning_n his_o book_n begin_v to_o be_v print_v an._n 1504_o he_o write_v 900_o proposition_n which_o he_o defend_v in_o public_a disputation_n at_o rome_n among_o they_o be_v these_o follow_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n local_o and_o on_o the_o altar_n sacramental_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n one_o body_n can_v not_o be_v in_o diverse_a place_n at_o once_o consecration_n be_v not_o make_v precise_o by_o these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la unless_o the_o antecedent_n word_n be_v add_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o the_o night_n he_o be_v betray_v ....._o neither_o the_o cross_n nor_o any_o image_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_fw-la no_o nor_o as_o s._n thomas_n express_v it_o the_o doctor_n condemn_v these_o thesis_n and_o he_o write_v a_o apology_n defend_v they_o to_o be_v catholic_n especial_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n he_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v present_a without_o any_o conversion_n or_o annihilation_n of_o the_o bread_n he_o say_v may_v be_v and_o not_o be_v present_a to_o eschew_v their_o bond_n without_o doubt_n he_o have_v speak_v more_o plain_o if_o he_o can_v have_v do_v it_o free_o in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o the_o emperor_n maximilian_n an._n 1500._o he_o say_v with_o such_o faith_n and_o piety_n as_o i_o can_v i_o beseech_v thou_o that_o with_o all_o diligence_n thou_o will_v accomplish_v that_o thy_o most_o holy_a purpose_n to_o restore_v the_o christian_a republic_n unto_o the_o ancient_a liberty_n it_o be_v waste_v by_o outward_a enemy_n and_o tear_v by_o inward_a and_o the_o sheepfold_a of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v consecrate_v by_o his_o blood_n have_v suffer_v and_o daily_o suffer_v far_o worse_o from_o wolf_n under_o sheepskin_n then_o under_o their_o own_o colour_n go-on_a then_o most_o worthy_a caesar_n and_o excite_v christian_a king_n by_o what_o mean_v thou_o can_v and_o show_v thyself_o a_o faithful_a servant_n unto_o christ_n the_o king_n of_o all_o king_n who_o will_v quick_o deliver_v his_o sheep_n as_o well_o from_o outward_a enemy_n as_o from_o false_a shepherd_n in_o time_n of_o the_o conflict_n of_o the_o two_o counsel_n of_o pisa_n and_o lateran_n he_o handle_v that_o question_n whether_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o faith_n a_o pope_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o a_o council_n or_o contra_fw-la and_o say_v according_a unto_o the_o gloss_n of_o the_o decree_n do_v 19_o c._n anastasius_n where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o pope_n shall_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n seek_v a_o council_n and_o therefore_o the_o synod_n be_v more_o than_o a_o pope_n and_o he_o add_v wherefore_o the_o archdeacon_n of_o bononia_n approve_v the_o gloss_n say_v it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o make_v our_o faith_n subject_n unto_o the_o pleasure_n of_o any_o man_n and_o so_o say_v bernard_n what_o great_a pride_n one_o man_n to_o prefer_v his_o judgement_n before_o all_o the_o world_n and_o when_o he_o have_v show_v his_o judgement_n that_o the_o great_a number_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o lesser_a caeteris_fw-la paribus_fw-la he_o add_v but_o if_o the_o great_a part_n will_v decern_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o against_o these_o thing_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v violat_a and_o a_o small_a number_n oppose_v they_o we_o shall_v cleave_v unto_o the_o lesser_a number_n as_o in_o the_o council_n of_o arimino_n and_o the_o second_o at_o ephesus_n yea_o we_o shall_v believe_v a_o country_n man_n or_o a_o old_a wife_n rather_o than_o a_o pope_n or_o a_o thousand_o bishop_n if_o these_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o former_a follow_v the_o gospel_n likewise_o speak_v of_o that_o question_n whether_o the_o pope_n and_o counsel_n may_v err_v he_o say_v it_o may_v be_v easy_o decide_v because_o he_o have_v already_o show_v they_o may_v err_v from_o the_o scripture_n many_o counsel_n and_o pope_n have_v fall_v into_o heresy_n it_o oft_o happen_v that_o he_o who_o be_v account_v precedent_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o dutiful_o discharge_v his_o presidence_n and_o sometime_o he_o can_v not_o be_v precedent_n at_o all_o see_v it_o be_v record_v that_o in_o former_a time_n a_o woman_n be_v pope_n and_o i_o remember_v of_o a_o learned_a man_n who_o in_o our_o age_n have_v attain_v great_a esteem_n of_o religiousness_n and_o teach_v albeit_o not_o altogether_o public_o that_o he_o who_o be_v choose_v pope_n at_o that_o time_n be_v not_o pope_n ...._o and_o i_o remember_v of_o another_o who_o be_v receive_v and_o adore_v as_o pope_n who_o good_a and_o worthy_a man_n think_v neither_o to_o be_v pope_n nor_o that_o he_o can_v be_v pope_n for_o he_o believe_v not_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o they_o do_v testify_v of_o his_o most_o wicked_a deedsin_n buy_v the_o papacy_n and_o exercise_v all_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n yea_o and_o they_o declare_v his_o most_o wicked_a word_n for_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o he_o confess_v unto_o his_o familiar_a friend_n that_o he_o believe_v there_o be_v no_o god_n even_o since_o he_o be_v ruler_n of_o the_o papal_a see_v i_o hear_v of_o another_o pope_n who_o in_o his_o time_n say_v unto_o his_o friend_n he_o believe_v not_o the_o immortality_n of_o soul_n and_o when_o he_o be_v dead_a he_o appear_v unto_o the_o same_o man_n and_o say_v that_o to_o his_o great_a loss_n and_o by_o everlasting_a fire_n he_o have_v find_v or_o know_v that_o soul_n be_v immortal_a ph._n morn_n in_o myster_n this_o john_n have_v a_o oration_n in_o the_o council_n at_o lateran_n before_o pope_n leo_n x._o wherein_o he_o speak_v free_o of_o a_o necessity_n of_o reformation_n because_o of_o their_o corrupt_a manner_n their_o adulterate_a law_n and_o canon_n their_o decay_a religion_n even_o among_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o godliness_n say_v he_o be_v almost_o turn_v into_o superstition_n righteousness_n into_o hatred_n or_o favour_n and_o man_n of_o all_o estate_n do_v sin_n open_o so_o that_o virtue_n be_v oft_o blame_v in_o good_a man_n and_o vice_n honour_v in_o place_n of_o virtue_n especial_o by_o those_o who_o will_v have_v as_o it_o be_v the_o wall_n and_o hedge_n of_o their_o own_o crime_n and_o strange_a insolency_n and_o contumacy_n unpunished_a these_o malady_n these_o sore_n thou_o must_v heal_v o_o great_a highpriest_n or_o if_o thou_o refuse_v to_o cure_v they_o i_o fear_v lest_o he_o who_o crown_n thou_o hold_v on_o earth_n cut_v off_o and_o destroy_v the_o infect_a member_n not_o with_o fomentation_n but_o with_o fire_n and_o sword_n i_o think_v very_o that_o he_o give_v certain_a sign_n of_o his_o future_a medicine_n by_o pestilence_n famine_n and_o bloody_a war_n at_o such_o admonition_n and_o heavenly_a thunder_n we_o shall_v have_v lift_v up_o our_o ear_n unto_o repentance_n but_o we_o rather_o lose_v they_o like_o the_o moor_n which_o become_v deaf_a at_o the_o continual_a noise_n of_o nilus_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_n for_o john_n chrysostom_n think_v that_o all_o evil_n proceed_v from_o the_o church_n and_o hierom_n write_v that_o he_o have_v find_v no_o man_n which_o have_v deceive_v the_o people_n but_o the_o priest_n if_o thou_o will_v reform_v and_o correct_v these_o thing_n willing_a or_o unwilling_a thou_o shall_v be_v think_v by_o the_o christian_a world_n to_o have_v lift_v up_o a_o standert_fw-ge of_o a_o full_a reformation_n this_o thou_o o_o great_a high_a priest_n shall_v do_v and_o none_o other_o on_o earth_n more_o than_o thou_o and_o if_o thou_o will_v not_o remember_v i_o pray_v thou_o that_o old_a priest_n who_o be_v punish_v for_o not_o punish_v the_o sin_n of_o his_o son_n for_o they_o who_o be_v set_v over_o other_o shall_v not_o only_o be_v innocent_a themselves_o but_o resist_v the_o nocent_a and_o repress_v their_o wickedness_n and_o when_o he_o have_v show_v more_o particular_o that_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o clergy_n have_v very_o great_a need_n of_o reformation_n he_o prove_v the_o same_o of_o their_o
soave_fw-it when_o the_o see_v be_v wake_fw-mi the_o cardinal_n be_v wont_a to_o prescribe_v some_o article_n of_o reform_v the_o papal_a power_n which_o they_o swear_v to_o observe_v precise_o if_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v choose_v albeit_o it_o be_v know_v by_o experience_n of_o all_o age_n that_o none_o of_o they_o have_v a_o purpose_n to_o observe_v that_o oath_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v invest_v they_o profess_v that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v tie_v and_o they_o be_v absolve_v by_o their_o assumption_n so_o at_o that_o time_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o article_n that_o he_o who_o shall_v be_v choose_v shall_v call_v a_o council_n within_o a_o year_n iii_o paul_n iii_o haddit_n be_v dean_n of_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n many_o year_n and_o will_v seem_v not_o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o a_o council_n as_o clemens_n be_v but_o to_o be_v desirous_a of_o it_o and_o ere_o he_o be_v crown_v he_o propound_v in_o the_o first_o meeting_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o hold_v a_o council_n see_v otherwise_o peace_n can_v not_o stand_v among_o christian_a prince_n nor_o can_v heresy_n be_v root_v out_o he_o appoint_v three_o cardinal_n to_o advise_v upon_o the_o place_n time_n and_o other_o circumstance_n and_o to_o give_v their_o overture_n in_o the_o first_o consistory_n after_o his_o coronation_n and_o to_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o opposition_n upon_o their_o side_n he_o say_v see_v a_o reformation_n must_v be_v of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v most_o expedient_a that_o the_o cardinal_n from_o that_o present_a time_n begin_v to_o reform_v themselves_o rather_o than_o be_v reform_v by_o other_o neither_o can_v there_o fruit_n be_v expect_v by_o a_o council_n nor_o can_v the_o decree_n have_v any_o authority_n unless_o they_o go_v before_o by_o their_o good_a example_n in_o the_o first_o consistory_n novemb_n 12._o he_o speak_v of_o this_o purpose_n again_o they_o think_v he_o speak_v ingenuous_o but_o some_o do_v smell_v out_o his_o policy_n because_o he_o have_v appoint_v three_o the_o most_o unfit_a man_n of_o all_o the_o number_n to_o consult_v of_o this_o but_o in_o december_n he_o take_v away_o all_o fear_n from_o they_o for_o than_o he_o create_v a_o cardinal_n alexander_n farnesius_n the_o son_n of_o his_o own_o bastard_n son_n and_o another_o guido_n ascanius_n sforza_n the_o son_n of_o his_o bastard_n daughter_n the_o one_o be_v 14._o year_n old_a and_o the_o other_o 15_o year_n then_o the_o cardinal_n have_v enough_o to_o object_n to_o wit_n their_o childhood_n january_n 16._o an._n 1535._o he_o have_v a_o large_a speech_n in_o the_o consistory_n that_o the_o council_n can_v be_v delay_v no_o long_o lest_o all_o man_n think_v themselves_o deceive_v with_o word_n and_o he_o send_v his_o nuntio_n unto_o prince_n show_v his_o resolution_n and_o that_o he_o judge_v mantua_n the_o fit_a place_n he_o say_v there_o be_v but_o two_o way_n of_o deal_n with_o the_o protestant_n force_n or_o allurement_n he_o judge_v the_o late_a the_o better_a and_o he_o will_v refuse_v no_o condition_n of_o accord_n save_v his_o papal_a dignity_n vergerius_n go_v into_o germany_n as_o follow_v in_o cha._n 3_o and_o return_v the_o next_o year_n say_v there_o be_v no_o hope_n to_o win_v luther_n and_o his_o follower_n they_o must_v be_v oppress_v by_o arm_n for_o his_o service_n he_o be_v make_v a_o b._n in_o istria_n and_o immediate_o dispatch_v unto_o the_o emperor_n in_o naples_n charles_n hear_v his_o report_n and_o hasten_v unto_o rome_n at_o this_o time_n lewes_n sfortia_n duke_n of_o milan_n be_v dead_a without_o child_n and_o the_o king_n of_o france_n profess_v to_o recover_v it_o with_o a_o strong_a hand_n charles_n tell_v this_o unto_o the_o pope_n who_o answer_v it_o be_v better_o for_o he_o to_o subdue_v the_o protestant_n in_o germany_n and_o himself_o with_o the_o venetian_n will_v persuade_v francis_n to_o desist_v pe._n soavesaith_n the_o pope_n profess_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o lutheran_n but_o his_o purpose_n be_v rather_o that_o a_o italian_a shall_v be_v lord_n of_o milan_n but_o charles_n do_v understand_v what_o he_o mean_v and_o intend_v cretizare_n cum_fw-la cretensi_fw-la say_v he_o will_v do_v so_o yet_o think_v it_o not_o expedient_a to_o raise_v up_o so_o many_o enemy_n at_o once_o and_o advise_v the_o pope_n to_o call_v a_o council_n that_o so_o the_o world_n may_v see_v they_o have_v use_v all_o mean_n of_o peace_n before_o arm_n the_o pope_n seem_v to_o be_v well_o please_v because_o war_n be_v begin_v in_o pymount_n and_o certain_o will_v come_v into_o italy_n and_o when_o the_o council_n be_v summon_v he_o will_v have_v a_o fair_a pretence_n to_o guard_v the_o council_n under_o show_n of_o custody_n so_o he_o call_v a_o council_n to_o assemble_v at_o mantua_n may_v 27._o in_o the_o year_n 1537._o and_o also_o give_v commission_n unto_o four_o cardinal_n and_o some_o bb_n to_o reform_v the_o paenitentiaria_fw-la dataria_n &_o court_n of_o rome_n threaten_v his_o curse_n against_o all_o that_o shall_v disobey_v they_o but_o nothing_o be_v do_v and_o man_n of_o judgement_n say_v no_o better_o be_v to_o be_v expect_v of_o the_o council_n call_v so_o unreasonable_o in_o time_n of_o war_n between_o the_o emperor_n &_o france_n pe._n soave_fw-it in_fw-it hist_o conc._n no_o nation_n will_v consent_v unto_o this_o council_n nor_o the_o duke_n of_o mantua_n unless_o the_o pope_n will_v give_v he_o money_n to_o hire_v a_o guard_n of_o soldier_n the_o pope_n be_v glad_a that_o other_o have_v refuse_v when_o he_o have_v offer_v it_o and_o to_o show_v his_o readiness_n he_o appoint_v to_o conveen_n against_o novemb_n 1._o but_o he_o name_v no_o place_n henry_n viii_o king_n of_o england_n by_o a_o publish_a declaration_n show_v that_o he_o be_v desirous_a of_o a_o council_n but_o he_o will_v neither_o go_v nor_o send_v unto_o any_o call_v by_o the_o pope_n see_v now_o he_o have_v no_o correspondence_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o it_o be_v not_o a_o new_a thing_n that_o the_o pope_n deceive_v the_o world_n as_o now_o he_o blame_v the_o duke_n of_o mantua_n but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o be_v but_o to_o delude_v man_n as_o also_o that_o he_o call_v a_o council_n and_o name_v not_o the_o place_n and_o see_v now_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o a_o free_a council_n he_o judge_v it_o best_o that_o every_o prince_n reform_v religion_n with_o in_o his_o own_o dominion_n or_o if_o any_o will_v show_v a_o better_a way_n he_o will_v not_o refuse_v it_o in_o italy_n also_o many_o say_v bold_o that_o albeit_o the_o pope_n lie_v the_o blame_n on_o the_o duke_n of_o mantua_n yet_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n only_a fault_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o nothing_o be_v do_v in_o reformation_n of_o rome_n albeit_o he_o have_v make_v a_o show_n of_o it_o when_o the_o council_n at_o mantua_n be_v proclaim_v and_o none_o other_o have_v oppose_v that_o work_n to_o wash_v himself_o of_o this_o imputation_n he_o give_v a_o charge_n again_o unto_o four_o cardinal_n and_o 5._o prelate_n to_o search_v out_o the_o malady_n and_o apply_v remedy_n with_o all_o diligence_n now_o these_o gather_v the_o head_n of_o reformation_n in_o write_v and_o do_v present_a they_o unto_o the_o pope_n where_o in_o they_o show_v a_o threefold_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o malady_n the_o proneness_n of_o pp_n to_o hear_v flatterer_n their_o readiness_n to_o derogate_v from_o former_a law_n and_o the_o neglect_n of_o christ_n command_n to_o take_v no_o gain_n for_o spiritual_a thing_n then_o more_o particular_o they_o observe_v 24._o abuse_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o church_n affair_n and_o 4._o in_o the_o roman_a government_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o clerk_n collation_n of_o benefice_n pension_n permutation_n regression_n reservation_n plurality_n commenda_n non-residences_a exemption_n deformation_n of_o regulares_fw-la ignorance_n of_o preacher_n and_o confessor_n ...._o then_o they_o come_v to_o dispensation_n first_o of_o they_o that_o be_v marry_v then_o to_o marry_v within_o degree_n forbid_v dispensation_n of_o simony_n of_o grant_v confessional_n and_o indulgence_n dispensation_n of_o vow_n of_o change_a testament_n tolerate_v whore_n neglect_v of_o almshouse_n and_o many_o more_o such_o the_o pope_n give_v these_o overture_n unto_o the_o consistory_n where_o somesaid_a it_o be_v not_o a_o time_n to_o reform_v these_o thing_n see_v the_o lutheran_n will_v boast_v that_o they_o have_v cause_v the_o pope_n to_o enter_v upon_o a_o reformation_n not_o only_o of_o abuse_n but_o of_o laudable_a rite_n john_n peter_n caraffa_n cardinal_n of_o theate_n say_v a_o reformation_n be_v necessary_a nor_o can_v it_o be_v omit_v without_o great_a offence_n as_o evil_a shall_v not_o be_v do_v that_o good_a may_v come_v of_o it_o so_o necessary_a good_a work_n shall_v not_o be_v omit_v for_o fear_n
tolerate_v that_o good_a may_v spring_v out_o of_o they_o as_o neither_o do_v the_o follower_n of_o luther_n pretend_v these_o scandal_n &_o grievance_n flow_v from_o the_o roman_a court_n and_o though_o they_o have_v do_v it_o they_o shall_v not_o forsake_v catholic_n unity_n but_o rather_o in_o the_o high_a patience_n have_v suffer_v the_o most_o grievous_a extremity_n and_o therefore_o they_o shall_v even_o now_o put_v that_o edict_n into_o execution_n as_o the_o apostolical_a see_v be_v ready_a to_o relieve_v germany_n of_o their_o unjust_a oppression_n by_o the_o roman_a court_n if_o there_o be_v any_o as_o for_o the_o annates_fw-la see_v the_o pope_n will_v give_v a_o answer_n in_o due_a time_n he_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v but_o concern_v their_o petition_n of_o a_o council_n he_o think_v it_o will_v be_v accept_v by_o the_o pope_n if_o they_o will_v smooth_v their_o word_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v harsh_a to_o wit_n that_o they_o require_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o that_o it_o be_v call_v into_o one_o place_n rather_o than_o in_o another_o if_o these_o word_n be_v not_o smooth_v they_o seem_v to_o curb_v the_o pope_n power_n and_o so_o can_v bring_v no_o good_a effect_n etc._n etc._n this_o reply_n in_o these_o and_o other_o particular_n be_v not_o acceptable_a for_o they_o do_v measure_n good_a and_o evil_a by_o the_o rule_n of_o gain_n unto_o the_o roman_a court_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o will_v amend_v in_o nothing_o but_o only_o in_o word_n of_o vain_a promise_n therefore_o after_o deliberation_n they_o resolve_v that_o they_o will_v not_o depart_v from_o their_o former_a answer_n but_o will_v rather_o expect_v what_o the_o pope_n will_v do_v then_o the_o seculare_fw-la prince_n begin_v to_o consider_v the_o manifold_a grievance_n of_o the_o nation_n flow_v not_o from_o the_o court_n only_o but_o from_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o clergy_n when_o the_o legate_n hear_v of_o this_o purpose_n he_o will_v stay_v no_o long_o nevertheless_o they_o go_v on_o and_o gather_v they_o which_o afterward_o be_v call_v the_o bundred_a grievance_n of_o germany_n and_o send_v they_o unto_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n with_o a_o protestation_n that_o they_o can_v endure_v they_o no_o long_o some_o of_o the_o grievance_n be_v the_o vast_a sum_n of_o money_n for_o dispensation_n absolution_n and_o indulgence_n advocation_n of_o plea_n from_o germany_n to_o rome_n reservation_n of_o benefice_n corruption_n of_o commenda_n &_o annates_fw-la exemption_n of_o guilty_a churchman_n from_o civil_a court_n unjust_a excommunication_n and_o interdiction_n the_o bring_n of_o several_a plea_n unto_o church-consistories_a cover_v with_o many_o pretext_n etc._n etc._n and_o they_o reduce_v all_o unto_o three_o chief_a head_n the_o oppression_n of_o the_o people_n with_o most_o grievous_a bondage_n germany_n be_v spoil_v of_o wealth_n and_o they_o usurp_v the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n the_o diet_n be_v dissolve_v march_n 6._o an._n 1523._o and_o all_o these_o the_o pope_n brieve_n and_o his_o instruction_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o prince_n the_o legat_n reply_n and_o the_o grievance_n be_v print_v and_o spread_v when_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o rome_n it_o do_v gall_v the_o court_n that_o by_o the_o pope_n confession_n they_o be_v call_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o these_o evil_n and_o the_o prelate_n can_v not_o endure_v that_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o contempt_n and_o that_o the_o people_n now_o have_v not_o only_a cause_n to_o revile_v they_o but_o the_o lutheran_n have_v matter_n of_o joy_n &_o exultation_n and_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o inevitable_a necessity_n to_o loose_v their_o power_n and_o gain_v else_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o they_o be_v incorrigible_a who_o do_v favour_v the_o pope_n make_v excuse_v that_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o policy_n whereby_o papal_a power_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o court_n have_v stand_v so_o long_o pope_n leo_n be_v more_o wise_a when_o the_o german_n have_v blame_v the_o court_n he_o say_v it_o be_v their_o ignorance_n and_o mistake_v so_o that_o if_o luther_n have_v be_v send_v to_o rome_n when_o it_o be_v require_v he_o have_v not_o see_v abuse_n there_o but_o in_o germany_n they_o say_v the_o pope_n confession_n be_v but_o a_o trick_n of_o that_o court_n to_o confess_v a_o fault_n and_o promise_v amendment_n and_o never_o to_o think_v of_o amend_v and_o so_o deceive_v people_n for_o their_o own_o interest_n and_o where_o the_o pope_n say_v all_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v reform_v at_o once_o they_o say_v merry_o he_o will_v proceed_v so_o slow_o that_o a_o age_n may_v slip_v betwixt_o the_o first_o and_o next_o step_n and_o nevertheless_o say_v pe._n soave_fw-it hadrian_n profess_v free_o and_o ingenuous_o that_o the_o church_n be_v corrupt_v and_o he_o be_v solicitous_a of_o remedy_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o issue_n he_o die_v september_n 13._o in_o that_o edict_n or_o answer_n of_o nurembergh_n be_v also_o other_o particulares_fw-la which_o the_o german_n do_v expound_v diverse_o according_a to_o their_o affection_n as_o where_o it_o be_v say_v preacher_n shall_v not_o speak_v of_o such_o thing_n that_o may_v raise_v broil_n among_o the_o people_n the_o papist_n say_v the_o meaning_n be_v these_o thing_n shall_v not_o be_v repeat_v that_o luther_n have_v teach_v and_o especial_o the_o pretend_a error_n of_o churchman_n on_o the_o other_o side_n who_o where_o desirous_a of_o reformation_n say_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o diet_n be_v priest_n shall_v not_o mantain_n these_o abuse_n which_o heretofore_o have_v provoke_v the_o people_n against_o churchman_n again_o where_o it_o be_v say_v they_o shall_v preach_v the_o gospel_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o doctor_n approve_v by_o the_o church_n the_o papist_n say_v the_o meaning_n be_v they_o shall_v preach_v nothing_o but_o according_a to_o the_o late_a schoolman_n and_o the_o postillator_n but_o other_o say_v by_o such_o writer_n be_v understand_v the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o hilarius_n ambrose_n augustin_n hierome_n and_o such_o and_o so_o that_o edict_n which_o be_v suppose_v to_o quench_v the_o fire_n of_o controversy_n do_v inflamme_v they_o more_o and_o all_o good_a man_n see_v a_o necessity_n of_o call_v a_o council_n and_o that_o party_n shall_v submit_v thereunto_o pe._n soave_fw-it in_fw-it histo_fw-la council_n the_o adversary_n of_o truth_n devise_v another_o monk_n the_o wrangling_n of_o monk_n trick_n against_o the_o reformation_n to_o wit_n they_o traduce_v the_o opposite_a doctrine_n with_o malign_a interpretation_n as_o when_o luther_n say_v christ_n have_v satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o our_o work_n be_v not_o satisfactory_a unto_o divine_a justice_n the_o monk_n say_v the_o new_a preacher_n be_v enemy_n of_o good_a work_n as_o if_o faith_n alone_o be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n and_o as_o if_o it_o be_v alike_o whether_o we_o live_v holy_o or_o not_o when_o luther_n say_v none_o be_v tie_v necessary_o to_o confess_v all_o his_o sin_n unto_o a_o priest_n the_o monk_n say_v they_o make_v no_o confession_n unto_o god_n nor_o man_n in_o a_o word_n as_o erasmus_n write_v in_o epist_n in_o pseude-evangel_a date_a friburg_n an._n 1529._o the_o monk_n and_o divine_n through_o cruelty_n of_o nature_n or_o foolishness_n or_o for_o gain_n or_o hope_n or_o honour_n or_o private_a malice_n do_v most_o cruel_o accuse_v they_o not_o only_o of_o frivolous_a thing_n and_o which_o may_v be_v dispute_v on_o both_o side_n but_o most_o perverse_o they_o do_v miss-interprete_a what_o be_v well_o speak_v and_o this_o be_v another_o spur_n to_o provoke_v their_o follower_n to_o execute_v the_o edict_n of_o worm_n the_o same_o year_n therefore_o say_v erasmus_n io._n cit_fw-la before_o this_o time_n be_v some_o licence_n to_o dispute_v of_o the_o pope_n power_n of_o indulgence_n and_o of_o purgatory_n but_o now_o we_o there_fw-mi not_o speak_v of_o thing_n that_o be_v godly_a and_o true_a we_o be_v compel_v to_o believe_v that_o man_n of_o himself_o work_v meritorious_a work_n and_o by_o his_o work_n deserve_v eternal_a life_n ex_fw-la condigno_fw-la that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n may_v command_v her_o son_n to_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o this_o or_o that_o man_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n horrible_a unto_o godly_a ear_n john_n prince_n of_o anhalt_n begin_v to_o affect_v the_o truth_n and_o do_v advertise_v luther_n by_o do._n hierom_n and_o a_o franciscan_a that_o he_o shall_v purge_v he_o of_o that_o calumny_n which_o ferdinand_n duke_n of_o austria_n have_v impute_v unto_o he_o in_o norinbergh_n that_o he_o have_v say_v christ_n be_v not_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n charles_n duke_n of_o savoy_n be_v very_o desirous_a of_o truth_n and_o purity_n luther_n understanding_n it_o by_o annemund_n coct_v a_o french_a knight_n write_v unto_o he_o a_o confession_n of_o faith_n to_o confirm_v he_o in_o the_o
quench_v the_o thirst_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o deal_v with_o we_o as_o he_o do_v with_o the_o father_n he_o say_v also_o god_n declare_v his_o will_n by_o dream_n as_o he_o have_v do_v unto_o himself_o and_o have_v give_v he_o a_o command_n to_o kill_v all_o wicked_a man_n and_o pull_v down_o all_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n he_o teach_v also_o that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v common_a and_o all_o shall_v have_v alike_o freedom_n and_o liberty_n without_o all_o subiectjon_n sleidan_n comment_fw-fr lib._n 3._o &_o 5._o in_o apile_n 1525._o the_o countrie-people_n in_o suevia_n by_o the_o river_n danube_n be_v delude_v with_o such_o error_n begin_v to_o refuse_v obedience_n and_o they_o demand_v 1._o liberty_n to_o choose_v their_o minister_n that_o will_v preach_v the_o word_n without_o man_n tradition_n and_o decree_n 2._o liberty_n from_o all_o tieth_n except_o only_a corn_n and_o these_o to_o be_v divide_v at_o the_o discretion_n of_o good_a man_n a_o part_n unto_o minister_n part_n unto_o the_o poor_a and_o part_n unto_o public_a business_n 3._o it_o be_v not_o equitable_a that_o heretofore_o they_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o condition_n of_o slave_n see_v they_o be_v make_v free_a by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n they_o profess_v they_o do_v not_o cast_v off_o magistrate_n but_o they_o will_v not_o endure_v that_o bondage_n unless_o it_o be_v clear_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v reasonable_a 4._o it_o be_v not_o reason_n that_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o take_v wild_a beast_n or_o fish_n especial_o when_o the_o beast_n destroy_v their_o cornefield_n from_o the_o beginning_n god_n have_v give_v unto_o man_n power_n over_o all_o live_a creature_n 5._o it_o be_v a_o great_a prejudice_n of_o the_o people_n that_o wood_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o afew_n man_n 6._o they_o demand_v that_o their_o prince_n or_o master_n will_v moderate_v their_o daily_a burden_n of_o service_n according_a to_o the_o equity_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o lay_v no_o more_o upon_o they_o than_o be_v crave_v of_o old_a etc._n etc._n ibid._n albeit_o the_o attempt_n of_o these_o man_n be_v alike_o against_o popish_a master_n and_o other_o which_o be_v desirous_a of_o reformation_n yet_o i_o can_v not_o find_v that_o any_o popish_a person_n do_v endeavour_v to_o convince_v they_o by_o information_n luther_n do_v publish_v book_n to_o refute_v they_o many_o time_n before_o they_o do_v publish_v their_o demand_n he_o dissuade_v they_o from_o sedition_n as_o a_o most_o fearful_a sin_n not_o only_o in_o the_o external_a fact_n but_o even_o to_o be_v speak_v or_o think_v upon_o after_o the_o publish_n of_o the_o demand_n he_o tell_v they_o they_o do_v wicked_o in_o cloak_v their_o rebellion_n with_o the_o pretext_n of_o sincee_a doctrine_n and_o equity_n see_v god_n have_v command_v to_o obey_v prince_n and_o master_n then_o he_o sift_v their_o demand_n several_o and_o show_v that_o some_o of_o they_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o equity_n and_o if_o any_o of_o they_o have_v any_o reason_n in_o they_o they_o shall_v be_v examine_v by_o prudent_a man_n but_o they_o shall_v not_o move_v broil_n if_o their_o master_n will_v not_o let_v they_o have_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o may_v go_v in_o quietness_n where_o they_o may_v have_v it_o but_o they_o shall_v not_o use_v violence_n against_o their_o master_n he_o write_v also_o unto_o prince_n and_o especial_o unto_o the_o prelate_n that_o their_o hinder_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o provocation_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o their_o lay_n of_o intolerable_a burden_n on_o their_o subject_n for_o their_o own_o pleasure_n and_o prodigality_n be_v also_o offensive_a unto_o god_n and_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o use_v all_o mean_n of_o peace_n rather_o than_o force_v see_v the_o issue_n of_o war_n be_v uncertain_a and_o arm_n be_v soon_o take_v up_o then_o can_v be_v lay_v off_o when_o they_o have_v take_v arm_n he_o write_v the_o three_o time_n exhort_v both_o to_o take_v away_o their_o controverfy_v by_o treaty_n of_o good_a and_o prudent_a man_n many_o other_o preacher_n do_v also_o publish_v book_n show_v the_o craft_n of_o satan_n in_o raise_v such_o broil_n at_o that_o time_n and_o that_o these_o shall_v not_o be_v impute_v unto_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o the_o adversary_n of_o truth_n do_v cry_v and_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n that_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o man_n for_o their_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o the_o gospel_n see_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o heathen_n say_v that_o all_o their_o trouble_n come_v upon_o they_o for_o the_o christian_a religion_n whereas_o god_n be_v offend_v for_o their_o idolatry_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o they_o prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o tertullian_n in_o apolog._n and_o cyprian_a contra_fw-la demetr_v augustin_n de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la and_o other_o abr._n scult_a ann._n ad_fw-la an._n 1525._o when_o neither_o prince_n will_v yield_v unto_o a_o treaty_n nor_o the_o bower_n will_v lay_v down_o arm_n luther_n write_v a_o four_o book_n exhort_v all_o man_n as_o for_o the_o quench_v a_o common_a fire_n to_o take_v arm_n against_o the_o rebel_n and_o kill_v they_o which_o have_v so_o base_o deny_v obedience_n unto_o their_o master_n and_o have_v begin_v to_o usurp_v other_o man_n possession_n and_o do_v cloak_n so_o vile_a villainy_n with_o the_o name_n of_o christianity_n nevertheless_o these_o villain_n grow_v into_o a_o huge_a multitude_n and_o divide_v themselves_o into_o three_o army_n one_o at_o biberac_n another_o at_o algovia_n and_o the_o three_o at_o the_o lake_n of_o constance_n they_o take_v some_o town_n as_o winsbergh_n and_o wirtsburgh_n they_o kill_v some_o noble_a man_n as_o the_o court_n of_o helfenstein_n most_o unworthy_o the_o prince_n that_o go_v against_o they_o be_v john_n elector_n of_o saxony_n and_o his_o uncle_n george_n philip_n of_o hassia_n henry_n duke_n of_o brunswik_n etc._n etc._n in_o some_o place_n when_o they_o be_v put_v to_o flight_n they_o run_v into_o the_o river_n there_o be_v kill_v of_o they_o in_o several_a place_n 50000._o some_o write_v 100000_o and_o the_o chief_a enticer_n weet_v take_v and_o behead_v xxii_o notwithstanding_o these_o broil_n it_o please_v god_n to_o spread_v the_o reformation_n progress_fw-la the_o reformation_n reformation_n the_o same_o year_n luther_n at_o that_o time_n do_v first_o administer_v the_o lord_n supper_n in_o the_o german_a language_n and_o do_v ordain_v a_o minister_n without_o the_o popish_a rite_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la do_v also_o forsake_v the_o latin_a language_n and_o the_o rite_n albert_n marquis_n of_o branbeburgh_n be_v entitle_v master_n of_o the_o teutonick_n order_n but_o that_o year_n have_v war_n with_o the_o king_n of_o pole_n for_o some_o town_n of_o prussia_n and_o see_v no_o aid_n from_o the_o emperor_n be_v content_a to_o agree_v upon_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v acknowledge_v the_o king_n as_o superior_a and_o possess_v prussia_n under_o the_o tittle_n of_o a_o dukedom_n and_o then_o he_o authorize_v the_o reform_a religion_n through_o out_o that_o province_n gustavus_n king_n of_o sweden_n send_v for_o all_o the_o prelate_n to_o come_v unto_o his_o palace_n and_o there_o without_o any_o noise_n give_v they_o in_o their_o option_n to_o continue_v in_o their_o place_n and_o profess_v the_o reform_a religion_n or_o then_o to_o leave_v the_o country_n some_o give_v he_o their_o oath_n of_o obedience_n and_o other_o go_v whether_o they_o please_v william_n landsgrave_n of_o hassia_n establish_v the_o reform_a religion_n within_o his_o jurisdiction_n so_o it_o be_v establish_v at_o gorlik_n &_o lauba_n in_o lusatia_n in_o rhetia_n alone_o be_v reckon_v 41._o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o do_v philip_n count_n of_o hanove_n christopher_n and_o antony_n count_v of_o altenburgh_n &_o delmenhorst_n conrade_n of_o tecklenburgh_n &_o linga_n and_o baltasar_n lord_n of_o esens_n &_o witmund_n necessary_a uniformity_n in_o circumstantial_o be_v not_o necessary_a all_o within_o their_o territory_n and_o so_o do_v many_o other_o free_a town_n in_o the_o year_n precede_v a_o motion_n be_v make_v to_o assemble_v a_o synod_n of_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n for_o establish_v a_o uniformity_n in_o rite_n or_o circumstantial_a ceremony_n luther_n oppose_v it_o assert_v that_o it_o be_v not_o expedient_a albeit_o it_o be_v propound_v in_o a_o good_a zeal_n yet_o it_o have_v no_o precedent_n for_o even_o in_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostl_v they_o do_v treat_v more_o of_o work_n and_o tradition_n than_o of_o faith_n and_o there_o they_o have_v dispute_v for_o the_o most_o part_n concern_v opinion_n &_o question_n yet_o he_o be_v no_o less_o suspicious_a of_o the_o name_n of_o a_o council_n as_o of_o the_o name_n
freewill_n for_o if_o one_o church_n will_v not_o follow_v willing_o the_o example_n of_o another_o in_o these_o circumstantial_a thing_n why_o be_v a_o council_n needful_a to_o compel_v man_n by_o decree_n which_o may_v turn_v to_o law_n &_o snare_n of_o man_n conscience_n therefore_o let_v one_o follow_v another_o free_o or_o use_v their_o own_o fashion_n so_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v mantain_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o word_n howbeit_o there_o be_v a_o variety_n in_o other_o external_a thing_n schultet_fw-la annal._n ad_fw-la ann._n 1524._o ex_fw-la luth._o tom_n 2._o epist_n xxiii_o in_o the_o year_n 1526._o solyman_n the_o turk_n enter_v into_o hungary_n 1526._o 1526._o there_o the_o king_n lewes_n can_v have_v no_o help_n from_o christian_n yet_o the_o bb_n stir_v he_o to_o a_o battle_n and_o as_o he_o have_v sell_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o slave_n unto_o they_o in_o kill_v spain_n the_o authority_n of_o th●_n pope_n be_v deny_v in_o spain_n the_o professor_n of_o reformation_n he_o be_v kill_v jo._n sleidan_n the_o same_o year_n the_o emp._n be_v provoke_v by_o that_o league_n make_v by_o pope_n clemens_n discharge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n through_o all_o spain_n leave_v a_o example_n unto_o posterity_n that_o church-disciplin_n may_v be_v maintain_v without_o papal_a authority_n but_o as_o good_a seed_n be_v sow_o out_o of_o season_n so_o good_a work_n without_o good_a motive_n and_o principle_n have_v no_o continuance_n in_o juny_n be_v a_o diet_n at_o spira_n a_o diet_n in_o spira_n spira_n letter_n be_v bring_v from_o the_o emperor_n date_v at_o spala_n march_v 23._o the_o sum_n be_v for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o intend_v to_o go_v short_o unto_o rome_n to_o be_v crown_v and_o to_o talk_v with_o the_o highpriest_n concern_v a_o general_a council_n and_o no_o good_a can_v be_v do_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o these_o assembly_n therefore_o they_o shall_v observe_v the_o decree_n at_o worm_n and_o take_v his_o absence_n in_o good_a part_n hope_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o general_a council_n short_o the_o prince_n and_o town_n profess_v the_o reformation_n say_v they_o be_v desirous_a in_o all_o thing_n to_o please_v the_o emperor_n but_o if_o he_o be_v right_o inform_v of_o the_o condition_n of_o germany_n and_o how_o the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n increase_v daily_a he_o will_v not_o urge_v the_o decree_n of_o worm_n as_o for_o a_o general_n council_n there_o be_v no_o appearance_n of_o it_o see_v there_o be_v friendship_n betwixt_o he_o and_o the_o pope_n when_o the_o letter_n be_v write_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o date_n but_o now_o it_o be_v otherwise_o see_v the_o pope_n have_v levy_v a_o army_n against_o he_o wherefore_o they_o think_v best_a to_o send_v orator_n unto_o the_o emperor_n to_o inform_v he_o more_o full_o and_o how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o delay_v the_o business_n of_o religion_n and_o no_o less_o perilous_a to_o execute_v the_o decree_n of_o worm_n and_o to_o entreat_v he_o to_o call_v a_o council_n in_o germany_n and_o come_v unto_o it_o or_o at_o least_o to_o permit_v it_o as_o it_o be_v determine_v at_o noribergh_n but_o be_v contromand_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o harm_n of_o germany_n or_o if_o he_o will_v not_o allow_v a_o nationall_n council_n of_o germany_n to_o entreat_v he_o to_o delay_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o decree_n until_o the_o general_n council_n for_o otherwise_o the_o malady_n will_v wax_v worse_o and_o to_o represent_v that_o so_o long_o as_o every_o man_n be_v solicitous_a of_o his_o own_o estate_n in_o time_n of_o this_o variance_n it_o will_v be_v difficile_a to_o collect_v any_o money_n for_o any_o other_o use_n then_o another_o supplication_n be_v present_v unto_o the_o diet_n complain_v of_o the_o multitude_n idleness_n and_o opposition_n of_o beg_a friar_n of_o the_o multitude_n &_o abuse_n of_o holy_a day_n and_o petition_v to_o leave_v unto_o every_o man_n the_o choice_n of_o his_o meat_n until_o the_o general_a council_n at_o this_o time_n the_o duke_n of_o saxon_n and_o the_o landgrave_n of_o hass_n enter_v into_o conference_n with_o the_o commissioner_n of_o strawsburgh_n that_o see_v they_o know_v not_o what_o the_o bb_n and_o their_o adherent_n do_v intend_v all_o of_o tkem_fw-mi shall_v concur_v unto_o mutual_a aid_n if_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o danger_n for_o religion_n but_o the_o bb_n will_v not_o proceed_v here_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o crave_v to_o delay_v these_o because_o of_o the_o present_a variance_n betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o caesar_n great_a strife_n arise_v among_o they_o wherefore_o the_o duke_n of_o saxon_n and_o the_o landgrave_n say_v they_o will_v stay_v no_o long_o ferdinand_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o trevers_n consider_v how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v if_o nothing_o be_v do_v and_o all_o depart_n with_o grudge_n and_o malice_n do_v propound_v for_o appease_v such_o heart_n burn_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o resolve_v upon_o a_o lawful_a council_n either_o general_n or_o nationall_n within_o a_o year_n at_o farre_v and_o to_o entreat_v the_o emperor_n to_o repair_v short_o into_o germany_n in_o consideration_n of_o their_o present_a condition_n as_o concern_v the_o decree_n at_o worm_n they_o be_v content_a that_o all_o shall_v demean_v themselves_o in_o their_o province_n until_o a_o council_n so_o as_o they_o will_v be_v answerable_a unto_o god_n and_o caesar_n and_o it_o be_v decree_v so_o after_o this_o diet_n certain_a prince_n consult_v at_o esling_n to_o write_v speedy_o unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o show_v that_o they_o have_v decree_v to_o send_v orator_n unto_o he_o but_o the_o king_n of_o france_n will_v not_o grant_v they_o passage_n except_o for_o four_o month_n whereof_o one_o be_v pass_v therefore_o they_o have_v determine_v to_o defer_v their_o orator_n until_o their_o next_o assembly_n which_o they_o have_v appoint_v to_o be_v at_o regensburgh_n the_o first_o day_n of_o aprile_a next_o to_o treat_v of_o the_o turkish_a war_n trust_v that_o by_o time_n they_o shall_v have_v better_a occasion_n to_o send_v or_o they_o shall_v give_v he_o intelligence_n another_o way_n and_o entreat_v he_o to_o repair_v into_o germany_n as_o short_o etc._n etc._n slcidan_n lib._n 6._o xxiv_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 1527._o otto_n paccius_n counsellor_n of_o george_n duke_n of_o saxony_n inform_v the_o duke_n elector_n and_o the_o landgrave_n that_o ferdinand_n than_o king_n of_o bohem_n and_o hungary_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n have_v make_v a_o league_n with_o other_o also_o to_o destroy_v they_o and_o luther_n religion_n wherefore_o these_o prepare_v themselves_o for_o defence_n trouble_n be_v like_a to_o ensue_v but_o when_o these_o which_o be_v say_v to_o have_v make_v that_o league_n do_v purge_v themselves_o the_o fear_n be_v appease_v paccius_n be_v banish_v but_o the_o diet_n at_o regensburgh_n be_v discharge_v ibid._n leonard_n cesar_n a_o preacher_n be_v burn_v at_o the_o command_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o passaw_n in_o bavier_n for_o hold_v these_o article_n faith_n only_o justifi_v there_o be_v but_o two_o sacrament_n baptism_n &_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o mass_n be_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n nor_o be_v profitable_a unto_o the_o live_n nor_o dead_a confession_n of_o all_o sin_n be_v not_o command_v only_o christ_n have_v satisfy_v for_o sin_n a_o vow_n of_o chastity_n bind_v not_o the_o scripture_n speak_v not_o of_o purgatory_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n of_o day_n in_o divine_a thing_n be_v no_o freewill_n he_o will_v have_v declare_v himself_o in_o these_o article_n when_o he_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o court_n but_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v he_o eccius_n be_v his_o accuser_n and_o speak_v always_o in_o latin_a but_o leonard_n speak_v in_o the_o common_a language_n he_o will_v have_v all_o the_o company_n to_o understand_v he_o osiand_n centu_fw-la 16._o lib_fw-la 2._o c._n 5._o this_o year_n be_v the_o first_o visitation_n of_o the_o church_n berna_n a_o public_a dispute_n at_o berna_n in_o saxony_n on_o the_o 17._o day_n of_o december_n the_o senate_n of_o berne_n make_v public_a intimation_n of_o a_o dispute_n in_o the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n to_o begin_v january_n 7._o they_o invite_v the_o bb_n of_o constance_n bafile_v sedun_n and_o lausan_n to_o come_v and_o bring_v their_o divine_n or_o else_o they_o tell_v they_o they_o will_v confiscate_v all_o their_o good_n within_o their_o territory_n they_o show_v that_o only_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n shall_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o dispute_n and_o they_o engage_v themselves_o for_o safety_n unto_o all_o who_o shall_v come_v two_o minister_n be_v name_v to_o sustain_v these_o article_n the_o true_a church_n who_o head_n be_v christ_n only_o l_v beget_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n continue_v in_o it_o and_o hear_v not_o the_o
be_v a_o different_a lection_n he_o answer_v he_o can_v not_o change_v a_o word_n contrary_n unto_o all_o the_o greek_a copy_n for_o so_o he_o may_v have_v be_v condemn_v as_o a_o falsifier_n the_o bishop_n in_o great_a wrath_n send_v unto_o the_o divine_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o robert_n steven_n have_v deceive_v his_o expectation_n and_o he_o will_v no_o more_o assist_v he_o let_v they_o therefore_o advise_v what_o they_o will_v do_v with_o he_o for_o that_o edition_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n gallandius_n the_o messenger_n show_v his_o order_n unto_o robert_n and_o advise_v he_o to_o preveen_v another_o storm_n robert_n show_v some_o of_o the_o divine_n what_o he_o have_v do_v and_o crave_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o faculty_n before_o he_o vent_v the_o book_n they_o command_v he_o to_o bring_v the_o old_a copy_n that_o he_o have_v follow_v he_o answer_v they_o be_v in_o the_o king_n bibliothek_v he_o can_v not_o have_v they_o when_o he_o will_v but_o he_o have_v confer_v they_o diligent_o and_o save_v they_o a_o labour_n two_o be_v appoint_v to_o examine_v the_o book_n he_o wait_v upon_o these_o and_o can_v have_v no_o answer_n at_o last_o the_o faculty_n conveene_n some_o say_v the_o man_n have_v be_v troublesome_a unto_o they_o and_o now_o if_o they_o shall_v approve_v any_o thing_n that_o he_o do_v it_o will_v be_v a_o commendation_n of_o the_o man_n and_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o their_o fault_n other_o do_v cold_o commend_v the_o work_n and_o they_o be_v command_v by_o the_o great_a part_n either_o to_o be_v silent_a or_o go_v out_o of_o the_o house_n so_o they_o dissolve_v without_o any_o determination_n he_o ask_v the_o dean_n what_o have_v you_o conclude_v what_o shall_v i_o report_v unto_o the_o king_n he_o answer_v the_o master_n be_v not_o of_o the_o opinion_n that_o the_o book_n be_v vent_v why_o say_v robert_n the_o dean_n answer_v because_o of_o the_o marginal_a annotation_n there_o be_v no_o annotation_n say_v he_o but_o only_o diverse_a reading_n he_o crave_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o faculty_n in_o writ_n which_o he_o may_v show_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o when_o this_o be_v deny_v he_o tell_v the_o dean_n he_o will_v relate_v what_o answer_n be_v give_v he_o the_o next_o day_n he_o present_v a_o copy_n as_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o his_o work_n unto_o the_o king_n before_o the_o cardinal_n and_o peer_n and_o show_v what_o he_o have_v do_v with_o the_o faculty_n and_o what_o their_o answer_n be_v if_o we_o will_v believe_v his_o testimony_n all_o without_o exception_n do_v laugh_v and_o say_v the_o man_n impudence_n ignorance_n temerity_n and_o foolishness_n be_v intolerable_a so_o he_o have_v liberty_n to_o sell_v the_o book_n but_o to_o appease_v the_o faculty_n he_o promise_v to_o print_v no_o more_o without_o their_o advice_n then_o for_o fear_n of_o their_o implacable_a malice_n he_o go_v without_o their_o reach_n and_o dweltin_n another_o place_n where_o he_o print_v his_o answer_n unto_o their_o censure_n of_o which_o i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o taste_n art_n 11._o on_o deut_n 9_o 4._o the_o summary_n on_o the_o margin_n be_v god_n give_v not_o unto_o man_n any_o thing_n for_o their_o righteousness_n or_o equity_n of_o their_o heart_n the_o censure_n this_o proposition_n be_v heretical_a his_o answer_n let_v the_o unpartial_a reader_n judge_v how_o windy_a be_v these_o belly_n that_o so_o oft_o blow_v forth_o so_o many_o heresy_n the_o question_n be_v whether_o man_n do_v purchase_v god_n favour_n so_o that_o he_o render_v any_o thing_n for_o their_o deserve_n the_o scripture_n teach_v plain_o that_o a_o reward_n be_v render_v unto_o the_o good_a work_n of_o believer_n but_o we_o must_v first_o see_v whether_o man_n do_v purchase_v grace_n for_o their_o work_n or_o if_o god_n embrace_v they_o free_o and_o then_o their_o work_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v by_o they_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o spirit_n do_v vouchsave_v they_o the_o reward_n but_o all_o man_n be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n eph._n 2._o 3._o all_o man_n come_v short_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n none_o do_v good_a rom._n 3._o 12_o all_o be_v enemy_n of_o god_n rom._n 5._o 10_o of_o ourselves_o we_o have_v no_o good_a thought_n 2._o cor._n 3._o 5_o all_o the_o device_n of_o man_n heart_n be_v ill_a from_o his_o childhood_n gen._n 6._o 5._o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o god_n who_o be_v debtor_n unto_o none_o give_v gracious_o unto_o man_n whatever_o good_a they_o have_v remember_v also_o that_o of_o paul_n who_o have_v give_v unto_o he_o first_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v render_v unto_o he_o rom._n 11._o 35._o the_o annotation_n which_o be_v condemn_v be_v on_o the_o text_n of_o moses_n where_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o give_v not_o the_o land_n unto_o the_o people_n for_o their_o righteousness_n or_o uprightness_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o far_o less_o can_v man_n attain_v more_o excellent_a benefit_n for_o his_o merit_n for_o he_o who_o deserve_v not_o a_o little_a possession_n on_o earth_n how_o shall_v he_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n final_o he_o who_o think_v it_o a_o heresy_n god_n bestow_v nothing_o on_o man_n for_o their_o righteousness_n deni_v and_o abolish_v the_o gracious_a bountifulness_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n art_n v._o on_o ps_n 62._o 10._o annotation_n we_o must_v run_v unto_o god_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o man_n be_v mere_a vanity_n the_o censure_n this_o annotation_n be_v heretical_a and_o impious_a answer_n where_o the_o opposition_n be_v betwixt_o the_o defence_n of_o god_n and_o of_o man_n certain_o these_o be_v call_v of_o man_n which_o god_n do_v not_o bless_v david_n go_v against_o goliath_n with_o a_o sling_n and_o stone_n yet_o he_o say_v thou_o come_v against_o i_o with_o a_o spear_n and_o weapon_n and_o a_o buckler_n but_o i_o in_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n 1._o sam._n 15._o 45_o and_o there_o be_v no_o king_n save_v by_o the_o multitude_n of_o a_o host_n a_o mighty_a man_n be_v not_o deliver_v by_o much_o strength_n a_o horse_n be_v a_o vain_a thing_n for_o safety_n ps_n 33._o 16_o and_o there_o be_v no_o safety_n by_o the_o child_n of_o man_n ps_n 146._o 3._o and_o yet_o more_o clear_o vain_a be_v the_o help_n of_o man_n ps_n 60._o 13_o certain_o this_o sentence_n be_v heretical_a in_o their_o judgement_n if_o they_o condemn_v i_o for_o david_n by_o the_o name_n of_o help_n understande_v all_o defence_n wherein_o he_o find_v mere_a vanity_n and_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o god_n be_v delight_v with_o this_o form_n of_o speak_v it_o be_v repeat_v in_o another_o psalm_n 108._o 13._o neither_o mean_v he_o otherwise_o when_o he_o say_v it_o be_v vain_a to_o rise_v early_o but_o without_o god_n nothing_o be_v prosperour_n ps_n 127._o 2._o in_o the_o same_o sense_n it_o be_v say_v our_o eye_n yet_o have_v fail_v for_o our_o vain_a help_n lame_a 4._o 17._o art_n vi_o on_o 2._o sam._n 7._o 7._o god_n will_v have_v nothing_o to_o be_v do_v without_o his_o word_n the_o censure_n this_o proposition_n be_v heretical_a ans_fw-fr when_o paul_n teach_v whatsoever_o be_v without_o faith_n be_v sin_n rom._n 14._o 23_o by_o the_o name_n of_o faith_n he_o mean_v certainty_n which_o be_v not_o ground_v but_o on_o god_n word_n therefore_o to_o undertake_v any_o thing_n without_o god_n command_n be_v not_o more_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n than_o if_o a_o servant_n will_v attempt_v this_o or_o that_o rash_o in_o his_o master_n service_n and_o there_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n wherein_o that_o rule_n hold_v obedience_n be_v better_a they_o sacrifice_n 1_o sa._n 15._o 22._o therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v by_o jeremy_n when_o i_o bring_v your_o father_n from_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n i_o give_v no_o command_n concern_v sacrifice_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v obey_v my_o voice_n hither_o belong_v that_o he_o forbid_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n without_o salt_n levi._n 2._o 13_o and_o to_o lay_v strange_a fire_n upon_o his_o altar_n leu._n 101._o and_o what_o account_v he_o make_v of_o worship_n do_v without_o his_o word_n we_o may_v learn_v from_o the_o prophet_n say_v who_o require_v that_o at_o your_o hand_n esa_n 1._o 12._o and_o there_o be_v no_o word_n more_o frequent_a what_o i_o command_v thou_o that_o only_o shall_v thou_o do_v and_o every_o one_o shall_v not_o do_v what_o be_v good_a in_o his_o eye_n deut._n 12._o 8._o 32._o and_o elsewhere_o and_o christ_n speak_v not_o otherwise_o in_o vain_a they_o worship_v i_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o precept_n of_o man_n when_o paul_n call_v supersition_n will-worship_n by_o this_o word_n he_o despise_v whatsoever_o man_n do_v of_o themselves_o thrust_v upon_o god_n col._n 2._o 23._o see_v such_o sobriety_n be_v heretical_a
follow_v the_o king_n repli_v martin_n luther_n and_o john_n caluin_n profess_v to_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o forty_o article_n and_o of_o these_o 40._o they_o differ_v between_o themselves_o in_o one_o only_a wherefore_o both_o party_n shall_v bend_v their_o mind_n first_o against_o the_o pope_n that_o when_o he_o be_v overcome_v they_o may_v serious_o consider_v confer_v and_o come_v to_o agreement_n in_o that_o article_n and_o so_o at_o last_o the_o church_n may_v enjoy_v the_o primitive_a purity_n xlvi_o in_o the_o end_n of_o august_n an._n 1561._o according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o 1561._o the_o conference_n at_o possiac_n 1561._o that_o great_a counsel_n begin_v the_o public_a conference_n in_o possiac_n the_o prelate_n bring_v their_o clergy_n from_o all_o part_n of_o france_n to_o dispute_v the_o article_n in_o controversy_n and_o a_o safe_a conduct_n be_v grant_v unto_o these_o for_o the_o reformation_n there_o be_v the_o king_n and_o his_o mother_n and_o his_o brother_n the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n and_o his_o sister_n margarit_n and_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o his_o queen_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o condee_n with_o other_o peer_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o turnon_n with_o arch_a bishop_n and_o bishop_n about_o 50._o beside_o many_o deputy_n from_o other_o prelate_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o popish_a doctor_n from_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v send_v peter_n martyr_n then_o minister_n at_o zurik_n theodore_n beza_n minister_n at_o geneve_n augustin_n marlorat_n mi._n at_o rouen_n nic._n gelasius_n jo._n merlin_n and_o other_o about_o twenty_o the_o minister_n begin_v with_o a_o supplication_n unto_o the_o king_n that_o the_o disputation_n may_v have_v place_n hort_o and_o those_o condition_n be_v observe_v the_o prelate_n sit_v not_o as_o judge_n but_o the_o king_n and_o his_o counsellor_n by_o his_o authority_n shall_v rule_v and_o order_v the_o conference_n 2._o that_o the_o controversy_n be_v examine_v according_a to_o god_n word_n only_o 3._o what_o ever_o shall_v be_v determine_v it_o shall_v be_v write_v by_o the_o king_n notary_n in_o his_o public_a commentary_n after_o some_o day_n the_o queen_n promise_v in_o the_o king_n name_n that_o these_o shall_v be_v perform_v the_o prelate_n complain_v and_o say_v such_o liberty_n to_o dispute_n shall_v not_o be_v grant_v unto_o such_o who_o be_v already_o condemn_v thus_o the_o dispute_n be_v differ_v some_o day_n the_o first_o session_n begin_v september_n 9_o the_o king_n in_o few_o word_n do_v show_v his_o grief_n for_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o exhort_v they_o to_o declare_v what_o thing_n have_v need_v of_o reformation_n and_o he_o promise_v to_o maintain_v their_o liberty_n with_o no_o less_o care_n than_o his_o ancestor_n have_v do_v the_o chancellor_n do_v more_o full_o show_v that_o the_o king_n will_v be_v according_a to_o the_o endeavour_n of_o his_o ancestor_n to_o remove_v controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o albeit_o their_o aim_n be_v such_o yet_o the_o success_n be_v not_o as_o they_o wish_v but_o rather_o more_o trouble_v wax_v wherefore_o he_o wish_v now_o that_o all_o man_n will_v diligent_o apply_v themselves_o to_o settle_v these_o trouble_n in_o time_n for_o this_o end_n he_o have_v call_v they_o and_o in_o his_o royal_a person_n do_v accompany_v they_o that_o all_o thing_n both_o of_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n may_v be_v reform_v especial_o by_o this_o public_a conference_n and_o to_o look_v for_o remedy_n from_o a_o general_a council_n it_o be_v as_o vain_a as_o if_o a_o sick_a man_n have_v sufficient_a help_n at_o home_n will_v travel_v into_o the_o indies_n for_o it_o we_o may_v provide_v better_o for_o ourselves_o than_o other_o of_o foreign_a country_n can_v do_v they_o know_v not_o so_o well_o our_o cause_n nor_o condition_n of_o our_o people_n and_o great_a profit_n have_v often_o come_v by_o national_a counsel_n then_o by_o the_o general_a wherefore_o let_v the_o disputant_n on_o both_o side_n joint_o aim_v at_o concord_n in_o the_o truth_n let_v not_o the_o great_a party_n despise_v the_o lesser_a neither_o let_v any_o man_n use_v curiosity_n but_o judge_n of_o every_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o albeit_o the_o wish_a fruit_n do_v not_o follow_v yet_o this_o good_a shall_v ensue_v that_o all_o pretext_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o those_o who_o complain_v that_o they_o be_v condemn_v unheard_a etc._n etc._n osiand_n lib._n cit_fw-la c._n 46._o ex_fw-la beuther_n the_o cardinal_n turnon_n in_o name_n of_o the_o prelate_n give_v thanks_o unto_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n and_o prince_n that_o it_o have_v please_v they_o to_o call_v this_o conference_n and_o to_o honour_v it_o with_o their_o presence_n but_o at_o that_o time_n he_o be_v not_o ready_a to_o speak_v of_o the_o matter_n propound_v nor_o will_v speak_v of_o it_o until_o first_o he_o be_v advise_v with_o his_o colleague_n the_o cardinal_n archbishop_n and_o other_o prelate_n and_o see_v the_o chancellor_n have_v at_o royal_a command_n deliver_v such_o word_n he_o crave_v a_o copy_n in_o writ_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v consider_v of_o they_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n crave_v the_o same_o the_o french_a commentar_n lib._n 3._o then_o the_o minister_n be_v bid_v to_o speak_v theodore_n beza_n fall_v down_o on_o his_o kny_n and_o pray_v public_o then_o after_o the_o preface_n for_o attention_n he_o speak_v general_o of_o religion_n and_o name_v some_o particulares_fw-la wherein_o both_o party_n agree_v then_o the_o difference_n 1._o in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n which_o we_o say_v he_o in_o name_n of_o the_o minister_n ascribe_v whole_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n 2._o we_o differ_v not_o in_o the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n but_o in_o the_o original_n from_o whence_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v they_o and_o what_o be_v good_a work_n and_o to_o what_o use_n be_v they_o do_v 3._o of_o the_o authority_n and_o perfection_n of_o god_n word_n 4._o of_o the_o nature_n and_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o of_o transubstantiation_n and_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n in_o the_o end_n he_o fall_v on_o his_o knee_n again_o before_o the_o king_n and_o present_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o french_a church_n have_v pen_v an._n 1555_o and_o have_v present_v unto_o king_n francis_n in_o this_o oration_n when_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n he_o say_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o distance_n of_o place_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o heaven_n be_v above_o the_o earth_n at_o these_o word_n the_o prelate_n be_v so_o commove_v that_o they_o begin_v a-disturbance_n and_o be_v silence_v until_o he_o have_v come_v to_o a_o end_n then_o turnon_n with_o indignation_n say_v for_o reverence_v unto_o the_o king_n command_v they_o have_v consent_v that_o those_o new-evangelist_n shall_v speak_v but_o not_o without_o sting_n of_o conscience_n for_o it_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o they_o will_v vent_v thing_n unworthy_a of_o the_o king_n most_o christian_a ear_n and_o scandalous_a unto_o many_o therefore_o the_o prelate_n beseech_v the_o king_n that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o that_o fellow_n and_o suspend_v his_o judgement_n until_o the_o prelate_n shall_v give_v a_o clear_a demonstration_n of_o the_o truth_n if_o he_o will_v appoint_v the_o time_n and_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v for_o reverence_n unto_o his_o majesty_n they_o will_v not_o have_v hear_v that_o man_n blasphemy_n but_o have_v go_v away_o and_o they_o beseech_v the_o king_n to_o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o forefather_n the_o which_o he_o pray_v the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n to_o grant_v lib._n cit_fw-la the_o queen_n be_v desirous_a to_o appease_v the_o prelate_n say_v no_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o king_n and_o his_o councillor_n and_o parliament_n of_o paris_n neither_o do_v they_o intend_v a_o change_n of_o religion_n but_o to_o abolish_v dissension_n in_o the_o next_o session_n september_n 17._o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n speak_v in_o name_n of_o the_o prelate_n he_o make_v choice_n of_o two_o article_n of_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o mass_n of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v the_o church_n consist_v not_o of_o the_o elect_a only_o because_o in_o the_o lord_n barn_n chaff_n be_v mix_v with_o the_o wheat_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v but_o if_o some_o part_n do_v err_v the_o body_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o a_o corrupt_a member_n if_o any_o evil_a shall_v creepin_a we_o shall_v have_v recourse_n unto_o antiquity_n and_o the_o mother_n church_n among_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n always_o have_v have_v the_o first_o place_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v amiss_o in_o any_o particular_a church_n against_o the_o ignorance_n of_o
he_o think_v to_o set_v they_o and_o the_o german_n by_o the_o ear_n and_o if_o they_o consent_v he_o hope_v to_o triumph_v over_o they_o beza_n answer_v he_o and_o his_o colleague_n be_v come_v to_o defend_v the_o confession_n of_o their_o own_o church_n and_o to_o this_o end_n shall_v the_o conference_n be_v direct_v the_o cardinal_n with_o vehemency_n do_v press_v that_o point_n the_o minister_n fear_v that_o the_o conference_n may_v be_v break_v off_o and_o the_o blame_n be_v lay_v on_o they_o crave_v leave_n to_o consider_v the_o confession_n forwhich_v the_o prelate_n seem_v absolute_o to_o proclaim_v the_o cardinal_n name_v one_o article_n we_o confess_v that_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v true_o real_o and_o sacramenta_o in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v so_o give_v and_o receive_v by_o they_o who_o communicate_v he_o allege_v also_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o saxon_a minister_n concern_v it_o so_o the_o conference_n be_v dismiss_v the_o next_o day_n beza_n be_v bid_v to_o speak_v and_o he_o speak_v to_o this_o purpose_n we_o have_v declare_v our_o mind_n concern_v the_o article_n propound_v unto_o we_o namely_o of_o the_o church_n we_o trust_v none_o have_v occasion_n to_o complain_v of_o we_o and_o these_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v handle_v shall_v have_v be_v approve_v or_o disprove_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o we_o be_v demand_v by_o what_o authority_n we_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o think_v to_o make_v our_o cause_n odious_a by_o this_o demand_n this_o question_v seem_v superfluous_a see_v we_o be_v call_v hither_o not_o to_o give_v account_n of_o our_o call_n but_o to_o confer_v of_o our_o doctrine_n otherwise_o it_o may_v seem_v we_o be_v bring_v into_o judgement_n or_o if_o it_o be_v do_v only_o for_o disputation_n consider_v that_o when_o two_o party_n be_v bring_v into_o conference_n if_o the_o one_o demand_n why_o do_v you_o this_o and_o the_o other_o mutual_o ask_v the_o same_o this_o be_v but_o ca●illation_n and_o dissension_n but_o omit_v the_o prelate_n of_o this_o realm_n who_o we_o will_v not_o offend_v let_v we_o suppose_v a_o certain_a bishop_n be_v here_o demand_v we_o by_o what_o authority_n we_o do_v preach_v and_o we_o like_o wise_a will_v demand_v he_o by_o what_o authority_n he_o be_v a_o bishop_n that_o be_v whether_o he_o be_v elect_v by_o the_o seniors_n of_o his_o church_n whether_o the_o people_n have_v desire_v to_o have_v he_o and_o whether_o his_o life_n manner_n and_o doctrine_n have_v be_v examine_v and_o he_o will_v answer_v that_o he_o be_v so_o and_o so_o call_v but_o the_o contrary_n be_v manifest_o know_v we_o call_v the_o conscience_n of_o those_o who_o hear_v we_o and_o know_v the_o matter_n to_o bear_v witness_n if_o he_o say_v we_o be_v not_o minister_n because_o we_o have_v not_o imposition_n of_o hand_n we_o may_v answer_v thou_o have_v but_o one_o thing_n the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o if_o the_o want_n of_o that_o as_o thou_o think_v make_v we_o to_o be_v no_o minister_n the_o want_n of_o the_o other_o two_o which_o be_v more_o principal_a make_v thou_o to_o be_v no_o bishop_n we_o speak_v also_o another_o thing_n albeit_o beyond_o our_o purpose_n and_o against_o our_o will_n but_o that_o this_o assembly_n may_v see_v how_o this_o question_n be_v full_a of_o envy_n if_o one_o be_v demand_v that_o bishop_n from_o who_o have_v he_o receive_v imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o for_o how_o much_o he_o have_v buy_v his_o title_n he_o will_v answer_v i_o have_v imposition_n of_o hand_n from_o bishop_n and_o i_o buy_v not_o imposition_n of_o hand_n but_o only_o for_o my_o place_n i_o give_v two_o or_o three_o 1000_o croun_n which_o be_v as_o if_o one_o will_v say_v i_o have_v not_o buy_v the_o bread_n but_o i_o buy_v the_o wheat_n i_o say_v if_o this_o contest_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o counsel_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v make_v many_o bishop_n and_o curate_n ashamed_a and_o we_o speak_v thus_o not_o of_o intention_n to_o bring_v quid_fw-la pro_fw-la quo_fw-la but_o that_o you_o may_v see_v how_o unwilling_o we_o touch_v the_o matter_n and_o will_v have_v other_o thing_n handle_v lest_o the_o work_n of_o peace_n be_v hinder_v we_o will_v have_v speak_v of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n because_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n promise_v to_o satisfy_v we_o in_o this_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v a_o principal_a one_o by_o the_o proper_a word_n of_o the_o father_n this_o we_o do_v eager_o desire_v and_o to_o satisfy_v this_o desire_n one_o article_n be_v cull_v from_o so_o many_o and_o necessary_a article_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o we_o either_o subscribe_v unto_o this_o or_o we_o will_v proceed_v no_o further_o if_o they_o be_v our_o judge_n and_o sit_v upon_o out_o life_n they_o will_v not_o say_v subscribe_v but_o we_o condemn_v you_o their_o office_n lead_v they_o into_o another_o manner_n of_o speech_n and_o they_o shall_v show_v if_o there_o be_v any_o error_n in_o our_o doctrine_n we_o be_v here_o before_o you_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o our_o doctrine_n unto_o god_n and_o unto_o all_o the_o world_n and_o to_o obey_v god_n and_o the_o king_n and_o you_o o_o queen_n so_o far_o as_o lie_v in_o we_o to_o the_o pacisy_v of_o those_o trouble_n about_o religion_n if_o you_o have_v to_o do_v with_o we_o only_o who_o now_o be_v here_o you_o may_v easy_o have_v your_o will_n but_o we_o represent_v a_o great_a number_n not_o only_o of_o this_o kingdom_n but_o in_o helvetia_n poland_n and_o other_o part_n who_o think_v long_o to_o hear_v whether_o this_o conference_n will_v turn_v but_o when_o they_o shall_v understand_v that_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o free_a conference_n the_o ten_o part_n of_o a_o article_n be_v exhibit_v unto_o we_o with_o these_o word_n either_o subscribe_v or_o no_o more_o albeit_o we_o will_v subscribe_v what_o be_v you_o the_o better_a other_o will_v know_v whether_o we_o have_v subscribe_v by_o force_n of_o argument_n or_o by_o constraint_n wherefore_o o_o queen_n we_o most_o humble_o beseech_v that_o so_o good_a and_o profitable_a a_o work_n be_v not_o break_v off_o and_o that_o you_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o grant_v such_o man_n which_o will_v not_o disdain_v to_o dispute_v sober_o nevertheless_o lest_o they_o say_v we_o have_v not_o a_o answer_n we_o receive_v all_o those_o passage_n which_o espencaeus_fw-la bring_v out_o of_o caluine_n but_o in_o that_o bit_n of_o a_o article_n out_o of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n many_o thing_n be_v to_o he_o consider_v 1._o the_o whole_a confession_n shall_v have_v be_v propound_v and_o not_o a_o line_n only_o 2_o we_o will_v know_v whether_o the_o cardinal_n propound_v it_o in_o his_o own_o name_n or_o of_o the_o prelate_n and_o then_o we_o will_v give_v thanks_o that_o they_o confess_v themselves_o overcome_v in_o the_o article_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o be_v just_o condemn_v by_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n 3._o if_o we_o shall_v subscribe_v they_o also_o shall_v subscribe_v that_o our_o church_n may_v understand_v what_o we_o have_v dene_fw-mi 4._o and_o if_o they_o will_v come_v to_o the_o whole_a confession_n of_o the_o german_n we_o trust_v that_o we_o be_v come_v unto_o a_o very_a good_a way_n of_o concord_n and_o unity_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v present_a in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o supper_n where_o he_o offer_v exhibit_n and_o true_o give_v unto_o we_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o eat_v the_o same_o body_n that_o be_v break_v for_o we_o but_o we_o eat_v spiritual_o and_o by_o faith_n that_o we_o become_v bone_n of_o his_o bone_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a it_o be_v hard_o to_o speak_v of_o so_o great_a a_o mystery_n in_o few_o word_n if_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o the_o cardinal_n let_v we_o consider_v and_o confer_v the_o scripture_n and_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n as_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o if_o it_o please_v you_o o_o queen_n to_o appoint_v a_o convenient_a form_n of_o collection_n and_o to_o appoint_v notary_n to_o receive_v our_o disputation_n we_o trust_v you_o understand_v that_o we_o come_v not_o to_o bring_v disorder_n and_o trouble_v but_o will_v dedicate_v ourselves_o unto_o god_n unto_o your_o majesty_n and_o the_o whole_a christian_a commonwealth_n and_o special_o unto_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o this_o realm_n the_o prelate_n be_v angry_a that_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o their_o vocation_n and_o lorraine_n say_v he_o have_v dishonour_v the_o queen_n into_o who_o hand_n the_o right_a and_o liberty_n of_o election_n be_v give_v so_o there_o be_v brag_v of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o prelate_n and_o
country_n etc._n etc._n he_o have_v go_v into_o embden_n and_o live_v there_o until_o the_o year_n 1557_o when_o he_o send_v the_o book_n with_o the_o dedication_n unto_o the_o state_n of_o holland_n that_o book_n be_v write_v in_o way_n of_o a_o dialogue_n between_o theophilus_n and_o lazarus_n of_o which_o i_o add_v a_o passage_n or_o two_o lazarus_n ask_v whereunto_o do_v the_o spirit_n lead_v the_o child_n of_o god_n thophilus_n answer_v unto_o the_o love_n of_o holiness_n and_o hatred_n of_o sin_n they_o be_v also_o say_v to_o have_v a_o delyting_n and_o rest_v heart_n upon_o the_o bountifulness_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n in_o all_o their_o necessity_n suffering_n and_o adversity_n for_o the_o power_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v of_o such_o virtue_n that_o it_o drive_v through_o all_o persecution_n and_o suffering_n unto_o the_o acknowledge_a and_o feel_n of_o the_o good_a will_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o with_o which_o will_v of_o god_n a_o christian_a believer_n be_v so_o well_o satisfy_v that_o he_o strive_v no_o way_n against_o it_o that_o the_o vile_a flesh_n of_o old_a adam_n shall_v suffer_v here_o and_o the_o wicked_a will_n shall_v not_o have_v always_o the_o dominion_n lazarus_n whence_o come_v that_o christian_a faith_n theophi_fw-la the_o knowledge_n of_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v god_n word_n but_o the_o lively_a feel_n and_o the_o delight_n which_o we_o get_v by_o hear_v read_v and_o thinking-upon_a that_o word_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o be_v pour_v and_o ingraft_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o believer_n paul_n teach_v this_o clear_o say_v i_o have_v plant_v apollo_n water_v but_o god_n have_v give_v the_o increase_n laza._n what_o be_v that_o faith_n theoph._n christian_n faith_n be_v a_o lively_a fast_a feeling_n and_o trust_n into_o the_o love_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n manifest_v unto_o we_o in_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n jesus_n christ_n laza._n i_o confess_v that_o i_o shall_v have_v my_o refuge_n unto_o the_o lord_n god_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v but_o i_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v so_o near_o we_o as_o he_o be_v with_o they_o in_o the_o ship_n theoph._n albeit_o god_n be_v not_o with_o we_o visible_o as_o he_o be_v with_o they_o nevertheless_o he_o be_v with_o we_o and_o in_o we_o by_o his_o divine_a power_n mercy_n and_o anoint_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n especial_o god_n be_v very_o near_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v grieve_v in_o heart_n the_o whole_a scripture_n declare_v in_o many_o place_n that_o the_o lord_n god_n hold_v we_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o counsel_n and_o keep_v we_o under_o the_o protection_n of_o his_o wing_n as_o a_o henn_n keep_v her_o chicken_n yea_o can_v a_o mother_n forget_v her_o child_n and_o not_o have_v pity_n on_o the_o son_n of_o her_o womb_n and_o albeit_o she_o shall_v forget_v he_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o forget_v you_o be_v not_o this_o a_o great_a comfort_n that_o god_n pity_v we_o as_o a_o mother_n do_v her_o child_n say_v not_o god_n unto_o his_o choose_a people_n he_o that_o touch_v you_o touch_v the_o apple_n of_o my_o i_fw-mi ......._o laza._n can_v we_o not_o deserve_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n how_o come_v that_o theoph._n it_o be_v because_o by_o nature_n we_o be_v altogether_o the_o child_n of_o wrath_n in_o ourselves_o we_o be_v unclean_a and_o beget_v of_o they_o that_o be_v unclean_a so_o that_o the_o prophet_n say_v true_o all_o our_o best_a work_n and_o righteousness_n be_v as_o a_o filthy_a cloth_n where_o of_o we_o may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o far_o less_o can_v we_o deserve_v any_o good_a for_o they_o if_o we_o can_v satisfy_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n by_o our_o good_a work_n than_o christ_n have_v die_v in_o vain_a and_o we_o be_v saviour_n of_o ourselves_o nor_o have_v we_o need_v to_o give_v god_n thanks_o for_o his_o mercy_n to_o ward_n we_o in_o christ_n the_o kingly_a prophet_n confess_v this_o when_o he_o say_v lord_n enter_v not_o into_o judgement_n with_o thy_o servant_n for_o in_o thy_o sight_n can_v none_o that_o live_v be_v justify_v and_o that_o we_o may_v do_v any_o thing_n acceptable_a unto_o god_n we_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o by_o the_o quicken_a water_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o translate_v we_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o deceive_a satan_n into_o the_o kingdom_n and_o government_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v not_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n purge_v from_o our_o inbred_a infidelity_n and_o graft_v into_o jesus_n christ_n as_o our_o true_a vine_n to_o bring_v forth_o by_o he_o the_o fruit_n of_o life_n we_o continue_v like_a to_o bad_a and_o unprofitable_a tree_n &c_n &c_n lavater_n minister_n of_o zurik_n show_v in_o a_o narration_n of_o the_o sacramentary_a strife_n that_o in_o the_o year_n 1524._o john_n rhodius_n and_o george_n sagan_n two_o learned_a man_n come_v to_o zurik_n confer_v with_o zuinglius_fw-la concern_v the_o sacrament_n and_o hear_v that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n with_o they_o in_o that_o question_n do_v thank_v god_n that_o they_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o contrary_a error_n and_o as_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o show_v the_o letter_n of_o honius_fw-la in_o which_o the_o word_n be_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o supper_n be_v expound_v signify_v which_o exposition_n zuinglius_fw-la do_v think_v most_o convenient_a that_o letter_n of_o honius_fw-la be_v large_a but_o there_o he_o say_v our_o lord_n jesus_n have_v many_o a_o time_n promise_v remission_n of_o sin_n unto_o believer_n and_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n he_o willing_a to_o confirm_v their_o heart_n add_v a_o pawn_n unto_o his_o promise_n that_o they_o may_v be_v in_o no_o more_o doubt_n as_o a_o bridegroom_n who_o will_v assure_v his_o bride_n that_o she_o doubt_v no_o more_o of_o his_o love_n gives_z her_z a_o ring_n say_v take_v this_o there_o give_v i_o thou_o myself_o she_o receive_v this_o ring_n believe_v that_o the_o bridegom_n be_v she_o turn_v away_o her_o heart_n from_o all_o other_o wooer_n and_o think_v how_o she_o may_v please_v that_o her_o spouse_n so_o be_v it_o with_o they_o who_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n as_o a_o pawn_n from_o their_o bridegroom_n etc._n etc._n at_o that_o time_n live_v john_n pistorius_n or_o baker_n of_o woerden_n he_o be_v a_o priest_n and_o have_v be_v instruct_v by_o io._n rhodius_n in_o s._n jerom_n school_n in_o utrecht_n because_o he_o marry_v a_o wife_n he_o be_v accuse_v by_o the_o inquisitor_n imprison_v and_o burn_v an._n 1525._o he_o be_v a_o learned_a man_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o book_n print_v late_o these_o few_o particulares_fw-la show_v how_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n begin_v to_o break_v out_o in_o the_o netherlands_o so_o that_o even_o before_o luther_n arise_v god_n have_v preserve_v from_o time_n to_o time_n ●ome_v few_o believer_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o gross_a darkness_n as_o also_o we_o may_v under_o stand_v how_o the_o truth_n be_v hate_v and_o persecute_v as_o i_o touch_v before_o in_o the_o life_n of_o charles_n v._o and_o more_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o book_n of_o martyr_n in_o the_o netherlands_o about_o the_o year_n 1540_o the_o persecution_n be_v hot_a and_o then_o many_o go_v from_o flanders_n and_o other_o province_n into_o england_n trigland_n in_o his_o church_n histo_fw-la against_o v●enbog_n par_fw-fr 3._o king_n henry_n accept_v they_o and_o place_v they_o in_o several_a town_n not_o only_o for_o envy_n against_o the_o pope_n but_o because_o many_o of_o they_o be_v wool-weaver_n and_o by_o they_o he_o bring_v that_o trade_n into_o his_o kingdom_n in_o the_o year_n 1550._o they_o obtain_v liberty_n under_o the_o king_n seal_n that_o the_o dutch_a and_o french_a church_n shall_v continue_v in_o their_o church-discipline_n and_o order_n as_o they_o be_v then_o begin_v though_o not_o conform_v unto_o the_o discipline_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o english_a church_n and_o to_o hold_v synod_n by_o themselves_o and_o that_o be_v in_o every_o congregation_n to_o choose_v their_o own_o minister_n rule_v elder_n and_o deacons_n but_o with_o this_o condition_n that_o when_o they_o have_v choose_v a_o minister_n they_o shall_v crave_v and_o obtain_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o king_n or_o of_o his_o heir_n or_o successor_n as_o also_o when_o in_o their_o synod_n they_o shall_v choose_v a_o new_a superintendent_n john_n lasco_n be_v superintendent_n at_o that_o time_n and_o minister_n of_o a_o congregation_n in_o london_n by_o advice_n of_o other_o minister_n gualther_n delen_n martin_n flandrus_fw-la francis_n riverius_n and_o other_o he_o drewup_a a_o book_n of_o discipline_n prescribe_v the_o form_n of_o election_n of_o minister_n elder_n and_o deacons_n direction_n concern_v prayer_n
of_o christ_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o argument_n be_v like_a unto_o this_o god_n heal_v by_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n therefore_o a_o physician_n o●_n medicine_n help_v nothing_o thereunto_o certain_o only_a christ_n work_v whole_a salvation_n in_o we_o and_o that_o not_o by_o the_o power_n of_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o by_o his_o only_a spirit_n and_o nevertheless_o for_o the_o same_o effect_n in_o we_o he_o use_v his_o word_n both_o visible_a in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o audible_a in_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o they_o exhibit_v and_o bring_v remission_n of_o sin_n communion_n of_o himself_o and_o eternal_a life_n zuingli●s_n do_v acknowledge_v this_o therefore_o when_o he_o deny_v that_o the_o sacrament_n give_v grace_n he_o understand_v the_o outward_a action_n of_o itself_o can_v do_v nothing_o to_o this_o purpose_n but_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o salvation_n be_v from_o the_o inward_a action_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sacrament_n be_v his_o instrument_n in_o some_o manner_n and_o it_o be_v luther_n who_o first_o of_o all_o man_n do_v impugn_v this_o tenant_n of_o the_o schoolman_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o themselves_o confer_v grace_n without_o any_o good_a motion_n of_o ourselves_o and_o wihtou_fw-fr faith_n and_o so_o in_o this_o question_n zuinglius_fw-la do_v impugn_v what_o luther_n teach_v not_o the_o same_o happen_v unto_o oecolampade_n who_o none_o doubt_v to_o have_v be_v a_o excellent_a divine_a if_o they_o read_v his_o work_n as_o he_o do_v read_v the_o scripture_n with_o singular_a modesty_n and_o reverence_n and_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o father_n and_o do_v much_o esteem_n of_o they_o so_o he_o write_v very_o reverent_o and_o religious_o of_o the_o sacrament_n howbeit_o he_o think_v that_o luther_n word_n do_v import_v a_o impanation_n or_o local_a enclose_v of_o christ_n body_n and_o upon_o this_o account_n do_v impugn_v they_o for_o he_o write_v so_o in_o his_o last_o dialogue_n when_o he_o will_v declare_v the_o difference_n the_o difference_n say_v he_o be_v rather_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o presence_n and_o absence_n then_o in_o the_o very_a presence_n and_o absence_n for_o none_o be_v so_o blunt_a to_o affirm_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v every_o way_n absent_a or_o present_a some_o hold_n that_o the_o lord_n bread_n be_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o whosoever_o whether_o godly_a or_o ungodly_a do_v eat_v it_o they_o eat_v not_o only_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o sacrament_n but_o also_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n bodily_a and_o let_v it_o down_o into_o the_o stomach_n but_o we_o speak_v against_o this_o and_o affirm_v that_o the_o element_n be_v not_o so_o honour_v as_o that_o the_o most_o excellent_a of_o all_o creature_n will_v unite_v himself_o into_o the_o same_o and_o natural_a substance_n of_o it_o or_o that_o he_o be_v so_o natural_o contain_v in_o it_o that_o by_o it_o as_o a_o middle_a pipe_n grace_n be_v convey_v which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v unto_o believer_n and_o by_o the_o touch_n and_o taste_v of_o it_o even_o the_o ungodly_a do_v touch_v and_o eat_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v partaker_n of_o grace_n from_o those_o his_o word_n who_o may_v not_o see_v that_o oecolampad_n impugn_v three_o thing_n only_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v unite_v with_o the_o bread_n into_o one_o and_o the_o same_o natural_a substance_n contain_v natural_o in_o it_o and_o that_o by_o the_o touch_n or_o taste_v of_o bread_n all_o both_o godly_a and_o ungodly_a be_v partaker_n of_o grace_n but_o luther_n do_v never_o affirm_v any_o of_o these_o albeit_o not_o a_o few_o do_v judge_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o word_n which_o he_o do_v use_v in_o this_o purpose_n especial_o when_o he_o do_v deny_v any_o trope_n in_o the_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n i_o will_v also_o adjoin_v a_o whole_a epistle_n of_o oecolampad_n where_o in_o he_o plain_o avouch_v his_o faith_n concern_v this_o point_n it_o be_v thus_o john_n oecolampade_n unto_o n._n a_o brother_n in_o christ_n grace_n and_o peace_n from_o god_n the_o father_n i_o have_v need_n to_o be_v inform_v by_o thou_o my_o brother_n and_o thou_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o violent_o presse_v i_o unwilling_a to_o answer_v be_v this_o thy_o tyranny_n tolerable_a and_o yet_o in_o christ_n it_o be_v to_o be_v comport_v for_o it_o be_v friendly_a and_o brotherly_a and_o yet_o upon_o this_o condition_n that_o i_o may_v have_v the_o same_o power_n over_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v impart_v unto_o i_o thy_o judgement_n mutual_o when_o thou_o shall_v receive_v i_o receive_v then_o plain_o what_o i_o believe_v the_o sacramental_a sign_n whereby_o the_o sacramental_a promise_n concern_v the_o remission_n of_o my_o sin_n that_o it_o may_v be_v more_o believe_v by_o my_o infirm_a conscience_n be_v not_o unto_o i_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o i_o who_o seek_v high_a thing_n make_v no_o reckon_n what_o sort_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v give_v but_o i_o desire_v more_o admirable_a thing_n and_o powerful_a to_o streng_n then_o my_o weak_a soul_n and_o those_o be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o very_a body_n and_o the_o very_a blood_n not_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o the_o body_n that_o be_v give_v and_o suffer_v for_o my_o sin_n and_o which_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n do_v enjoy_v delicious_o which_o christ_n promise_v to_o give_v and_o do_v give_v to_o be_v meat_n not_o carnal_a but_o spiritual_a and_o the_o blood_n which_o flow_v out_o of_o his_o body_n and_o be_v shed_v for_o my_o sin_n for_o that_o do_v powerful_o seal_v the_o promise_n of_o purge_v i_o from_o all_o my_o iniquity_n and_o for_o this_o i_o believe_v simple_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v for_o you_o and_z this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o whereby_o he_o testify_v that_o that_o body_n be_v a_o seal_n that_o sin_n be_v forgive_v unto_o he_o who_o believe_v and_o eat_v spiritual_o see_v he_o suffer_v for_o this_o cause_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n go_v first_o which_o the_o effect_n have_v seal_v by_o the_o holy_a seal_n i_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n for_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_n not_o that_o it_o as_o bodily_a meat_n may_v be_v convert_v into_o i_o but_o that_o i_o may_v be_v turn_v into_o it_o and_o may_v become_v spiritual_a by_o spiritual_a meat_n that_o when_o i_o shall_v be_v in_o christ_n christ_n also_o abide_v in_o i_o to_o wit_n be_v receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n may_v by_o his_o grace_n work_v his_o own_o work_n that_o so_o i_o may_v be_v ready_a to_o obey_v all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n albeit_o it_o be_v to_o die_v for_o they_o as_o he_o die_v for_o i_o and_o so_o i_o may_v be_v a_o true_a member_n in_o that_o his_o mystical_a body_n not_o in_o the_o body_n of_o antichrist_n because_o i_o desire_v not_o a_o portion_n with_o he_o but_o i_o desire_v to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o christ_n though_o the_o low_a i_o can_v not_o speak_v more_o plain_o take_v this_o in_o good_a part_n do_v with_o courage_n and_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n basile_n aprile_a 19_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n say_v bucer_n this_o epistle_n be_v among_o the_o epistle_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o oecolampad_a which_o other_o way_n be_v not_o happy_o publish_v for_o in_o that_o book_n some_o epistle_n that_o be_v publish_v in_o the_o first_o heat_n of_o the_o disputation_n come_v abroad_o again_o which_o annoy_n not_o so_o much_o the_o concord_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o lord_n give_v at_o this_o time_n as_o the_o sincere_a and_o solid_a knowledge_n of_o those_o mystery_n among_o not_o a_o few_o moreover_o when_o i_o hear_v that_o those_o epistle_n be_v a_o print_n and_o intend_v in_o a_o preface_n which_o may_v have_v be_v prefix_v unto_o the_o work_n in_o name_n of_o some_o man_n in_o basile_n to_o supply_v some_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o these_o epistle_n slender_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o may_v offend_v many_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v understand_v how_o even_o that_o church_n approve_v the_o right_a faith_n of_o the_o sacrament_n even_o as_o they_o have_v embrace_v it_o long_o ago_o and_o do_v profess_v it_o sound_o some_o man_n the_o lord_n forgive_v he_o cause_v the_o preface_n be_v publish_v in_o my_o name_n and_o so_o when_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o epistle_n when_o we_o set_v forth_o those_o epis●les_n many_o do_v judge_v that_o i_o have_v cause_v these_o epistle_n to_o be_v divulge_v and_o thence_o do_v infer_v that_o i_o do_v not_o intend_v the_o agreement_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o because_o at_o this_o time_n i_o can_v
and_o so_o to_o drive_v unto_o christ_n in_o who_o god_n have_v promise_v his_o favour_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n unto_o all_o that_o repent_v and_o consent_n to_o the_o law_n that_o it_o be_v good_a if_o thou_o believe_v the_o promise_n then_o do_v god_n truth_n justify_v thou_o that_o be_v forgive_v thou_o and_o receive_v thou_o to_o favour_n for_o christ_n sake_n in_o assurance_n where_o of_o and_o to_o certify_v thy_o heart_n he_o seal_v thou_o with_o the_o spirit_n eph._n 1._o &_o fol._n 54._o peter_n in_o act._n 2._o practise_v his_o key_n and_o by_o preach_v the_o law_n bring_v the_o people_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o themselves_o and_o bind_v their_o conscience_n so_o that_o they_o be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o say_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v then_o bring_v he_o forth_o the_o key_n of_o the_o sweet_a promise_n say_v repent_v and_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n ......_o as_o christ_n compare_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n unto_o key_n so_o compare_v he_o it_o to_o a_o net_n and_o unto_o leaven_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n for_o certain_a property_n i_o marvel_v therefore_o that_o they_o boast_v not_o of_o their_o net_n &_o leaven_n aswell_o as_o of_o their_o key_n but_o as_o christ_n bid_v we_o bewar_n of_o the_o leven_a of_o the_o pharisee_n so_o beware_v of_o their_o counterfit_v key_n fol._n 56._o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n will_v prove_v by_o moses_n &_o aaron_n that_o satan_n and_o antichrist_n our_o most_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n and_o head_n of_o christ_n church_n moses_n say_v he_o signify_v christ_n and_o aaron_n the_o pope_n and_o yet_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o hebr._n prove_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o old_a law_n signify_v christ_n and_o his_o offering_n and_o his_o go_v once_o in_o the_o year_n into_o the_o inner_a temple_n signify_v the_o offering_n wherewith_o christ_n offer_v himself_o and_o christ_n going-in_a to_o the_o father_n to_o be_v a_o everlasting_a mediator_n or_o intercessor_n for_o we_o ......_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v signify_v by_o aaron_n and_o christ_n by_o moses_n why_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n as_o well_o content_a with_o christ_n law_n &_o doctrine_n as_o aaron_n be_v with_o moses_n why_o do_v our_o bb_n preach_v the_o pope_n and_o no●_n christ_n see_v the_o apostle_n preach_v not_o peter_n but_o christ_n paul_n speak_v of_o himself_o and_o of_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n say_v we_o preach_v not_o ourselves_o but_o christ_n jesus_n the_o lord_n and_z we_o preach_v ourselves_o your_o servant_n for_o christ_n sake_n etc._n etc._n for_o such_o doctrine_n tindall_n be_v persecute_v and_o when_o he_o escape_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n into_o germany_n they_o burn_v the_o new_a testament_n that_o he_o have_v translate_v into_o english_a and_o they_o cause_v the_o master_n of_o lovan_n to_o burn_v his_o body_n an._n 1535._o ii_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o speak_v more_o of_o the_o gross_a ignorance_n and_o wickedness_n martyr_n pa._n hamilton_n a_o scotish_n martyr_n of_o the_o clergy_n &_o people_n at_o that_o time_n unless_o i●_n fall_v in_o by_o the_o by_o but_o behold_v how_o god_n bring_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n into_o this_o island_n i_o may_v say_v wonderful_o first_o patrick_n hamilton_n a_o young_a gentleman_n be_v make_v abbot_n of_o ferne_n and_o then_o he_o will_v go_v and_o see_v other_o country_n and_o in_o his_o travel_n he_o visit_n witemberg_n and_o there_o he_o hear_v luther_n melanthon_n &_o other_o he_o have_v little_a or_o no_o understanding_n before_o and_o hearken_v unto_o they_o and_o take_v it_o to_o heart_n he_o return_v ●ome_o in_o the_o 23._o year_n of_o his_o age_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o year_n 1526._o in_o what_o company_n he_o come_v he_o spare_v not_o to_o speak_v against_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o declare_v the_o truth_n as_o he_o have_v learn_v it_o the_o clergy_n can_v not_o endure_v this_o and_o under_o colour_n of_o conference_n they_o entice_v he_o unto_o santan_n drew_v they_o have_v persuade_v the_o young_a king_n james_n 5._o to_o go_v in_o pilgrimage_n to_o s._n duthess_n in_o rosse_n lest_o he_o shall_v hinder_v their_o proceed_n in_o the_o night_n time_n patrick_n hamilton_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o chamber_n where_o he_o be_v lodge_v and_o carry_v into_o the_o castle_n the_o next_o day_n he_o be_v present_v before_o the_o arch_a bishop_n james_n be●on_n and_o accuse_v upon_o these_o article_n the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n remain_v in_o child_n after_o baptism_n 2._o no_o charge_n the_o article_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n man_n by_o the_o power_n of_o free_a will_n can_v do_v any_o good_a 3._o no_o man_n be_v without_o sin_n so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v 4._o every_o true_a christian_a may_v know_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o estate_n of_o grace_n 5._o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n but_o by_o faith_n only_o 6._o good_a work_n make_v not_o a_o good_a man_n but_o a_o good_a man_n do_v good_a work_n and_o a_o ill_a man_n do_v ill_a work_n yet_o the_o same_o ill_a if_o true_o repent_v make_v not_o a_o ill_a man_n 7._o i'faith_o hope_n &_o charity_n be_v so_o link_v together_o that_o he_o who_o have_v one_o of_o they_o have_v all_o and_o who_o lack_v one_o of_o they_o lack_v all_o 8._o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o he_o withdraw_v his_o grace_n from_o man_n and_o grace_n be_v withdraw_v he_o can_v not_o but_o sin_n 9_o it_o be_v a_o devilish_a doctrine_n to_o teach_v that_o by_o any_o actual_a penance_n remission_n of_o sin_n be_v purchase_v 10_o auricular_a confession_n it_o not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 11._o there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n 12._o the_o holy_a patriarch_n be_v in_o heaven_n before_o christ●_n passion_n 13._o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o every_o priest_n have_v as_o much_o power_n as_o the_o pope_n he_o be_v demand_v what_o he_o think_v of_o these_o article_n he_o answer_v ●_o hold_v the_o first_o seven_o to_o be_v undoubted_o true_a and_o the_o other_o be_v disputable_a point_n nor_o can_v i_o condemn_v they_o unless_o i_o see_v better_a reason_n than_o as_o yet_o i_o have_v hear_v after_o some_o conference_n with_o he_o these_o article_n be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o rectour_n of_o the_o university_n who_o with_o other_o twelve_o as_o they_o be_v call_v divine_n &_o lawyer_n have_v censure_v and_o condemn_v they_o as_o heretical_a redeliver_v they_o within_o two_o day_n in_o a_o solemn_a meeting_n march_n 2._o year_n 1527._o of_o the_o two_o archbb_n three_o bb_n six_o abbot_n and_o priour_o and_o eight_o divine_n these_o all_o set_v their_o hand_n unto_o the_o sentence_n and_o the_o ●ame_n day_n pa._n hamilton_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o secular_a judge_n and_o burn_v in_o the_o afternoon_n when_o this_o execution_n be_v report_v many_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v inquire_v why_o be_v such_o a_o man_n burn_v and_o when_o they_o hear_v of_o the_o article_n they_o talk_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o and_o many_o do_v apprehend_v otherwise_o then_o be_v judge_v church_n the_o blood_n of_o a_o martyr_n 〈…〉_o seed_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o university_n these_o article_n take_v a_o deep_a impression_n yea_o and_o many_o friar_n beg●n_n in_o their_o sermon_n to_o comdemn_v the_o error_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o clergy_n thus_o god_n make_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o one_o man_n to_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o spread_v the_o truth_n unto_o many_o in_o time_n of_o that_o lent_n alex._n seton_n a_o dominican_n preach_v oft_o in_o santandrewes_n the_o substance_n of_o his_o sermon_n be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o righteousness_n if_o god_n law_n be_v not_o violate_v no_o sin_n be_v commit_v it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n power_n to_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v no_o way_n purchase_v but_o by_o unfeigned_a repentance_n and_o true_a faith_n apprehend_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o purgatory_n pilgrimage_n prayer_n to_o saint_n merit_n nor_o miracle_n as_o the_o friar_n be_v wont_a therefore_o he_o be_v suspect_v of_o heresy_n before_o the_o lent_n be_v finish_v he_o go_v to_o dundy_n and_o there_o he_o be_v advertise_v that_o another_o dominican_n have_v public_o contradict_v his_o former_a doctrine_n without_o delay_n he_o return_v and_o in_o a_o sermon_n confirm_v what_o he_o have_v teach_v before_o and_o moreover_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o virtue_n that_o be_v require_v of_o a_o faithful_a bishop_n and_o make_v this_o use_n of_o they_o within_o scotland_n be_v no_o true_a bishop_n if_o they_o be_v examine_v by_o those_o note_n which_o
create_v by_o god_n and_o infuse_v into_o the_o soul_n whereby_o that_o man_n be_v make_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o here_o a_o new_a controversy_n be_v start_v about_o the_o word_n justificare_fw-la some_o say_v it_o must_v be_v take_v effectiuè_fw-la to_o make_v just_a and_o not_o declaratiuè_fw-la among_o those_o be_v soto_n but_o the_o ca●melite_n marinarus_n will_v prove_v from_o rom._n 8._o by_o the_o judicial_a process_n of_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v that_o justification_n must_v also_o be_v a_o judicialact_fw-mi hereupon_o be_v another_o sharp_a dispute_n whether_o the_o habit_n of_o grace_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o habit_n of_o charity_n or_o a_o distinct_a one_o the_o scotist_n hold_v the_o first_o part_n and_o the_o thomist_n the_o late_a in_o this_o neither_o party_n will_v yield_v into_o the_o other_o then_o they_o dispute_v whether_o beside_o that_o inherent_a justice_n the_o justice_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v unto_o the_o justify_v person_n as_o his_o own_o all_o say_v christ_n dd_v merit_n for_o we_o and_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o righteousness_n but_o some_o love_v not_o the_o word_n impute_v because_o it_o be_v not_o among_o the_o father_n and_o for_o the_o bad_a consequence_n which_o lutheran_n draw_v from_o it_o to_o wit_n this_o only_a be_v sufficient_a without_o inherent_a righteousness_n the_o sacrament_n confer_v not_o grace_n punishment_n be_v abolish_v with_o the_o guilt_n there_o remain_v no_o place_n for_o satisfaction_n etc._n etc._n these_o contention_n be_v foster_v by_o sundry_a person_n upon_o several_a interest_n the_o imperialist_n will_v have_v they_o leave_v the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o pa_n palines_n seek_v a_o way_n to_o divide_v the_o council_n and_o so_o a_o void_a the_o apparent_a or_o aimed-at_a reformation_n other_o seek_v to_o deliver_v themselves_o from_o appear_v and_o heavy_a incommodity_n in_o germany_n and_o they_o fear_v dearth_n and_o other_o have_v little_a hope_n to_o do_v good_a at_o that_o time_n the_o emperor_n send_v letter_n unto_o the_o pope_n and_o unto_o the_o council_n represent_v a_o necessity_n of_o hold_v the_o council_n on_o foot_n for_o avoid_v misreport_n if_o it_o be_v dissolve_v and_o he_o promise_v to_o bend_v up_o all_o his_o wit_n to_o keep_v trent_n secure_a he_o earnest_o entreat_v that_o they_o will_v not_o handle_v controversy_n lest_o the_o protestant_n be_v provoke_v with_o contrary_a decree_n and_o therefore_o to_o treat_v of_o reformation_n only_o or_o at_o most_o meddle_v with_o point_n of_o lesser_a weight_n the_o pope_n be_v desirous_a to_o be_v free_v of_o the_o synod_n but_o to_o gratify_v the_o emperor_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o present_a confederacy_n he_o write_v unto_o the_o lega●s_n to_o hold_v the_o council_n a_o foot_n but_o without_o any_o session_n until_o he_o give_v new_a advertisement_n and_o to_o entertain_v the_o prelate_n and_o divine_n with_o congregation_n and_o such_o exercise_n as_o seem_v best_a july_n 25._o a_o jubilee_n be_v publish_v at_o trent_n to_o pray_v for_o good_a success_n unto_o the_o german_a war_n and_o the_o session_n be_v adjourny_v until_o a_o new_a intimation_n and_o the_o congregation_n be_v discharge_v for_o 15._o day_n nor_o do_v they_o sit_v until_o the_o 20._o day_n of_o august_n then_o the_o legate_n de_fw-fr monte_fw-fr judge_v it_o inconvenient_a to_o suspend_v the_o father_n any_o long_o but_z de_fw-fr sancta_fw-la cruse_n a_o man_n of_o melancholy_a nature_n take_v it_o upon_o he_o when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o congregation_n this_o legate_n and_o three_o bishop_n and_o three_o general_n be_v depute_v to_o frame_v the_o decree_n and_o anathematism_n so_o he_o set_v on_o edge_n the_o head_n of_o the_o former_a opinion_n show_v that_o the_o point_n be_v weighty_a and_o shall_v be_v sift_v and_o he_o give_v place_n to_o other_o controversy_n as_o whether_o a_o man_n can_v be_v assure_v of_o grace_n some_o say_v it_o be_v presumption_n puff_n up_o and_o make_v a_o man_n negligent_a grace_n of_o assurance_n of_o grace_n in_o do_v good_a and_o to_o doubt_n be_v more_o profitable_a and_o meritorious_a to_o this_o purpose_n they_o cite_v eccles_n 9_o 1._o and_o 1._o pet._n 1._o 17._o and_o some_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n those_o be_v vega_n soto_n etc._n etc._n on_o the_o other_o side_n catharinus_n marinarus_n and_o other_o allege_v other_o passage_n of_o the_o same_o father_n and_o they_o say_v the_o father_n have_v speak_v occasional_o sometime_o to_o comfort_n and_o at_o other_o time_n to_o repress_v but_o if_o we_o hold_v close_o to_o the_o scripture_n it_o shall_v be_v more_o certain_a see_v christ_n say_v often_o believe_v that_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v but_o he_o will_v not_o give_v occasion_n of_o pride_n nor_o drowsiness_n neither_o will_v he_o deprive_v man_n of_o merit_n if_o doubt_v be_v useful_a the_o scripture_n bid_v give_v god_n thanks_o for_o our_o justification_n which_o we_o can_v not_o do_v unless_o we_o know_v that_o we_o have_v obtain_v it_o st._n paul_n confirm_v this_o when_o he_o will_v the_o corinthian_n to_o know_v that_o they_o be_v in_o christ_n except_o they_o be_v reprobat_n the_o holy_a spirit_n bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o to_o deny_v his_o testimony_n be_v no_o less_o than_o to_o accuse_v they_o of_o temerity_n who_o believe_v the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v with_o they_o for_o s._n ambrose_n say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n never_o speak_v to_o we_o but_o when_o he_o make_v know_v that_o he_o speak_v then_o they_o add_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n the_o world_n can_v not_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o it_o know_v he_o not_o but_o the_o disciple_n know_v he_o because_o he_o dwell_v in_o they_o it_o be_v like_o a_o dream_n to_o say_v a_o man_n have_v receive_v grace_n and_o can_v not_o know_v whether_o he_o have_v receive_v or_o not_o the_o other_o party_n shrink_v a_o little_a with_o the_o force_n of_o these_o reason_n some_o grant_v a_o conjecture_n and_o some_o confess_v a_o certainty_n in_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n and_o they_o who_o have_v be_v late_o baptize_v and_o some_o by_o extraordinary_a revelation_n vega_n fear_v conformity_n with_o the_o lutheran_n say_v certainty_n be_v not_o divine_a faith_n but_o humane_a and_o experimental_a as_o he_o who_o be_v hot_a be_v sure_a by_o sense_n that_o he_o be_v hot_a then_o the_o defender_n of_o certainty_n ask_v whether_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v be_v call_v divine_a and_o whether_o every_o one_o be_v tie_v to_o believe_v what_o god_n reveele_v they_o go_v so_o far_o in_o sift_v this_o question_n as_o who_o list_v may_v see_v in_o the_o large_a history_n that_o the_o legate_n will_v they_o make_v a_o end_n of_o it_o it_o be_v twice_o command_v to_o leave_v it_o as_o doubtfuli_fw-la but_o their_o affection_n lead_v they_o to_o it_o again_o then_o the_o legate_n propound_v to_o speak_v again_o of_o preparatory_a work_n and_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n whereupon_o depend_v the_o question_n of_o freewill_n so_o six_o will_n of_o free_a will_n article_n be_v frame_v as_o maintain_v by_o the_o protestant_n of_o the_o first_o god_n be_v the_o total_a cause_n of_o our_o work_n both_o good_a and_o bad_a some_o say_v it_o be_v a_o fanatik_a doctrine_n condemn_v ancient_o in_o the_o manichee_n abelhard_n and_o wicklif_n and_o deserve_v not_o dispute_v but_o punishment_n marinarus_n say_v as_o it_o be_v foolish_a to_o say_v no_o action_n be_v in_o our_o power_n so_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v every_o action_n be_v in_o our_o power_n see_v every_o man_n find_v that_o he_o have_v not_o his_o affection_n in_o his_o power_n catharinus_n say_v a_o man_n have_v no_o power_n to_o do_v moral_a good_a work_n without_o god_n special_a assistance_n vega_n speak_v a_o while_n with_o ambiguity_n and_o conclude_v there_o be_v no_o difference_n in_o this_o point_n but_o it_o seem_v unto_o some_o to_o be_v a_o prejudice_n to_o reconcile_v different_a opinion_n and_o composition_n be_v for_o colloquy_n here_o arise_v that_o question_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o man_n power_n to_o believe_v or_o not_o to_o believe_v the_o franciscan_n say_v as_o knowledge_n necessary_o follow_v demonstration_n so_o faith_n follow_v persuasion_n and_o it_o be_v the_o understanding_n which_o be_v natural_o move_v by_o the_o object_n and_o experience_n teach_v that_o no_o man_n believe_v what_o he_o will_v but_o what_o seem_v true_a and_o none_o can_v feel_v any_o displeasure_n if_o he_o can_v believe_v what_o he_o please_v the_o dominican_n say_v nothing_o be_v more_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o will_v then_o to_o believe_v and_o by_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o will_v only_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o star_n be_v even_o the_o second_o article_n be_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n on_o the_o three_o
whether_o freewill_n be_v loose_v by_o sin_n many_o passage_n be_v bring_v from_o augustin_n to_o the_o affirmative_a so_o to_o answer_v there_o be_v a_o liberty_n of_o necessity_n and_o another_o from_o servitude_n and_o augustin_n speak_v of_o this_o this_o difference_n be_v not_o understand_v and_o so_o luther_n be_v say_v not_o worthy_a of_o blame_n in_o the_o tittle_n of_o his_o book_n of_o servile_a will_n many_o think_v the_o four_o article_n absurd_a man_n have_v freewill_n to_o do_v ill_o only_a for_o say_v they_o freewill_n be_v a_o power_n to_o both_o contrary_n but_o they_o be_v make_v to_o acknowledge_v their_o error_n when_o they_o hear_v that_o the_o good_a angel_n have_v power_n to_o do_v good_a only_o in_o examine_v the_o 5._o and_o 6._o article_n concern_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o freewill_n unto_o divine_a inspiration_n or_o prevent_a grace_n the_o franciscan_n strive_v that_o the_o will_n be_v able_a to_o prepare_v itself_o and_o have_v more_o power_n to_o accept_v the_o divine_a prevention_n when_o god_n give_v assistance_n then_o before_o when_o it_o act_v by_o strength_n of_o nature_n the_o dominican_n deny_v that_o work_v precede_v our_o call_n be_v true_o preparatory_a and_o they_o give_v the_o first_o place_n unto_o god_n but_o these_o be_v at_o variance_n among_o themselves_o so_o to_o hold_v albeit_o a_o man_n can_v not_o obtain_v grace_n without_o the_o special_a prevention_n of_o god_n yet_o the_o will_n may_v ever_o some_o way_n refuse_v and_o when_o the_o will_n accept_v it_o be_v because_o it_o give_v assent_v and_o if_o our_o assent_n be_v not_o require_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o be_v not_o all_o convert_v for_o god_n stand_v ever_o at_o the_o door_n and_z gives_z grace_n unto_o every_o one_o who_o will_v have_v it_o to_o say_v otherwise_o be_v to_o take_v away_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o will_n and_o as_o if_o one_o will_v say_v god_n use_v violence_n aloisius_n a_o catanea_n say_v god_n work_v two_o sort_n of_o prevent_a grace_n as_o aquinas_n teach_v one_o sufficient_a and_o the_o other_o effectual_a the_o will_n may_v refuse_v the_o first_o but_o not_o the_o other_o for_o it_o be_v a_o contradiction_n to_o say_v efficacy_n can_v be_v resist_v and_o he_o answer_v unto_o the_o contrary_a reason_n all_o be_v not_o convert_v because_o they_o be_v not_o efficacious_o prevent_v the_o fear_n of_o evert_v freewill_n be_v remove_v because_o thing_n be_v violent_o move_v by_o a_o contrary_a cause_n but_o not_o by_o their_o own_o cause_n but_o see_v god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o will_n to_o say_v the_o will_n be_v move_v by_o god_n be_v to_o say_v the_o will_n be_v move_v by_o itself_o and_o god_n convert_v albeit_o man_n will_v not_o or_o spurn_v at_o he_o and_o it_o be_v a_o contradiction_n to_o say_v the_o effect_n spurn_v against_o the_o cause_n it_o may_v happen_v that_o god_n effectual_o convert_v one_o who_o before_o have_v spurn_v against_o sufficient_a prevention_n but_o afterward_o he_o can_v not_o because_o when_o gentleness_n be_v in_o the_o will_n the_o efficacy_n of_o divine_a motion_n must_v nieds_fw-fr follow_v yet_o so_o that_o the_o will_n follow_v not_o as_o a_o dead_a or_o unreasonable_a creature_n but_o it_o be_v move_v by_o its_o own_o cause_n as_o reasonable_a and_o follow_v as_o reasonable_a soto_n reply_v every_o divine_a inspiration_n be_v only_o sufficient_a and_o that_o whereunto_o freewill_n have_v assent_v obtain_v efficiency_n by_o that_o consent_n without_o which_o it_o be_v not_o effectual_a not_o by_o defect_n of_o itself_o but_o by_o defect_n of_o the_o man_n or_o else_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o elect_a from_o the_o reprobate_n be_v from_o man_n and_o this_o be_v contrary_n unto_o the_o perpetual_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n that_o vessel_n of_o mercy_n be_v separate_v by_o grace_n from_o they_o of_o wrath_n each_o party_n think_v their_o own_o reason_n invincible_a and_o admonish_v the_o other_o to_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o leap_v not_o beyond_o the_o mark_n by_o too_o earnest_a desire_n to_o condemn_v luther_n here_o the_o legate_n have_v occasion_n to_o wave_v any_o conclusion_n by_o propound_v the_o question_n whether_o divine_a election_n be_v by_o foresee_a work_n so_o it_o be_v ordain_v to_o collect_v article_n of_o this_o matter_n election_n of_o election_n in_o the_o book_n of_o luther_n they_o find_v nothing_o worthy_a of_o censure_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la they_o draw_v 8._o article_n 1._o predestination_n and_o reprobation_n be_v only_o in_o the_o will_n of_o god_n the_o most_o part_n judge_v this_o to_o be_v catholic_a and_o agree_v with_o thomas_n and_o scotus_n because_o before_o the_o creation_n god_n of_o his_o mere_a mercy_n have_v out_o of_o the_o common_a mass_n elect_v some_o unto_o glory_n for_o who_o he_o have_v prepare_v effectual_a mean_n of_o obtain_v it_o their_o number_n be_v certain_a and_o other_o who_o be_v not_o choose_v can_v not_o complain_v for_o god_n have_v prepare_v for_o they_o sufficient_a mean_n albeit_o only_o the_o elect_a can_v or_o shall_v be_v save_v to_o this_o purpose_n they_o cite_v the_o example_n of_o jacob_n and_o esau_n and_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o potter_n rom._n 9_o and_o the_o conclusory_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o and_o 1._o cor._n 3_o 5_o &_o 4_o 7_o &_o 2._o tim._n 2_o 19_o etc._n etc._n other_o call_v this_o hard_a and_o inhuman_a as_o if_o god_n be_v partial_a if_o without_o any_o motive_n he_o choose_v one_o and_o not_o another_o or_o he_o be_v unjust_a if_o of_o his_o only_a will_n and_o not_o for_o man_n fault_n he_o create_v so_o great_a a_o multitude_n unto_o damnation_n and_o it_o destroy_v freewill_n because_o the_o elect_n can_v not_o final_o do_v evil_a nor_o can_v the_o reprobate_n do_v good_a it_o cast_v a_o man_n into_o despair_n it_o give_v occasion_n of_o bad_a thought_n in_o not_o care_v for_o penance_n for_o man_n think_v if_o they_o be_v elect_v they_o can_v not_o perish_v they_o confess_v not_o only_o that_o work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n election_n because_o it_o be_v before_o they_o but_o also_o that_o work_v foresee_v can_v not_o move_v god_n to_o predestinat_a because_o he_o be_v willing_a in_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o prepare_v sufficient_a assistance_n for_o all_o and_o this_o grace_n man_n accepte_n or_o refuse_v as_o he_o list_v but_o god_n in_o his_o eternity_n forsee_v both_o who_o will_v accept_v this_o help_n and_o who_o will_v reject_v it_o and_z he_o rejecte_n these_o and_o choose_v those_o the_o first_o opinion_n keep_v the_o mind_n humble_a and_o not_o rely_v on_o itself_o but_o on_o god_n and_o the_o other_o be_v more_o plausible_a and_o be_v ground_v on_o humane_a reason_n prevail_v more_o but_o when_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n be_v weigh_v it_o be_v manifest_o overcome_v for_o resolve_v the_o passage_n of_o scripture_n catarinus_n propound_v a_o middle_a course_n god_n of_o his_o goodness_n have_v elect_v some_o few_o who_o he_o will_v save_v absolute_o and_o unto_o they_o he_o have_v prepare_v infallible_a and_o effectual_a mean_n he_o also_o desire_v for_o his_o part_n that_o all_o other_o be_v save_v and_o have_v provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o all_o leave_v it_o to_o their_o choice_n to_o accept_v or_o refuse_v among_o those_o some_o few_o accept_v and_o be_v save_v albeit_o they_o be_v not_o elect_v and_o other_o will_v not_o cooperate_v with_o god_n and_o be_v damn_v it_o be_v the_o only_a good_a will_n of_o god_n that_o the_o first_o be_v save_v and_o that_o the_o second_o sort_n be_v save_v it_o be_v their_o acceptation_n and_o cooperation_n with_o divine_a assistance_n as_o god_n have_v foresee_v and_o that_o the_o last_o sort_n be_v reprobate_v it_o be_v their_o foresee_a perverse_a will_n the_o number_n of_o the_o first_o be_v determine_v but_o not_o the_o second_o and_o according_a to_o this_o distinction_n the_o different_a place_n of_o scripture_n be_v understand_v diverse_o he_o say_v he_o wonder_v at_o the_o stupidity_n of_o they_o who_o think_v the_o number_n to_o be_v certain_a and_o yet_o other_o may_v be_v save_v and_o also_o of_o they_o who_o say_v reprobate_n have_v sufficient_a assistance_n for_o salvation_n and_o yet_o a_o great_a assistance_n be_v necessary_a to_o he_o who_o be_v save_v then_o say_v he_o the_o first_o be_v a_o sufficient_a insufficient_a or_o a_o insufficient_a sufficiency_n the_o second_o article_n be_v the_o elect_n can_v not_o be_v condemn_v nor_o the_o reprobate_n be_v save_v the_o different_a opinion_n of_o the_o first_o cause_v diverse_a censure_n of_o this_o catharinus_n hold_v the_o first_o part_n true_a in_o respect_n of_o his_o first_o sort_n of_o man_n and_o the_o other_o part_n false_a in_o
church_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v also_o certain_a that_o of_o old_a so_o far_o as_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o church_n be_v extant_a that_o the_o chief_a authority_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o roman_a bishop_n as_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n and_o possess_n of_o his_o chair_n which_o may_v be_v demonstre_v by_o innumerable_a testimony_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o grave_a man_n both_o greek_a and_o latin_a as_o irenaeus_n tertullian_n optatus_n jerom_n ambrose_n basile_n chrysostom_n augustin_n unto_o who_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o decree_n of_o counsel_n agree_v and_o i_o think_v there_o have_v never_o be_v controversy_n among_o we_o for_o this_o point_n unless_o the_o roman_a highpriest_n have_v abuse_v this_o authority_n unto_o some_o kind_n of_o domineer_a and_o have_v stretch_v it_o through_o ambition_n and_o covetousness_n beyond_o the_o bound_n that_o be_v prescribe_v by_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n but_o this_o abuse_n of_o the_o pontifician_n power_n which_o the_o flatterer_n do_v at_o first_o enlarge_v beyond_o measure_n give_v occasion_n to_o think_v amiss_o of_o yea_o and_o to_o fall_v off_o altogether_o from_o that_o pontifician_n power_n which_o he_o have_v by_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o i_o think_v may_v be_v recover_v if_o he_o will_v return_v unto_o the_o bound_n that_o be_v prescribe_v by_o christ_n and_o the_o ancient_a church_n etc._n etc._n here_o be_v fair_a pretence_n but_o no_o less_o untrue_a for_o the_o augustan_n confession_n require_v no_o such_o obedience_n nor_o do_v christ_n prescribe_v it_o no_o nor_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o the_o precede_a part_n of_o this_o history_n show_v clear_o be_v not_o this_o the_o main_a strife_n betwixt_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o latin_n and_o do_v not_o the_o african_a church_n oppose_v it_o neither_o do_v any_o of_o those_o name_v ancients_n avouch_v it_o as_o be_v clear_v in_o many_o polemicall_a treatise_n in_o some_o article_n he_o neither_o blame_v the_o confession_n nor_o can_v excuse_v the_o roman_a church_n as_o on_o the_o 12._o article_n he_o say_v from_o the_o custom_n of_o canonical_a punishment_n which_o be_v public_o enjoin_v unto_o the_o penitent_n for_o a_o prescribe_a time_n indulgence_n be_v hatch_v for_o when_o the_o bishop_n see_v the_o diligence_n or_o weakness_n of_o repentant_n they_o may_v deal_v the_o more_o courteous_o &_o meek_o with_o they_o and_o diminish_v some_o thing_n of_o the_o time_n or_o of_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o punishment_n which_o abait_v of_o the_o canonical_a punishment_n be_v call_v indulgence_n and_o now_o it_o be_v bring_v into_o private_a satisfaction_n and_o from_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v turn_v unto_o the_o roman_a highpriest_n only_o that_o he_o have_v the_o full_a power_n of_o indulgence_n concern_v the_o use_n and_o exercise_v of_o which_o every_o one_o of_o the_o best_a sort_n have_v wish_v that_o there_o be_v a_o moderation_n and_o correction_n because_o they_o have_v be_v the_o main_a cause_n of_o this_o rent_v of_o the_o church_n here_o say_v he_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o the_o roman_a highpriest_n will_v yield_v somewhat_o for_o common_a peace_n on_o the_o 16_o article_n he_o say_v what_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o civil_a thing_n be_v every_o way_n to_o be_v allow_v that_o lawful_a civil_a ordinance_n be_v the_o good_a work_n of_o god_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a unto_o christians_n to_o be_v magistrate_n to_o ordain_v punishment_n by_o law_n to_o war_n righteous_o etc._n etc._n the_o doubt_n only_o remain_v of_o the_o office_n &_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n in_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n here_o be_v excess_n on_o both_o hand_n some_o asscribe_v too_o little_a and_o some_o too_o much_o unto_o civil_a power_n for_o some_o exclude_v prince_n and_o magistrate_n from_o all_o meddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n and_o other_o make_v all_o ecclesiastical_a administration_n subject_a unto_o the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n but_o in_o this_o question_n that_o shall_v be_v without_o controversy_n that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o christian_a prince_n be_v no_o less_o or_o inferior_a in_o a_o christian_a republic_n than_o be_v in_o old_a time_n the_o power_n of_o king_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n and_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o divine_a scripture_n what_o be_v their_o office_n in_o preserve_v the_o divine_a law_n and_o promove_v the_o divine_a worship_n for_o by_o a_o divine_a law_n the_o read_n of_o deuteronomy_n be_v commend_v unto_o they_o not_o only_o that_o thereby_o they_o shall_v order_v their_o private_a life_n right_o and_o holy_o but_o likewise_o to_o preserve_v the_o divine_a law_n in_o vigour_n and_o without_o violation_n and_o the_o example_n of_o the_o godly_a king_n who_o be_v commend_v in_o the_o scripture_n declare_v this_o clear_o who_o find_v the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o his_o law_n command_v the_o priest_n and_o levite_n to_o restore_v divine_a worship_n as_o it_o be_v prescribe_v in_o divine_a law_n etc._n etc._n of_o the_o procession_n as_o they_o be_v call_v on_o the_o 22_o article_n he_o say_v the_o custom_n of_o carry_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n conspicuous_o in_o public_a pomp_n be_v beside_o the_o mind_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o ancients_n and_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v begin_v but_o late_o for_o those_o have_v this_o mystery_n in_o such_o religion_n that_o they_o will_v admit_v none_o either_o to_o the_o receive_n or_o behold_v it_o but_o the_o believer_n who_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v member_n of_o christ_n and_o worthy_a of_o the_o partake_n so_o great_a a_o mystery_n therefore_o before_o the_o consecration_n catechumeni_fw-la energumeni_fw-la the_o penitent_n and_o all_o who_o do_v not_o communicate_v be_v set_v forth_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o deacon_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o doorkeeper_n wherefore_o it_o seem_v the_o custom_n of_o circumgestation_n may_v well_o be_v omit_v etc._n etc._n on_o the_o 24_o article_n he_o say_v whereas_o they_o complain_v of_o privy_a mass_n it_o be_v not_o without_o reason_n if_o thereby_o they_o understand_v the_o mass_n wherein_o the_o priest_n only_o take_v the_o sacrament_n and_o there_o be_v no_o distribution_n of_o the_o mystery_n which_o when_o it_o begin_v in_o some_o monastery_n be_v forbid_v as_o be_v clear_a in_o a_o canon_n of_o the_o nanneten_a council_n etc._n etc._n the_o belgic_a index_n expurgatorius_fw-la have_v not_o spare_v other_o of_o this_o man_n work_n as_o his_o scholia_fw-la on_o the_o hymn_n on_o that_o which_o begin_v nocte_fw-la surgentes_fw-la in_o the_o edition_n at_o colen_n an._n 1556._o it_o be_v in_o page_n 48_o and_o in_o the_o edition_n at_o paris_n 1616._o in_o fol._n it_o be_v page_n 179_o it_o be_v say_v cumsuis_fw-la sanctis_fw-la mereamur_fw-la aulam_fw-la ingredi_fw-la coeli_fw-la the_o scholia_fw-la say_v the_o word_n mereri_fw-la be_v one_o almost_o among_o the_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n with_o consequi_fw-la seu_fw-la aptum_fw-la idoneumve_fw-la fieri_fw-la ad_fw-la consequendum_fw-la which_o signify_v mereri_fw-la what_o it_o signify_v appear_v by_o one_o passage_n of_o cyprian_a beside_o many_o more_o for_o where_o paul_n say_v 1._o tim._n 1._o i_o have_v obtain_v mercy_n and_o it_o be_v usual_o read_v misericordiam_fw-la consecutus_fw-la sum_fw-la or_o as_o erasmus_n translate_v it_o misericordiam_fw-la adeptus_fw-la sum_fw-la cyprian_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la juiaban_n read_v it_o misericordiam_fw-la merui_fw-la and_o there_o be_v many_o passage_n in_o the_o office_n and_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n where_o this_o word_n shall_v be_v take_v in_o this_o sense_n if_o this_o notion_n of_o that_o word_n be_v hold_v many_o place_n which_o seem_v harsh_a will_v appear_v more_o pleasant_a and_o useful_a in_o the_o next_o scholi_fw-la or_o anotation_n he_o say_v these_o word_n super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la we_o shall_v understand_v peter_n confession_n say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n this_o be_v the_o exposition_n of_o augustin_n and_o ambrose_n follow_v it_o elsewhere_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n but_o his_o faith_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v sore_a faith_n say_v he_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n see_v it_o be_v say_v not_o of_o the_o flesh_n of_o peter_n but_o of_o his_o faith_n the_o gate_n of_o death_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o but_o his_o confession_n overcome_v hell_n hereunto_o agree_v that_o of_o cyrill_n i_o think_v that_o the_o rock_n be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o unmovable_a and_o most_o sure_a faith_n of_o the_o disciple_n on_o which_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o found_v and_o fasten_v that_o it_o can_v not_o fail_v and_o abide_v for_o ever_o unvincible_a by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o therefore_o when_o ambrose_n call_v peter_n
undique_fw-la et_fw-la ano_fw-la etpene_n erupit_fw-la qui_fw-la tibi_fw-la carle_n cruor_fw-la non_fw-la tuus_fw-la iste_fw-la cruor_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la at_o caede_fw-la cruorem_fw-la quem_fw-la ferus_fw-la hausisti_fw-la concoquere_fw-la haud_fw-la poteras_fw-la iii_o so_o soon_o as_o henry_n king_n of_o poland_n hear_v of_o his_o brother_n death_n he_o ●_z trouble_n of_o henry●_n ●_z return_v privy_o and_o quick_o and_o be_v crown_v king_n of_o france_n he_o renew_v the_o war_n against_o the_o reform_a church_n he_o take_v mons_fw-la monmorancy_n and_o quarter_v he_o for_o religion_n nevertheless_o they_o increase_v in_o number_n for_o the_o duke_n alanchon_n the_o king_n brother_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o condee_n join_v with_o they_o so_o that_o a_o peace_n be_v grant_v and_o proclaim_v with_o liberty_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o year_n 1576_o but_o that_o peace_n endure_v not_o long_o then_o henry_n king_n of_o navarre_n join_v with_o the_o reform_a again_o yet_o they_o be_v all_o in_o great_a danger_n in_o the_o year_n 1586._o the_o pope_n sixtus_n 5._o excommunicate_v the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o condee_n and_o declare_v they_o uncapable_a of_o the_o crown_n of_o france_n and_o order_v king_n henry_n 3._o to_o pursue_v they_o with_o arm_n the_o king_n of_o navarre_n send_v unto_o frederik_n king_n of_o denmark_n and_o unto_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n for_o aid_n they_o send_v their_o ambassador_n unto_o the_o king_n of_o france_n to_o intercede_v for_o the_o protestant_n he_o return_v answer_v that_o they_o shall_v meddle_v with_o his_o subject_n no_o more_o than_o he_o do_v with_o they_o wherefore_o those_o prince_n assemble_v at_o luneburgh_n where_o be_v also_o the_o ambassador_n of_o navarre_n england_n scotland_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o pomer_n etc._n etc._n they_o conclude_v that_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n shall_v not_o be_v forsake_v chytrae_n lib._n 28._o so_o they_o send_v 5000._o horseman_n and_o 20000._o foot_n but_o unhappy_o for_o the_o guise_n and_o other_o confoederats_n in_o liga_fw-la aurea_fw-la give_v they_o the_o foil_n in_o lorraine_n an._n 1587._o the_o next_o year_n henry_n iii_o understand_v of_o the_o presumption_n and_o intention_n of_o the_o guise_n and_o he_o call_v a_o parliament_n profess_v that_o he_o will_v give_v the_o chief_a command_v of_o his_o army_n against_o the_o hugonot_n unto_o henry_n duke_n of_o guise_n the_o man_n doubt_v of_o the_o king_n favour_n and_o yet_o upon_o those_o fair_a word_n he_o go_v unto_o the_o parliament_n he_o be_v kill_v in_o his_o bedchamber_n and_o his_o body_n be_v first_o burn_v than_o his_o ash_n be_v throw_v into_o ligeris_n his_o brother_n lewes_n a_o cardinal_n be_v hang_v and_o his_o son_n with_o some_o bishop_n be_v imprison_v within_o twelve_o day_n the_o queen-mother_n die_v through_o sorrow_n for_o the_o death_n of_o the_o guise_n ibid._n behold_v how_o god_n then_o bring_v peace_n unto_o his_o church_n they_o who_o before_o favour_v the_o guise_n secret_o do_v then_o profess_v open_a rebellion_n against_o the_o king_n the_o parisian_n create_v charles_n duke_n of_o mayen_n and_o brother_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n to_o be_v governor_n of_o paris_n and_o of_o the_o isle_n of_o francia_n the_o sorbonist_n deny_v the_o king_n authority_n and_o absolve_v all_o man_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n many_o city_n join_v themselves_o unto_o duke_n charles_n to_o wit_n lion_n rouen_n orleans_n ambian_n etc._n etc._n the_o king_n assemble_v the_o nobility_n he_o proclaim_v unto_o all_o his_o subject_n pardon_v of_o all_o former_a trespass_n if_o now_o they_o shall_v return_v into_o obedience_n and_o he_o threaten_v loss_n of_o good_n and_o life_n if_o they_o return_v not_o henry_n king_n of_o navarre_n crave_v pardon_n obtain_v it_o and_o be_v make_v general_n of_o the_o army_n against_o the_o traitor_n the_o duke_n of_o mayen_n and_o aumale_a in_o aprile_a an._n 1589._o and_o the_o same_o summer_n he_o grant_v by_o edict_n at_o nantes_n religion_n liberty_n of_o the_o religion_n liberty_n unto_o the_o reform_a to_o assemble_v not_o only_o for_o exercise_v of_o their_o religion_n in_o their_o church_n but_o also_o for_o hold_v their_o synod_n yearly_a and_o so_o to_o be_v free_a from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n which_o liberty_n no_o king_n of_o france_n have_v impede_v until_o this_o present_a time_n and_o unto_o all_o who_o be_v under_o the_o former_a edict_n of_o exile_n he_o restore_v their_o honour_n and_o good_n upon_o their_o submission_n then_o the_o follower_n of_o duke_n charles_n call_v the_o king_n a_o enemy_n of_o the_o apostolical_a roman_a church_n and_o august_n 1_o new_a style_n a_o jacobin_n monk_n have_v purchase_v leave_n to_o deliver_v a_o letter_n unto_o the_o king_n stab_v he_o as_o he_o be_v read_v the_o letter_n in_o the_o belly_n with_o a_o poison_a knife_n the_o villain_n say_v he_o be_v command_v by_o a_o angel_n to_o kill_v the_o tyrant_n and_o his_o death_n will_v bring_v peace_n into_o france_n the_o king_n fear_v not_o death_n at_o the_o first_o and_o immediate_o dispatch_v post_n to_o all_o the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o realm_n give_v they_o notice_n of_o what_o be_v do_v and_o exhort_v they_o to_o constancy_n and_o loyalty_n as_o be_v due_a unto_o their_o sovereign_n before_o midnight_n he_o apprehende_v death_n and_o the_o next_o day_n he_o cause_v proclaim_v henry_n king_n of_o navarre_n to_o be_v his_o heir_n after_o the_o france_n henry_n 4_o king_n of_o france_n king_n death_n the_o peer_n of_o the_o realm_n than_o in_o the_o lieger_n require_v a_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n to_o defend_v the_o roman_a religion_n and_o he_o swear_v to_o maintain_v even_o to_o hazert_v of_o his_o life_n the_o catholic_n apostolical_a and_o roman_a religion_n within_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o that_o he_o will_v make_v no_o change_n in_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o and_o for_o his_o own_o person_n he_o will_v obey_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o godly_a and_o lawful_a general_n or_o national_a council_n and_o promise_v to_o procure_v it_o with_o all_o diligence_n and_o he_o swear_v to_o permit_v no_o other_o religion_n but_o what_o be_v already_o allow_v until_o peace_n be_v restore_v it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o provide_v and_o he_o confirm_v all_o the_o officer_n of_o state_n on_o the_o other_o side_n these_o and_o the_o ptince_n of_o the_o blood_n the_o other_o peer_n and_o many_o other_o acknowledge_v henry_n 4._o king_n of_o france_n and_o navarre_n and_o swear_v lojalty_n and_o fidelity_n unto_o he_o then_o both_o he_o and_o they_o swear_v that_o they_o shall_v revenge_v the_o villainous_a murder_n of_o the_o late_a king_n and_o the_o disturbance_n of_o the_o realm_n against_o all_o the_o rebel_n then_o the_o duke_n mayen_n be_v at_o that_o time_n call_v duke_n of_o guise_n and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n deal_v with_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n shall_v not_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o former_a sentence_n and_o that_o faction_n declare_v charles_n duke_n de_fw-fr mayen_n king_n of_o france_n but_o the_o senate_n of_o paris_n not_o admit_v that_o any_o shall_v be_v king_n who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o blood_n royal_a he_o be_v not_o proclaim_v there_o in_o the_o year_n 1593._o henry_n 4._o take_v his_o oath_n to_o defend_v the_o roman_a religion_n he_o write_v a_o abjuration_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o send_v it_o unto_o the_o pope_n then_o he_o receive_v a_o pardon_n and_o the_o pope_n blessing_n and_o be_v absolve_v in_o the_o church_n of_o s._n denis_n by_o the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o bourge_n upon_o condition_n to_o embrace_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o to_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v observe_v within_o his_o realm_n to_o hear_v mass_n to_o choose_v mary_n for_o his_o advocate_n before_o god_n to_o breed_v the_o young_a prince_n of_o condee_n in_o the_o romish_a religion_n etc._n etc._n but_o though_o for_o earthly_a peace_n he_o profess_v popery_n yet_o in_o the_o parliament_n at_o rouen_n an._n 1597._o he_o give_v liberty_n of_o religion_n within_o his_o dominion_n one_o day_n he_o say_v unto_o a_o noble_a man_n i_o see_v you_o tooday_o at_o the_o mass_n yes_o say_v the_o other_o i_o will_v follow_v your_o majesty_n the_o king_n reply_v but_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v the_o crown_n of_o france_n for_o it_o iv_o some_o variance_n arise_v among_o they_o of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n lutheran_n the_o cause_n of_o variance_n among_o the_o lutheran_n 1._o whereas_o in_o the_o year_n 1547._o the●_n be_v press_v by_o the_o book_n call_v interim_n to_o accept_v that_o article_n good_a work_n be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n the_o divine_n of_o ●itteberg_fw-mi for_o peace_n sake_n do_v yield_v unto_o it_o but_o those_o of_o jena_n as_o be_v more_o wary_a think_v good_a to_o wave_v that_o phrase_n
because_o the_o popish_a party_n understand_v it_o that_o work_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v up_o justification_n and_o to_o promerite_fw-la salvation_n at_o last_o in_o a_o conference_n at_o altemburgh_n in_o the_o year_n 1568._o the_o question_n be_v debate_v and_o they_o agree_v in_o these_o term_n new_a obedience_n and_o good_a work_n both_o external_a and_o internal_a be_v necessary_a unto_o believer_n and_o such_o who_o turn_v unto_o god_n but_o they_o can_v not_o condescend_v to_o use_v the_o word_n necessary_a unto_o salvation_n the_o witteberger_n say_v work_n be_v necessary_a not_o indeed_o by_o necessity_n of_o efficiency_n but_o of_o presence_n and_o those_o of_o jena_n deny_v not_o the_o necessity_n of_o presence_n but_o they_o say_v such_o a_o phrase_n shall_v be_v shun_v because_o of_o scandal_n and_o for_o fear_n of_o error_n or_o mistake_n for_o why_o shall_v we_o use_v dangerous_a word_n with_o the_o erroneous_a sophister_n and_o then_o parget_n or_o plaster_v they_o with_o gloss_n when_o we_o have_v safe_a word_n 2._o a_o more_o grievous_a contention_n be_v renew_v for_o the_o vbiquity_n of_o christ_n body_n here_o i_o will_v use_v the_o word_n of_o george_n calixtus_n professor_n in_o julia_n in_o his_o consultatio_fw-la de_fw-la tolerantia_fw-la certain_o see_v the_o omnipresence_n of_o christ_n flesh_n be_v not_o know_v nor_o hear_v in_o the_o universal_a church_n even_o until_o stapulensis_n &_o luther_n it_o may_v yet_o have_v be_v not_o know_v albeit_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o a_o solid_a foundation_n and_o a_o necessity_n of_o believe_v it_o may_v have_v not_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o vulgar_a or_o the_o learned_a and_o indeed_o but_o two_o passage_n one_o out_o of_o the_o book_n peri_n thou_fw-mi retòu_fw-mi and_o another_o ex_fw-la majore_fw-la confession_n be_v the_o only_a at_o least_o the_o main_a whereupon_o luther_n build_v the_o vbiquity_n and_o that_o be_v do_v by_o he_o when_o he_o be_v earnest_a against_o his_o adversary_n to_o establish_v any_o way_n the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o former_a book_n be_v publish_v in_o the_o year_n 1527._o and_o the_o other_o in_o the_o next_o year_n in_o the_o year_n 1529_o by_o procurement_n of_o philip_n the_o illustrious_a landgrave_n of_o hass_n be_v the_o conference_n at_o marburgh_n there_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la agree_v in_o all_o article_n excep_v the_o eucharist_n ...._o and_o luther_n neither_o do_v judge_n nor_o press_v the_o omnipresence_n as_o a_o point_n of_o doctrine_n wherein_o he_o crave_v assent_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o augsburg_n the_o three_o article_n be_v of_o those_o mystery_n but_o with_o no_o or_o very_o slender_a touch_n of_o omnipresence_n neither_o at_o that_o time_n nor_o any_o time_n follow_v in_o the_o disputation_n between_o the_o reform_a and_o the_o popish_a come_v the_o omnipresence_n into_o question_n or_o controversy_n therefore_o luther_n suffer_v it_o to_o be_v bury_v in_o silence_n yea_o and_o in_o the_o year_n 1537._o when_o he_o write_v the_o article_n of_o smalcald_a he_o aver_v express_o that_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n between_o he_o and_o the_o adversary_n the_o papist_n concern_v the_o trinity_n the_o incarnation_n the_o person_n of_o christ_n see_v say_v he_o we_o confess_v the_o article_n on_o both_o side_n but_o what_o the_o papist_n have_v teach_v or_o do_v teach_v concern_v those_o article_n may_v be_v know_v by_o their_o writing_n especial_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o see_v in_o all_o these_o be_v not_o a_o jota_fw-la concern_v the_o omnipresence_n it_o be_v manifest_a also_o that_o luther_n do_v leave_v it_o and_o prosess_v agreement_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n with_o they_o who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v ubuiquity_n ........_o and_o so_o while_n luther_n live_v that_o question_n be_v asleep_a which_o some_o man_n do_v waken_v up_o again_o about_o the_o year_n 1562._o of_o who_o the_o principal_n be_v john_n br●ntius_n and_o jacob_n andreae_n neither_o have_v i_o pleasure_n nor_o be_v it_o necessary_a to_o repeat_v all_o the_o history_n but_o it_o be_v certain_a this_o late_a man_n spare_v no_o travel_n until_o he_o persuade_v some_o to_o embrace_v vbiquity_n and_o force_v it_o upon_o other_o and_o nevertheless_o the_o can_v not_o persuade_v all_o that_o embrace_v the_o augustan_n confession_n or_o as_o they_o speak_v the_o lutheran_n not_o the_o dane_n not_o the_o holsatian_o nor_o those_o of_o norinberg_n helmstad_n and_o many_o more_o therefore_o some_o of_o those_o who_o be_v call_v lutheran_n be_v at_o this_o day_n for_o vbiquity_n and_o against_o they_o be_v all_o other_o christian_n both_o greek_n or_o of_o the_o east_n part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o papist_n and_o calvinian_o so_o far_o calixtus_n for_o justify_v his_o word_n concern_v the_o dane_n i_o add_v the_o testimony_n of_o nic._n hemingius_n professor_n of_o divinity_n and_o preacher_n in_o coppenhaghen_n at_o that_o time_n in_o his_o catechism_n he_o expound_v the_o article_n of_o christ_n ascension_n say_v this_o article_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o christ_n true_a body_n and_o the_o bodily_a place_n thereof_o in_o heaven_n lest_o we_o think_v either_o that_o the_o humane_a nature_n in_o christ_n be_v swallow_v up_o by_o the_o divine_a or_o that_o it_o be_v diffuse_v into_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o the_o divine_a see_v both_o these_o do_v most_o open_o deny_v christ_n manhood_n be_v not_o christ_n every_o where_o yes_o true_o by_o communication_n of_o property_n according_a to_o that_o joh._n 3._o none_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o he_o who_o come_v from_o heaven_n but_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o when_o the_o lord_n speak_v these_o word_n with_o nicodemus_n his_o body_n be_v circumscribe_v on_o the_o earth_n wherefore_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v understand_v by_o communication_n of_o property_n so_o cyprian_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n not_o where_o the_o word_n god_n be_v not_o before_o but_o where_o the_o word_n make_v flesh_n sit_v not_o before_o to_o wit_n by_o bodily_a place_n again_o he_o speak_v against_o the_o error_n concern_v the_o lord_n supper_n say_v what_o say_v you_o of_o they_o who_o say_v that_o the_o manhood_n be_v every_o where_o with_o the_o godhead_n these_o for_o eschue_v the_o error_n of_o they_o who_o deny_v that_o we_o receive_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o supper_n fall_v into_o this_o horrible_a error_n that_o they_o assert_v the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v every_o where_n with_o the_o godhead_n who_o opinion_n be_v above_o in_o the_o article_n of_o ascension_n clear_o confute_v and_o the_o angel_n say_v plain_o unto_o the_o woman_n he_o be_v rise_v he_o be_v not_o here_o here_o true_o either_o the_o angel_n lie_v which_o be_v horrible_a to_o think_v or_o they_o be_v deceive_v who_o say_v that_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n be_v everywhere_o with_o the_o divinity_n by_o which_o he_o fill_v all_o thing_n or_o be_v every_o where_n also_o paul_n say_v phil._n 3_o that_o our_o body_n shall_v be_v make_v like_o unto_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o who_o daraver_n that_o our_o body_n shall_v be_v infinite_a that_o they_o may_v be_v every_o where_o true_o thus_o the_o truth_n of_o humane_a nature_n shall_v be_v destroy_v therefore_o neither_o be_v christ_n body_n make_v infinite_a after_o his_o resurrection_n moreover_o the_o holy_a father_n confess_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v circumscribe_v for_o nazianzen_n say_v that_o the_o same_o christ_n be_v circumscribe_v and_o uncircumscribed_a earthy_a and_o heavenly_a comprehensible_a and_o incomprehensible_a for_o that_o be_v the_o diversity_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n humane_a and_o divine_a which_o diversity_n because_o the_o eutychian_o deny_v they_o be_v just_o condemn_v of_o heresy_n how_o then_o say_v the_o catholic_n that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v true_o in_o the_o supper_n the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o supper_n together_o with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n not_o by_o conjunction_n of_o nature_n but_o sacramental_a for_o luther_n and_o the_o holy_a father_n testify_v that_o it_o be_v not_o carnal_a nor_o a_o include_v of_o the_o body_n in_o the_o bread_n or_o of_o the_o blood_n in_o the_o wine_n so_o that_o place_n and_o body_n touch_v one_o another_o and_o the_o place_n yield_v unto_o the_o body_n wherefore_o unto_o this_o true_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o supper_n it_o be_v no_o way_n necessary_a that_o his_o manhood_n be_v everywhere_o with_o the_o godhead_n but_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o believe_v tha●_n as_o at_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o supper_n the_o lord_n sit_v with_o a_o circumscribe_v body_n and_o nevertheless_o he_o give_v unto_o his_o disciple_n his_o body_n to_o be_v eat_v and_o his_o blood_n to_o be_v drunken_a and_o that_o ●ruly_o according_a
of_o these_o proposition_n not_o with_o that_o addition_n physicè_fw-la probabiliter_fw-la or_o the_o like_a under_o the_o pain_n of_o the_o censure_n foresay_a xi_o in_o sess_n 16._o his_o majesty_n s_o answer_n be_v return_v from_o sterlin_n 1._o understanding_n the_o first_o point_n to_o be_v mean_v of_o grant_v the_o benefit_n of_o pacification_n unto_o david_n chalmers_n his_o master_n and_o know_v that_o man_n to_o have_v be_v fotfeit_v only_o for_o that_o common_a action_n of_o his_o be_v at_o the_o field_n of_o langside_n for_o which_o pardon_n be_v grant_v to_o so_o many_o he_o think_v it_o no_o new_a or_o strange_a thing_n at_o the_o request_n of_o such_o as_o move_v he_o to_o grant_v unto_o he_o the_o same_o benefit_n which_o many_o other_o have_v obtain_v yet_o no_o way_n intend_v to_o spare_v the_o due_a punishment_n of_o he_o or_o any_o other_o that_o may_v be_v charge_v or_o find_v guilty_a of_o the_o murder_n of_o his_o dear_a father_n or_o that_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v adversary_n to_o the_o religion_n or_o impugner_n thereof_o against_o the_o law_n the_o execution_n of_o which_o he_o have_v be_v be_v and_o will_v be_v willing_a to_o further_o 2._o the_o second_o head_n be_v particular_o mean_v of_o fintry_n his_o m._n wish_v the_o assembly_n to_o remember_v how_o he_o have_v deal_v in_o that_o matter_n and_o what_o testimonial_a the_o church_n of_o edinb_n give_v he_o nor_o have_v his_o majesty_n hinder_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o church_n against_o he_o nor_o any_o other_o but_o mind_v to_o hold_v hand_n thereunto_o according_a to_o the_o law_n the_o three_o be_v mean_v of_o wi._n holt_n a_o english_a man_n escape_v out_o of_o the_o castle_n of_o edinburgh_n his_o majesty_n have_v answer_v the_o queen_n late_a ambassador_n and_o it_o be_v no_o strange_a thing_n to_o hear_v of_o a_o man_n escape_v but_o what_o they_o understand_v by_o indirect_a mean_n of_o let_v he_o depart_v his_o majesty_n be_v special_o inform_v thereof_o will_v after_o due_a trial_n see_v the_o offender_n punish_v according_a to_o their_o deserve_n the_o four_o head_n be_v very_a general_n his_o majesty_n think_v the_o assembly_n will_v not_o judge_v it_o pertinent_a unto_o they_o to_o have_v vote_n in_o choose_v his_o servant_n or_o to_o be_v too_o curious_a of_o the_o occasion_n of_o place_v or_o remove_v they_o nor_o of_o the_o intelligence_n betwixt_o he_o and_o other_o country_n for_o entertain_v civil_a peace_n from_o which_o no_o prince_n or_o common_a wealth_n abstain_v though_o be_v diverse_a in_o religion_n the_o 5._o head_n contain_v a_o general_a complaint_n upon_o some_o special_o appear_o express_v in_o the_o matter_n follow_v his_o majesty_n wish_v the_o assembly_n as_o they_o will_v be_v special_o &_o direct_o answer_v so_o to_o form_v their_o petition_n forbear_v particular_a exampl_n to_o ground_v their_o general_a proposition_n and_o to_o remember_v that_o since_o he_o take_v the_o government_n in_o his_o own_o person_n more_o good_a law_n have_v be_v make_v for_o advancement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o true_a religion_n than_o be_v before_o and_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o execution_n have_v not_o be_v his_o default_n the_o six_o concern_v the_o tack_n set_v to_o seagy_n of_o certain_a victual_n out_o of_o the_o superplus_n of_o the_o three_o which_o he_o have_v before_o in_o pension_n that_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n nor_o any_o way_n prohibit_v he_o can_v alswell_o content_v he_o with_o the_o pension_n as_o he_o have_v before_o free_a of_o all_o payment_n of_o duty_n the_o necessary_a consideration_n move_v to_o grant_v it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v to_o many_o he_o be_v employ_v in_o public_a service_n want_v the_o live_n whereunto_o he_o be_v provide_v in_o title_n during_o his_o father_n life_n and_o his_o service_n be_v and_o may_v be_v necessary_a both_o to_o his_o hi._n and_o the_o church_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v think_v omit_v in_o the_o provision_n of_o minister_n serve_v at_o the_o church_n annex_v to_o abbey_n in_o the_o late_a disposition_n of_o they_o that_o be_v well_o supply_v by_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o execution_n whereof_o be_v stay_v these_o two_o year_n in_o their_o own_o default_n rather_o than_o any_o other_o way_n while_z they_o have_v be_v crave_v their_o assignation_n continue_v as_o before_o and_o as_o yet_o have_v not_o answer_v his_o message_n send_v by_o his_o master_n of_o request_n unto_o the_o assembly_n at_o santandrews_n nevertheless_o his_o ma._n make_v choice_n of_o certain_a baron_n and_o other_o of_o good_a qualification_n know_v to_o be_v zealous_a to_o the_o furtherance_n of_o that_o good_a work_n hope_v to_o have_v have_v the_o assignation_n form_v before_o the_o assembly_n but_o be_v uncertain_a of_o the_o time_n appoint_v thereunto_o this_o year_n be_v doubtful_a if_o they_o come_v to_o edinburgh_n but_o if_o they_o come_v his_o maj._n shall_v send_v they_o direction_n to_o proceed_v and_o also_o other_o thing_n most_o needful_a shall_v be_v resolve_v without_o delay_n concern_v the_o give_v of_o church-living_n to_o child_n and_o translate_n they_o to_o temporal_a lordship_n his_o majesty_n consider_v his_o own_o loss_n and_o hindrance_n of_o his_o service_n there-in_a whatsoever_o abuse_n have_v enter_v before_o he_o accept_v the_o government_n time_n and_o the_o approbation_n of_o these_o provision_n by_o decriet_n of_o the_o session_n have_v bring_v the_o matter_n unto_o that_o estate_n as_o it_o can_v be_v help_v no_o other_o way_n but_o by_o the_o parliament_n unto_o which_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v propound_v his_o majesty_n shall_v hold_v hand_n to_o have_v all_o possible_a reformation_n thereof_o the_o default_n of_o punish_v vice_n mention_v in_o the._n 9_o head_n and_o of_o the_o provision_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o punish_v vagabond_n can_v not_o just_o be_v impute_v unto_o his_o ma._n who_o be_v ever_o willing_a to_o give_v commission_n unto_o such_o as_o the_o minister_n think_v meet_a to_o execute_v the_o same_o the._n 10._o head_n be_v general_a his_o majesty_n will_v be_v glad_a not_o only_o to_o have_v it_o explain_v but_o to_o hear_v all_o good_a advice_n that_o shall_v be_v offer_v for_o reformation_n of_o that_o which_o may_v be_v find_v amiss_o and_o how_o his_o law_n may_v have_v place_n and_o justice_n administer_v to_o the_o comfort_n &_o common_a benefit_n of_o all_o his_o good_a subject_n the_o 10._o head_n be_v also_o very_o general_a as_o for_o that_o one_o exemple_n the_o remove_n of_o the_o principal_a of_o aberdien_n to_o be_v minister_n of_o santandrews_n his_o majesty_n trust_v the_o assembly_n will_v not_o think_v that_o matter_n the_o substance_n be_v well_o consider_v to_o be_v either_o so_o proper_a to_o the_o church_n or_o so_o improper_a unto_o the_o civil_a estate_n but_o that_o his_o hi._n and_o counsel_n have_v good_a ground_n and_o reason_n to_o direct_v his_o letter_n as_o he_o do_v upon_o the_o general_a respect_n of_o the_o north_n country_n wherein_o none_o be_v prejudge_v see_v there_o be_v no_o charge_n contain_v power_n to_o denounce_v at_o the_o first_o but_o rather_o to_o do_v the_o thing_n require_v or_o compeare_v and_o show_v a_o cause_n in_o the_o contraty_n what_o be_v say_v before_o brief_o of_o a_o process_n against_o pa._n adamson_n be_v clear_v by_o the_o historical_a narration_n that_o he_o have_v a_o long_a and_o filthy_a sickness_n and_o for_o cure_v it_o he_o have_v seek_v help_n of_o a_o witch_n and_o recover_v health_n in_o some_o measure_n he_o in_o a_o preach_n before_o the_o king_n declare_v against_o the_o lord_n which_o late_o have_v guard_v the_o king_n and_o against_o the_o ministry_n for_o which_o he_o be_v warn_v by_o the_o presbytery_n of_o santandrews_n and_o the_o witch_n with_o who_o he_o have_v consult_v and_o from_o the_o presbyrery_a the_o cause_n be_v bring_v before_o the_o synod_n of_o fife_n in_o the_o assembly_n the_o process_n be_v find_v orderly_o deduce_v and_o he_o have_v be_v warn_v by_o the_o synod_n apud_fw-la acta_fw-la to_o compear_v before_o the_o general_n assembly_n in_o october_n for_o contumacy_n in_o not_o compear_v by_o the_o assembly_n he_o be_v suspend_v from_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o it_o be_v appoint_v that_o far_a trial_n shall_v be_v take_v of_o his_o life_n and_o corrupt_a doctrine_n but_o he_o pretend_v that_o he_o be_v go_v to_o the_o well_o of_o spae_n for_o his_o health_n purchase_v from_o the_o k._n security_n that_o during_o his_o absence_n the_o church_n shall_v not_o proceed_v against_o he_o yet_o it_o be_v his_o purpose_n to_o stay_v in_o england_n and_o there_o to_o seek_v the_o advice_n of_o the_o most_o corrupt_a sort_n for_o the_o overthrow_n of_o discipline_n in_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n for_o he_o thoughr_fw-mi that_o the_o sure_a course_n to_o keep_v his_o benefice_n at_o
of_o the_o offender_n be_v by_o his_o public_a penance_n satisfy_v now_o absolution_n shall_v be_v pronounce_v though_o that_o be_v not_o accomplish_v then_o the_o party_n offend_v shall_v in_o his_o own_o person_n hear_v the_o sentence_n of_o absolution_n pronounce_v now_o bishop_n archdeacon_n chancellor_n official_o commissares_fw-la and_o the_o like_o absolve_v one_o man_n for_o another_o and_o this_o be_v that_o order_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n which_o all_o godly_a wish_n to_o be_v restore_v to_o the_o end_n that_o every_o one_o may_v by_o the_o same_o be_v keep_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o his_o vocation_n and_o a_o great_a number_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o live_v in_o godly_a conversation_n not_o that_o we_o mean_v to_o take_v away_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o chief_a governor_n to_o who_o we_o wish_v all_o blessedness_n and_o for_o the_o increase_n of_o who_o godliness_n we_o pray_v daily_o but_o that_o christ_n be_v restore_v into_o his_o kingdom_n to_o rule_v in_o the_o same_o by_o the_o sceptre_n of_o his_o word_n and_o severe_a discipline_n the_o prince_n may_v be_v the_o better_o obey_v the_o realm_n flourish_v more_o in_o godliness_n and_o the_o lord_n himself_o more_o sincere_o and_o pure_o according_a to_o his_o word_n serve_v than_o heretofore_o he_o have_v be_v or_o yet_o at_o this_o present_a time_n be_v amend_v therefore_o these_o horrible_a abuse_n and_o reform_v god_n church_n and_o the_o lord_n be_v on_o your_o right_a hand_n you_o shall_v not_o be_v remove_v for_o ever_o for_o he_o will_v deliver_v and_o defend_v you_o from_o all_o your_o enemy_n either_o at_o home_n or_o abroad_o as_o he_o do_v faithful_a jacob_n and_o good_a jehoshaphat_n let_v these_o thing_n alone_o and_o god_n be_v a_o righteous_a judge_n he_o will_v one_o day_n call_v you_o to_o your_o reckon_n be_v a_o reformation_n good_a for_o france_n and_o can_v it_o be_v evil_a for_o england_n be_v discipline_n meet_v fo●_n scotland_n and_o be_v it_o unprofitable_a for_o this_o realm_n sure_o god_n have_v set_v these_o exampl_n before_o your_o eye_n to_o encourage_v you_o to_o go_v forward_o to_o a_o thorough_a and_o speedy_a reformation_n you_o may_v not_o do_v as_o heretofore_o you_o have_v do_v patch_n and_o piece_n nay_o rather_o go_v backward_o and_o never_o labour_n or_o contend_v to_o perfection_n but_o altogether_o remove_v whole_a antichrist_n both_o head_n body_n and_o branch_n and_o perfect_o plant_v that_o purity_n of_o the_o word_n that_o simplicity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o severity_n of_o discipline_n which_o christ_n have_v command_v and_o commend_v to_o his_o church_n and_o here_o to_o end_v we_o desire_v all_o to_o suppose_v that_o we_o have_v not_o attempt_v this_o enterprise_n for_o vain_a glory_n gain_n preferment_n or_o any_o worldly_a respect_n neither_o yet_o judge_v ourselves_o so_o exact_o to_o have_v set_v out_o the_o estate_n of_o a_o church_n reform_v as_o that_o nothing_o more_o can_v be_v add_v or_o a_o more_o perfect_a form_n and_o order_n draw_v for_o that_o be_v great_a presumption_n to_o arrogat_fw-la so_o much_o to_o ourselves_o see_v that_o as_o we_o be_v but_o weak_a and_o simple_a soul_n so_o god_n have_v raise_v up_o man_n of_o profound_a judgement_n and_o notable_a learning_n but_o hereby_o to_o declare_v our_o good_a will_n towards_o the_o set_n forth_o of_o god_n glory_n and_o the_o build_n up_o of_o his_o church_n account_v this_o as_o it_o be_v but_o a_o entrance_n into_o further_a matter_n hope_v that_o our_o god_n who_o have_v in_o we_o begin_v this_o good_a work_n will_v not_o only_o in_o time_n hereafter_o make_v we_o strong_a and_o able_a to_o go_v forward_o herein_o but_o also_o move_v other_o upon_o who_o he_o have_v bestow_v great_a measure_n of_o his_o gift_n and_o grace_n to_o labour_v more_o thorough_o and_o full_o in_o the_o same_o the_o god_n of_o all_o glory_n so_o open_a your_o eye_n to_o see_v his_o truth_n that_o you_o may_v not_o only_o be_v enflam_v with_o a_o love_n thereof_o but_o with_o a_o continual_a care_n seek_v to_o promote_v plant_n &_o place_v the_o same_o among_o we_o that_o we_o the_o english_a people_n and_o our_o posterity_n enjoy_v the_o sincerity_n of_o god_n gospel_n for_o ever_o may_v say_v always_o the_o lord_n be_v praise_v to_o who_o with_o christ_n jesus_n his_o son_n our_o only_a saviour_n and_o the_o h._n ghost_n our_o only_a conforter_n be_v honour_n praise_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n now_o except_v these_o who_o fault_n be_v here_o touch_v who_o can_v say_v but_o this_o be_v a_o wholesome_a admonition_n and_o certain_o it_o do_v concern_v all_o in_o power_n which_o shall_v read_v it_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o will_v but_o what_o follow_v upon_o it_o the_o bishop_n rage_n and_o persecute_v the_o minister_n which_o there_fw-mi speak_v against_o their_o dominion_n or_o will_v not_o conform_v unto_o their_o toy_n i_o will_v here_o remember_v one_o passage_n an._n archpriest_n blackwell_n be_v about_o that_o time_n prisoner_n in_o the_o clink_n where_o sundry_a minister_n be_v also_o prisoner_n say_v to_o one_o of_o they_o he_o marvel_v of_o what_o religion_n the_o bs_n of_o england_n be_v we_o they_o commit_v say_v he_o because_o we_o be_v papist_n and_o you_o they_o commit_v because_o you_o will_v not_o be_v papist_n that_o they_o persecute_v we_o it_o be_v not_o much_o to_o be_v marvele_v because_o there_o be_v some_o seem_a difference_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o though_o it_o be_v not_o much_o but_o that_o one_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v persecute_v another_o or_o that_o one_o protestant_n do_v pursue_v another_o to_o bond_n and_o imprisonment_n for_o religion_n sake_n be_v a_o strange_a thing_n but_o of_o the_o two_o they_o love_v we_o better_o a_o papist_n they_o like_v well_o enough_o if_o they_o dare_v show_v it_o but_o puritan_n they_o hate_v with_o their_o heart_n and_o that_o all_o the_o world_n may_v see_v so_o say_v he_o it_o be_v their_o custom_n to_o revile_v with_o the_o name_n of_o puritan_n all_o who_o do_v oppose_v their_o course_n what_o the_o priest_n say_v taunt_o be_v the_o lamentation_n of_o many_o i_o will_v name_v the_o testimony_n but_o of_o one_o a_o learned_a and_o piousman_n as_o his_o work_n yet_o extant_a do_v demonstrate_v i_o mean_v john_n udall_n sometime_o minister_v at_o kingstown_n upon_o thames_n who_o in_o the_o year_n 1588._o by_o his_o life_n in_o the_o whyte-lion_n in_o southwerk_n as_o prisoner_n for_o oppose_a episcopacy_n among_o other_o piece_n he_o bb._n the_o testimony_n of_o i._o vdal_n concern_v the_o practice_n of_o bb._n describe_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o enlgland_n in_o a_o conference_n there_o he_o show_v 1._o that_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o papist_n be_v send_v by_o the_o other_o bishop_n into_o scotland_n to_o subvert_v their_o general_n assembly_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n for_o fear_v that_o if_o the_o minister_n in_o scotland_n have_v get_v up_o their_o discipline_n the_o soverainety_n of_o bishop_n have_v fall_v in_o england_n also_o he_o say_v they_o prevail_v a_o while_n in_o scotland_n but_o the_o whole_a land_n cry_v out_o for_o diciplin_n again_o and_o the_o noble_a man_n do_v so_o stiff_o stand_v to_o it_o and_o the_o minister_n that_o come_v home_o from_o england_n deal_v so_o bold_o with_o the_o king_n that_o i_o say_fw-la the_o bishop_n be_v utter_o cast_v out_o without_o all_o hope_n ever_o to_o do_v any_o good_a there_o again_o 2._o he_o tell_v of_o a_o minister_n declare_v unto_o the_o bishop_n as_o not_o know_n one_o another_o three_o abomination_n commit_v by_o the_o bishop_n in_o england_n first_o rhey_n bear_v such_o enmity_n against_o the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o they_o put_v to_o silence_v one_o after_o another_o and_o will_v never_o cease_v if_o god_n bridle_v they_o not_o until_o they_o have_v root_v out_o of_o the_o church_n all_o the_o learned_a godly_a and_o painful_a teacher_n the_o second_o be_v that_o they_o enlarge_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o common_a enemy_n the_o papist_n the_o last_o be_v that_o they_o commit_v the_o feed_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n unto_o those_o that_o prey_n upon_o they_o and_o either_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o labour_v to_o reclaim_v the_o wander_a sheep_n so_o that_o the_o conclusion_n may_v be_v gather_v upon_o their_o action_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o eversion_n and_o overthrow_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o so_o consequent_o the_o bringing-in_a of_o popery_n and_o atheism_n 3._o a_o gentle_a man_n ask_v the_o bishop_n why_o he_o have_v take_v a_o papist_n with_o he_o into_o scotland_n see_v if_o he_o be_v a_o right_a papist_n he_o will_v labour_v to_o erect_v the_o pope_n kingdom_n the_o b._n answer_v that_o man_n be_v think_v fit_a above_o all_o
when_o they_o shall_v arrive_v as_o appear_v their_o intention_n be_v by_o their_o preparation_n force_n and_o armour_n and_o league_n of_o friendship_n which_o they_o be_v daily_o bind_v up_o 2._o many_o jesuit_n and_o excommunicate_a papist_n be_v keep_v within_o the_o country_n detain_v such_o as_o they_o have_v pervert_v in_o their_o error_n and_o seduce_a other_o into_o the_o same_o corruption_n and_o hold_v they_o in_o hope_n of_o the_o papist_n lord_n with_o assistance_n of_o stranger_n such_o be_v robert_z abercromy_n alex._n macquhirry_n the_o abbot_n of_o new-abbay_a john_n gordon_n of_o newton_n pat._n con_n alexander_n lesly_n of_o piell_n young_a bonitoun_n alexander_n ramsay_n and_o many_o other_o 3._o in_o many_o place_n people_n be_v altogether_o ignorant_a of_o their_o salvation_n and_o that_o for_o want_n of_o pastor_n and_o maintenance_n nor_o know_v they_o their_o duty_n unto_o god_n or_o their_o king_n and_o so_o the_o land_n be_v overflow_v with_o atheism_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o vice_n there_o be_v 400_o paris-churche_n destitute_a of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n beside_o the_o church_n of_o argile_n and_o the_o isle_n 4._o it_o be_v universal_o lament_v by_o his_o majesty_n subject_n that_o by_o delay_v pervert_v and_o elude_v of_o justice_n murder_n oppression_n incest_n adultery_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o heinous_a crime_n abound_v 5._o it_o be_v heavy_o lament_v that_o the_o minister_n who_o have_v obtain_v some_o small_a provision_n by_o assignation_n in_o an._n 1595._o be_v frustrate_v by_o the_o lord_n of_o session_n refuse_v to_o decide_v the_o suspension_n according_a to_o the_o act_n of_o february_n 1587._o year_n the_o overture_n for_o remedy_n be_v adjoin_v as_o they_o be_v relate_v before_o in_o sess_n 5._o ix_o in_o sess_n 10._o john_n preston_n and_o edward_n bruce_n commendator_n of_o kinloss_n commissioner_n from_o his_o ma._n do_v give-in_a these_o article_n or_o instruction_n 1._o you_o shall_v show_v unto_o the_o assembly_n our_o good_a will_n to_o have_v all_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n plant_v with_o minister_n and_o sufficient_a live_n to_o the_o great_a hurt_n of_o our_o own_o revenue_n and_o that_o portion_n of_o the_o three_o which_o be_v assign_v to_o our_o house_n and_o our_o counptrollar_n in_o possession_n thereof_o but_o find_v that_o all_o the_o three_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o plant_v all_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v it_o commodious_a for_o minister_n to_o serve_v in_o one_o place_n and_o have_v their_o live_n in_o another_o far_o distant_a from_o their_o cure_n therefore_o we_o have_v think_v good_a to_o set_v forward_o a_o order_n for_o local_a stipend_n found_v on_o this_o ground_n that_o all_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n shall_v have_v minister_n and_o all_o minister_n shall_v have_v stipend_n within_o their_o own_o parishon_n of_o such_o value_n as_o by_o our_o authority_n on_o the_o one_o part_n and_o by_o concurrence_n and_o procurement_n of_o the_o church_n on_o the_o other_o may_v be_v obtain_v from_o the_o tacks-man_n of_o tyth_n and_o present_a possessor_n of_o they_o for_o which_o effect_n we_o have_v cause_v a_o act_n of_o parliament_n to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o year_n 1592._o grant_v commission_n to_o certain_a noble_a man_n counsellor_n officer_n and_o minister_n on_o the_o one_o and_o other_o part_n to_o treat_v of_o and_o prosecute_v this_o matter_n and_o also_o have_v give_v command_n particular_o to_o certain_a of_o our_o lord_n of_o chequer_n to_o help_v by_o their_o advice_n and_o labour_n to_o bring_v this_o matter_n unto_o some_o perfection_n wherein_o as_o we_o understand_v some_o thing_n be_v do_v as_o part_v of_o the_o brethren_n can_v testify_v as_o we_o continue_v in_o our_o good_a mind_n to_o have_v in_o our_o time_n the_o church_n settle_v with_o live_n and_o not_o entangle_v yearly_o with_o process_n and_o to_o have_v all_o our_o church_n plant_v within_o the_o realm_n by_o these_o present_n offer_v and_o promitt_v unto_o the_o assembly_n to_o cause_v our_o commissioner_n counsellor_n and_o officer_n to_o conveen_v present_o before_o the_o expire_a of_o this_o assembly_n with_o the_o say_n commissioner_n from_o the_o church_n to_o begin_v this_o good_a purpose_n and_o to_o lay_v the_o ground_n and_o to_o set_v down_o the_o order_n time_n and_o place_n of_o conveen_a to_o prosecute_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o end_n conform_v to_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n so_o that_o if_o any_o stay_n shall_v be_v it_o shall_v be_v on_o the_o church_n part_n as_o oft_o before_o and_o not_o on_o our_o part_n 2._o you_o shall_v show_v they_o that_o it_o be_v a_o stay_n of_o this_o good_a work_n that_o by_o some_o of_o their_o preach_n the_o people_n be_v make_v to_o understand_v that_o we_o and_o our_o counsel_n will_v stay_v the_o plant_n of_o church_n and_o take_v away_o the_o live_n possess_v by_o minister_n albeit_o the_o contrary_a be_v true_a that_o we_o and_o our_o counsel_n be_v most_o willing_a that_o the_o church_n be_v whole_o plant_v and_o the_o provision_n of_o minister_n be_v augment_v so_o far_o as_o lawful_o may_v be_v obtain_v with_o consent_n of_o our_o nobility_n and_o other_o tacks-man_n of_o tyth_n who_o right_n without_o order_n of_o law_n we_o can_v not_o empare_v and_o therefore_o this_o form_n of_o preach_v discourage_v our_o good_a counsellor_n most_o willing_a of_o the_o work_n and_o be_v a_o heavy_a slander_n upon_o the_o minister_n wherein_o you_o shall_v crave_v order_n be_v take_v and_o the_o like_a be_v not_o do_v in_o time_n come_v 3._o you_o shall_v desire_v those_o your_o instructioe_n in_o our_o name_n to_o be_v register_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o assembly_n as_o a_o perpetual_a testimony_n of_o our_o good_a will_n and_o also_o that_o answer_n be_v give_v particular_o by_o a_o general_a vote_n of_o the_o whole_a ass_n and_o no_o way_n to_o be_v refer_v to_o a_o private_a conference_n and_o the_o answer_v so_o vote_v to_o each_o particular_a head_n to_o be_v register_v in_o like_a manner_n and_o the_o extract_n of_o all_o these_o article_n and_o the_o answer_n to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o you_o and_o to_o be_v report_v unto_o we_o sic_fw-la subscribitur_fw-la james_n r._n in_o sess_n 13._o with_o the_o above_o name_v overture_n these_o petition_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o king_n 1._o that_o his_o maj._n will_v prosecute_v his_o good_a purpose_n and_o intention_n declare_v concern_v the_o plant_n of_o all_o the_o church_n with_o qualify_a minister_n and_o sufficient_a provision_n for_o their_o entertainment_n and_o for_o that_o effect_n that_o he_o will_v give_v commission_n to_o the_o visitor_n name_v by_o the_o assembly_n to_o take_v inquisition_n of_o all_o church_n within_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o visitation_n and_o to_o deal_v in_o his_o majesty_n name_n with_o the_o tacks-man_n &_o possessor_n of_o the_o tithe_n for_o sufficient_a provision_n unto_o the_o minister_n out_o of_o the_o every_o parish_n and_o to_o report_v their_o diligence_n unto_o his_o majesty_n commissioner_n appoint_v for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o plat_v and_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o visitor_n in_o that_o journey_n 2._o that_o his_o majesty_n will_v be_v please_v to_o take_v order_n substantious_o by_o advice_n of_o his_o counsel_n and_o estate_n how_o the_o principal_a judgement-seat_n and_o other_o inferior_a judicatories_n may_v be_v purge_v of_o unqualified_a and_o corrupt_a person_n and_o fill_v with_o other_o meet_v to_o discharge_v that_o call_v faithful_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o majesty_n peaceable_a and_o well_o dispose_v subject_n 3._o that_o his_o majesty_n will_v command_v and_o ordain_v the_o lord_n of_o session_n to_o administrat_fw-la justice_n unto_o the_o minister_n who_o have_v obtain_v a_o small_a augmentation_n of_o their_o stipend_n or_o new_a provision_n by_o the_o modefier_n in_o the_o year_n 1595._o and_o according_a to_o the_o act_n of_o febru_n in_o the_o year_n 1587._o as_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o their_o solemn_a oath_n and_o promise_n see_v the_o extraordinary_a dearth_n urge_v they_o with_o so_o great_a necessity_n that_o unless_o his_o maj._n have_v consideration_n of_o their_o estate_n they_o and_o their_o family_n be_v drive_v to_o extreme_a poverty_n and_o want_n x._o article_n propound_v by_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o constant_a plat_v to_o be_v advise_v by_o the_o assembly_n and_o pass_v in_o act_n 1._o it_o be_v think_v requisite_a that_o the_o assembly_n will_v ordain_v that_o the_o moderator_n of_o each_o presbytery_n shall_v give_v presentation_n jure_fw-la devoluto_fw-la of_o all_o benefice_n of_o cure_n belong_v to_o laic_a patron_n that_o have_v not_o present_v qualify_v person_n within_o six_o month_n after_o the_o decease_n of_o the_o last_o possessor_n and_o also_o of_o these_o benefice_n which_o hereafter_o shall_v vaik_fw-mi if_o these_o patron_n neglect_v to_o present_v within_o six_o month_n under_o the_o pain_n
s._n 32._o at_o lateran_n 33._o at_o trent_n s._n 243._o &_o seqq_fw-la a_o dispute_n at_o rome_n concern_v the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o trent_n 276._o and_o how_o they_o be_v question_v by_o the_o nation_n 278._o sixty_o and_o five_o national_a synod_n in_o scotland_n after_o the_o reformation_n which_o be_v set_v down_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o year_n counsel_n do_v consist_v of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n 542._o m._n one_o council_n have_v be_v correct_v by_o another_o 542._o a_o council_n condemn_v another_o although_o confirm_v by_o a_o pope_n 128._o e_fw-la 578._o e._n the_o council_n at_o pisa_n deprive_v two_o pope_n and_o choose_v a_o three_o 564._o the_o council_n at_o constance_n deprive_v three_o pope_n and_o chuserh_n a_o four_o a_o council_n be_v not_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o may_v err_v 497._o b_o a_o council_n be_v above_o a_o pope_n 509._o m._n 513._o e._n 542._o b._n &_o e._n 544._o b._n 548._o m._n 556._o e._n 573._o b._n 575._o b._n 579._o m._n s._n 17_o b._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n love_v not_o counsel_n for_o fear_n of_o reformation_n 540._o the_o culdei_fw-la in_o scotland_n 186._o how_o bear_v down_o 281_o 282._o the_o order_n of_o crucigeri_fw-la 416._o custom_n contrary_a unto_o truth_n shall_v be_v abolish_v 29_o b._n 366._o e._n 470._o m._n d_o the_o dane_n become_v christian_n 224._o they_o be_v reform_v s._n 69._o e_o why_o god_n suffer_v his_o church_n to_o come_v into_o extremity_n of_o danger_n s._n 214._o m_o the_o three_o daughter_n of_o richard_n king_n of_o england_n pride_n covetousness_n and_o lechery_n how_o bestow_v 383._o david_n black_a a_o minister_n process_n before_o the_o privy_a council_n of_o scotland_n s._n 520_o 524._o david_n straton_n a_o martyr_n trial_n s._n 172._o m_o the_o name_n of_o deacon_n remain_v in_o england_n but_o not_o the_o office_n s_o 404._o the_o decretal_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v burn_v by_o one_o pope_n but_o confirm_v again_o 454._o the_o cause_n of_o defection_n of_o piety_n in_o a_o nation_n s._n 556._o the_o devotion_n of_o ancient_a time_n 61_o 62._o dictatus_fw-la papae_fw-la gregorii_n vii_o 249._o the_o use_n of_o church-discipline_n s._n 464_o 465._o the_o presbyterian_a discipline_n be_v oppose_v by_o what_o sort_n in_o geneva_n s._n 129._o the_o discipline_n presbyterian_a be_v better_a than_o episcopacy_n s._n 492._o especial_o it_o be_v more_o effectual_a against_o heresy_n and_o schism_n 493._o the_o second_o book_n of_o discipline_n in_o scotland_n be_v o●t_o debate_v s._n 389_o 390_o 391_o 392_o 393_o 394_o 395_o 396_o 399_o 406._o again_o approve_v and_o ordain_v to_o be_v subscribe_v 483._o m._n 485._o e._n the_o act_n of_o parliament_n ratify_v it_o s._n 489_o 490._o the_o pope_n dispensation_n in_o degree_n of_o marriage_n be_v scandalous_a 74_o e_o dominicus_n the_o first_o author_n of_o dominican_n 412._o their_o privilege_n 413._o e._n their_o first_o rule_n be_v soon_o forsake_v 414._o m._n e._n they_o first_o bring_v aristotle_n into_o christian_a school_n 416._o e._n they_o have_v little_a or_o no_o truth_n 439._o m._n the_o dominican_n franciscan_n and_o other_o friar_n be_v bring_v into_o scotland_n 446._o m._n the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n unto_o pope_n silvester_n be_v forge_v 93._o e._n 208_o b._n 473._o m._n 475._o m._n 541._o m._n 543._o b._n a_o public_a disputation_n in_o cause_n of_o religion_n an._n 1521._o at_o basile_n s._n 74._o another_o an._n 1528._o at_o bern._n 94_o 95._o another_o at_o fountainbleau_n s._n 134._o another_o betwixt_o a_o papist_n and_o a_o turk_n s._n 151._o dunstan_n bishop_n of_o canterbury_n his_o wickedness_n and_o cruelty_n 227_o 228._o durand_n overture_n of_o reformation_n 470._o e_o easter_n 17._o m._n 58._o m._n eberhard_n bishop_n of_o salzburgh_n his_o oration_n against_o the_o pope_n 431._o edmond_n king_n of_o england_n martyr_v by_o the_o dane_n 184._o e_o edmond_n bishop_n of_o canterbury_n show_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n 381._o e_fw-la edward_n the_o i._o king_n of_o england_n restrain_v the_o wealth_n of_o bishop_n and_o monk_n 450._o the_o form_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o egypt_n about_o the_o year_n 1560_o s._n 322._o the_o elect_n can_v be_v deceive_v nor_o perish_v 28._o e._n 175._o m._n 176_o e._n 274._o m._n 546_o e._n they_o be_v choose_v to_o believe_v and_o not_o because_o they_o believe_v 98._o b._n 174_o b_o the_o manner_n of_o elect_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v often_o change_v 13_o m._n 17_o m._n 19_o e._n 21._o m._n &_o e._n 80_o e._n 117_o e._n 118._o b_o &_o e._n 122_o b._n 129_o b._n 200_o e._n by_o a_o whore_n 205._o e._n 206._o b._n &_o e._n 242._o m._n 243._o m._n &_o e._n 245_o e._n restrain_v to_o the_o election_n of_o cardinal_n 246_o m._n 318._o b_o 456._o b._n 459._o m._n 461._o m._n 508._o b._n 566._o m._n 569._o e._n s._n 281._o m._n elfrik'_v sermon_n concern_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o supper_n 228._o elipant_a bishop_n of_o toledo_n error_n 102_o 103_o 107._o elizabeth_z queen_n of_o england_n be_v imprison_v by_o her_o sister_n strange_o preserve_v from_o death_n and_o crown_v s._n 188._o the_o roman_a empire_n decay_v 5._o e._n 6._o e._n 8._o b._n 68_o m._n 70_o m._n 71_o 710._o it_o be_v transfer_v into_o france_n 109_o 111._o and_o then_o into_o germany_n 196._o the_o election_n of_o the_o emperor_n 202_o 209._o the_o emperor_n be_v constrain_v to_o submit_v unto_o the_o p●pe_n 236._o even_o to_o hold_v his_o stirrup_n and_o lead_v his_o horse_n 310._o b._n the_o great_a hurt_n of_o the_o empire_n 467._o england_n be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n 55._o when_o it_o be_v first_o so_o name_v 104._o m._n be_v conquer_v by_o the_o dane_n 273._o and_o then_o by_o the_o no_o man_n 274._o begin_v the_o reformation_n s_o 185._o the_o title_n of_o england_n unto_o france_n 495_o 558._o e_fw-la the_o english_a service_n book_n be_v not_o write_v to_o be_v press_v on_o man_n s._n 333._o m._n the_o epistle_n of_o the_o old_a bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v forge_v 93._o e_o equivocation_n be_v maintain_v by_o the_o jesuit_n s._n 325._o the_o sum_n of_o erasmus_n his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d s._n 27_o 29._o the_o wicked_a book_n of_o the_o friar_n the_o eternal_a gospel_n 434_o 435._o excommunicate_v person_n shall_v be_v punish_v civil_o 194._o e._n a_o example_n of_o absolution_n from_o excommunication_n s._n 503_o 505._o the_o use_n of_o exercise_n unto_o minister_n s._n 335._o f_o faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n 214._o b._n 216._o b._n m._n it_o be_v a_o certain_a knowledge_n and_o not_o a_o conjecture_n 341._o b._n it_o be_v not_o ground_v on_o natural_a reason_n 361._o b._n neither_o pope_n nor_o council_n can_v make_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o at_o most_o may_v press_v obedience_n unto_o god_n word_n 546_o m._n the_o relation_n between_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n 214._o b._n true_a believer_n can_v perish_v 214._o m_o christ_n appoint_v not_o a_o feast-day_n 547._o the_o abuse_n of_o feast_n day_n 359._o b._n 541._o b._n the_o beginning_n of_o feast_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o rood_n or_o holy_a cross_n 6._o all-hallow_a day_n 16_o 118._o m._n the_o purification_n of_o mary_n 205._o b._n all_o soul_n 242._o of_o john_n baptist_n and_o s._n laurence_n 243._o of_o thomas_n becket_n 337._o m._n octava_fw-la festivitatis_fw-la mariae_fw-la 390._o of_o the_o cross_n of_o corp._n christ●_n 392_o m._n &_o 454._o of_o christ_n transfiguration_n 513._o b._n of_o the_o conception_n of_o mary_n 516._o b._n of_o the_o visitation_n of_o mary_n 578._o m._n all_o festival_n or_o feast_n day_n forbid_v in_o scotland_n s._n 386._o b_o the_o first_o duke_n of_o florence_n s._n 3._o b_o how_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n come_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o king_n pipin_n 86_o 87._o in_o france_n be_v a_o beginning_n of_o reformation_n s._n 89_o 90._o a_o letter_n of_o catharine_n queen_n regent_n of_o france_n unto_o the_o pope_n concern_v religion_n s._n 143_o 144._o liberty_n of_o religion_n be_v grant_v in_o france_n s._n 140._o e._n 141._o e._n 304_o b._n trouble_n in_o france_n for_o religion_n under_o king_n charles_n 9_o s._n 299._o and_o under_o henry_n the_o iii_o s._n 303_o m_o francis_n assisias_n the_o father_n of_o franciscan_n 413._o francis_n ximenius_n the_o publisher_n of_o biblia_fw-la complutensia_n s._n 26._o m_o the_o fray_n in_o edinburgh_n december_n 17._o in_o the_o year_n 1596._o s._n 526._o flanders_n become_v christian_n 51._o friesland_n become_v christian_n 61._o m_o east_n friesland_n begin_v reformation_n s._n 70._o m_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o preach_a friar_n 491._o m_o ferchard_n the_o ii_o king_n of_o scotland_n be_v bring_v to_o repentance_n 60._o m_z g_o the_o popish_a gades_n begin_v 271._o the_o first_o glass_n in_o britain_n